ellauri002.html on line 1105: Heila pieni hesalainen wannabe on graafikko.
ellauri002.html on line 1659:
USA: a great place for hamburgers,
but who'd want to live there.
ellauri002.html on line 1677: I want to fly like an eagle

ellauri002.html on line 1681: I want to fly like an eagle

ellauri002.html on line 1884: wurde, (doch was war auch dies andere als Zwang)

ellauri003.html on line 303: jotta kauwan eläisi se maan päällä.
ellauri003.html on line 624:

Tanka wanka


ellauri004.html on line 485: BRIAN: Well, why don´t you go and tell him you want to be a leper again?
ellauri005.html on line 238: Maailman selitys ei ole ends/means mallinen, teleologinen vaan kyberneettinen. Tän tajus Ahmavaara oikein, mut sai verisesti neniin oikeiston nomenklatuurilta, pallomaha Niinin joholla, Humen ikivanhaa lipilaarii huijausta toistamalla. Tottahan ought seuraa siitä mitä is, vaikkakaan ei välttämättä identtisesti. Senhän sanoo Darwinkin: sopeudutaan oleviin oloihin. Jokaisella voi olla vähän eri ought, mutta niinhän niillä on myös vähän eri is. Ought on want, josta on jätetty pois subjekti, joka tahtoo, yleensä joku muu kuin minä tai sinä. Siks se on oikeistohuijausta: eettisessä koko pesän oughtissa se tahtoja on johtoporras.
ellauri005.html on line 290: Tell zeal it wants devotion;

ellauri005.html on line 327: Tell schools they want profoundness,

ellauri005.html on line 1222: You want to talk of Keats or Milton,

ellauri005.html on line 1223: She only wants to talk of love,

ellauri005.html on line 1234: "But all I want is ´enry ´iggins ´ead!"

ellauri006.html on line 239: Everybody wants to kill you, fuck you,

ellauri006.html on line 458: Linnut taiwan alda

ellauri006.html on line 552: Joca taiwan pilwillä peittä

ellauri006.html on line 562: hän hajotta härmän nijncuin tuhwan.

ellauri006.html on line 599: ja cadzowat minun waiwani

ellauri006.html on line 666: ettei he kirjoitettais wanhurscasten cansa.
ellauri006.html on line 727: että minä nijncauwan Jumalata odotan.

ellauri006.html on line 777: cuinga cauwan jumalattomat

ellauri006.html on line 778: HERra cuinga cauwan jumalattomat coreilewat?

ellauri006.html on line 785: Joca corwan on istuttanut eikö hän cuule?

ellauri006.html on line 883: ja minun tuttawan.

ellauri006.html on line 944: waan he owat wahwana

ellauri006.html on line 945: ja heidän woimans pysy wahwana.
ellauri006.html on line 971: nijnpäs HERra teet heidän cuwans

ellauri006.html on line 1093: wanhat nuorten cansa

ellauri006.html on line 1184: Se wähä cuin wanhurscalla on on parambi

ellauri006.html on line 1200: Minä ajattelen wanhoja aicoja endisitä wuosia.
ellauri006.html on line 1204: Minä awan suuni sananlascuun

ellauri006.html on line 1205: ja wanhat tapauxet mainidzen.
ellauri006.html on line 1207: Älä minua heitä pois minun wanhudesani

ellauri006.html on line 1211: Ja minun wanhudesani ja harmaxi tulduani

ellauri006.html on line 1301: Elifas sanoo et jopi puhuu vazasta ja ruskealla tuulella. Elefantti on viisaampi kuin jopi, sen isä on vahvempi ja harmaampi kuin jopin isä. Älä jopi uhkaile siinä kepillä: wäkiwaltaisella on paska loppu, häwittäjät tulee hänen päällensä, ja heidän wazansa walmistaa petoxen. Kananmunanhaisewan.
ellauri006.html on line 1313: Toista oli ennen (luku 29): pesin izeni rieskalla, kallio vuodatti minulle öljypuroja kuin saudisheikeille. Koska menin kaupungin porteille ja annoin valmistaa istuimeni kujille, niin nuoret pakenivat piiloon, ja wanhat nousi seisomaan; ylimmäiset lakkasivat puhumasta ja panivat kätensä suunsa päälle, ruhtinasten ääni salpausi ja heidän kielensä tarttui suun lakeen. Olin oikea silverbäkki. Nyt bäkissä on pelkkää rupea.
ellauri006.html on line 1356: 32 Sitten puheeseen puuttuu jolppi El Luihu, Barbapapan poika bussista, joka on ollut hiljaa kun arvokkaammat puhuvat, mutta kihissyt kiukusta. Ajatteli, puhukoot wuohet, wanhuus osoittakoon taitonsa. Mut nyt riitti.
ellauri006.html on line 1381: Seuraawat kysymykset tuulispäästä käsin saattaa waikuttaa wähän epixiltä: Onx sulla yhtä paljon habaa kuin mulla? Onko sinulla käsiwarsi niinkuin jumalalla? ja taidatko yhdenkaltaisella äänellä jylistää hänen kanssansa? Pitäisikö sinun minun tuomioni tyhjäxi tekemän, ja minua wääräxi soimaaman, ollaxesi ize wanhurskaana? Sinun ja minkä armeijan? Mut näinhän se just on: tasapäinen oikeus on vaan tasaväkisten oikeutta, sillä oikeus on aina wahwimman. Ei se ole mikään ajatuswirhe, niin se nimenomaan on. Tää on wiiden pisteen wastaus 4 Jobin kirjassa.
ellauri006.html on line 1385: 41. Herra puhuu jobille laweammalta krokodiilista. Tää krokodiili on alkutextissä nimeltään Lewiathan. Vähän kuin Moby Dickin valkoinen valas, albiino kaskelotti, hammasvalas. Se oli ilkeä. Vastusti pidätystä. Söi Ahabilta keskijalan, dick suussa hammasteli sille. Kapu jahtas sitä purjelaivalla kuin porsasta. Nyt ei Dickillä olis enää mitään mahkuja japsulaisen valaskonttilaivan kyljessä. GPS paljastas hetkessä sen sijainnin. Mun tutkit herra tarkasti. Varustat parasta ennen leimalla kuin Wagner wanhemman, Viivin sian isävainajan.
ellauri008.html on line 155: Austerin näköinen tytär Sohvi on julkkis wannabe.
ellauri008.html on line 600: like a swan, that's here and gone.

ellauri008.html on line 744: Man is amazing, but not a masterpiece, he said, keeping his eyes fixed on the glass case. Perhaps the artist was a little mad. Eh? What do you think? Sometimes it seems to me that man is come where he is not wanted, where there is no place for him; for if not, why should he want all the place? Why should he run about here and there making great noise about himself, talking about stars, disturbing the blades of grass? ...
ellauri008.html on line 822: Witsi, onkohan kaikki jyrkän linjan miesasiamieskirjailijat homoja, ainaskin in spe? Hemingway? No sillä oli paljon naisia, mut oli sekin ollut mamman hännän alla pienenä. Se taiskin olla pikemminkin transu wannabe. Sen poika Gloria oli epäonnistunut sukupuolenvaihtaja. Ille faciet. Hemingwaut on Mannerheimin miehiä. Puskajääkäreitä.
ellauri008.html on line 849: Tässä retkueessa on paljon samaa, vaikka edustavat eri rotuja: saku, sammakko, polakka, jenkki, anglointiaani. Strang oli kaksi brittisammakkoa. Nää pojat peilaa lännen nousukautta viime vuosisadan alussa. Peukuttavat rasismia, laissez faire kapitalismia, kolonialismia, ja white supremacya. Väsäs poikamaisia seikkailukirjoja, joissa tarmokkaat ja yritteliäät oman onnensa hirvisepät takoo värivajakkien kalloja ja vuolee pätäkkää niiden selkänahasta. Näyttämöt kiertää eksoottisissa maisemissa ympäri palloa, statistit ja sparrerit edustaa kaikkia alempia rotuja apinoita. Taika-Jim ja sen nekrumuskeli. Nastamuumio ja sen mustat knääpiöt. El Zorro ja Tacho kuparinvärinen pentele. Han Solo ja älisevä Chewbagga. Tarzan, karkeakarvainen Cheetah ja sileäkarvainen Jane kolmantena pyöränä. Mikki ja Hessu. Hemingwaun Afrikka-kirjat menee tähän. Paavo Lipponen ja Carl Gustav Korkki, Armas J. Pullan Romppainen ja Ryhmy. Seikkailuja alempirotuisten apinoiden viidakoissa. Mutiaiset päänsä päällä kantaa valkoisen miehen taakkaa. Bwana. Sahib. Massa. Tuan Jim.
ellauri008.html on line 866: Aus dem Schlageter stammt auch die fälschlich Hermann Göring zugeschriebene Aussage: „Wenn ich Kultur höre … entsichere ich meinen Browning“ (1. Akt, 1. Szene). Johsts Widmung „Für Adolf Hitler in liebender Verehrung und unwandelbarer Treue“ beeindruckte Hitler ebenso wie der Inhalt des Stückes. Das Stück beschäftigt sich mit dem Freikorpskämpfer Albert Leo Schlageter, der während der Ruhrbesetzung (1923) von einem französischen Militärgericht zum Tode verurteilt wurde, da er Anschläge auf militärische Verkehrsverbindungen verübt hatte. Johst proklamierte ihn zum „ersten Soldaten des Dritten Reiches“.
ellauri008.html on line 876:
You said that giving your life up to them (them meaning all of mankind with skins brown, yellow or black in colour) was like selling your soul to a brute. You contended that that kind of thing was only endurable and enduring when based on a firm conviction in the truth of ideas racially your own, in whose name are established the order, the morality of an ethical process. We want its strength at our backs, you said. We want a belief in its necessity and its justice, to make a worthy and conscious sacrifice of our lives. In other words, you maintained that we must fight in the ranks or our lives don't count. You should know who came out cleverly without singeing your wings.
ellauri009.html on line 1814: Joku satunnainen arvaus on niillä napannut, 1x2, heti seuraava on mennyt väärin. Ja usein moni muu murkku on ollut myös ihan huulilla, mut tää yks siittiö vie sattumalta palkinnon. Voittajat valizee aina jälkikäteen suurmiehensä. Kun tulee uudet voittajat ne vaihtuu. Kuka oli Almansor? Vanhan tädin koira Anni Swanilla.
ellauri011.html on line 42: Self-exiled Harold wanders forth again,

ellauri011.html on line 503: Paulin eka näytelmä opiskelijapudokkaana oli Peter Pan. Figures. Pauli pani kuni kani. Pani parastaan, yritti muitakin. Yrittänyttä ei laiteta, jos sitä panettaa. When you want something hard enough, the University conspires to make you hard enough. Latino lover oli sen levymenestyksen nimi.
ellauri011.html on line 516: Though he wrote the book so quickly, it took it quite long to taste the first success of the book. Initially, only 900 copies of the book were published in Portuguese, which later went out of print. But he didn’t give up, went to a new publisher, added the beginning sentence “When you want something, the whole universe conspires to help you.” And, the icing on the cake was the 1993 release of its English version which took the novel to new heights. Paulo Coelho - The Alchemist.
ellauri011.html on line 546: "when you really want something to happen, the whole universe will conspire so that your wish comes true"

ellauri011.html on line 688: Pauli Kani Bridassa jakaa wannabe welhoille lukijalahjoja, rusinoita Ison Paulin korinttipullasta. Terkkuja vaan kaikille täältä Sao Paulosta. Korjaan Rio de Janeirosta. Nyttemmin Genevestä. Oikeammin Tarsoksesta.
ellauri011.html on line 883: Paulon vasemmistolaisuus huuhtoutui vessasta menestyksen mukana. Ei se lie koskaan ollutkaan enempää kuin keskiluokkaisia vanhempia kiusaava teini, all-you-need-is-love-luokan hippi. Se pelkäsi kommareita jo nuorena. Nyt se tunnustaa jenkkiliberaalin värisävyä, on Amerikka-fan. Se on poliittisesti viisasta, siellä on vitusti sen lukijoita, wannabe Pauloja.
ellauri011.html on line 1356: The success of Julie delighted Rousseau; he took pleasure in narrating a story about how a lady ordered a horse carriage to go to an Opera, and then picked up Julie only to continue reading the book till the next morning. So many women wrote to him offering their love that he speculated there was not a single high society woman with whom he would not have succeeded if he wanted to.
ellauri012.html on line 128: 30:16 Colme on tytymätöindä/ ja neljäs ei sano kyllä olewan: Helwetti/ waimon suljettu cohtu/ maa joca ei wedellä täytetä/ ja tuli ei sano: jo kyllä on.

ellauri012.html on line 130: 30:18 Colme minulle owat ihmelliset/ ja neljättä en minä tiedä: Cotcan tiet taiwan alla.

ellauri014.html on line 89: Pamela; or, Virtue Rewarded is an epistolary novel by English writer Samuel Richardson, a novel which was first published in 1740. It tells the story of a 16-year-old maidservant named Pamela Andrews, whose employer, Mr. B, a wealthy landowner, makes unwanted and inappropriate advances towards her after the death of his mother. Pamela strives to reconcile her strong religious training with her desire for the approval of her employer in a series of letters and, later, journal entries, addressed to her impoverished parents. After various unsuccessful attempts at seduction, a series of sexual assaults, and an extended period of kidnapping, the rakish Mr. B eventually reforms and makes Pamela a sincere proposal of marriage. In the novel's second part, Pamela marries Mr. B and tries to acclimatize to her new position in upper-class society. The full title, Pamela; or, Virtue Rewarded, makes plain Richardson's moral purpose. A best-seller of its time, Pamela was widely read but was also criticized for its perceived licentiousness and disregard for class barriers.
ellauri014.html on line 1059: Eura ist in una banca guischettista quado Euro, in disguisamento irrupte inside und uno holduppo want te make.

ellauri014.html on line 1392: You want to taste and help yourself

ellauri014.html on line 1395: That´s what I want you to do.
ellauri014.html on line 1399: And if you want to prove it´s true

ellauri014.html on line 1466: Semmoista hellenisoivaa librettohöttöä se kirjoitteli. Ei ihme ettei Rusoon nuoret löytäneet siltä yhtä tai kahta riviä pitempää siteerattavaa. En löydä minäkään. Varmaan osas ulkoa pätkiä päivän hiteistä. Vähän niinkuin "I wanna hand your hole..."
ellauri014.html on line 1675: A female blogger, another wannabe famous poetess or novelist, writes about LM Montgomery as follows:
ellauri014.html on line 1702: O’er wandering brooks and springs unseen, nujuu puron ja lähteen rannalla,
ellauri016.html on line 513: Siis onhan snobi objektiivisesti vituttava, mut tää sen pahexuja ei ole sitä kummempi. Sehän tuli just todettua, vai mitä. Kade wannabe snob on kärmeissään ja koittaa kexiä jonkun p.c. syyn mix se on oikeessa ja snobi väärässä, eli se ite parempi. Itte asiassa se haluis useimmiten ize snobix snobin paikalle. Vaikkei tietystikään olis yhtä mauton, herra varjele.
ellauri016.html on line 624: Nyt kun omat wanhusajat owat owella

ellauri016.html on line 625: lukee wanhusuutisia ihan mielenkiinnolla.

ellauri016.html on line 626: Wanhuxet saa kättä päähän aiwan sikana.

ellauri016.html on line 630: joita ei wanhus ize kehtaa suoraan sanoa.

ellauri016.html on line 641: Johtaja Kahanpää on tyytywäinen, tuottawuus on kaswanut.

ellauri016.html on line 644: Pannaan wanhuxet päällekkäin ja suihkutetaan kerralla.

ellauri016.html on line 647: Nyt kun saataisiin ne wanhuxet waan niitä lukemaan

ellauri016.html on line 648: pieniruutuisista wanhusluureistaan.
ellauri016.html on line 652: Heitän jorpakkon puhelimen joutawana.

ellauri016.html on line 654: Kiwekset kun wanhalla on enää werkonpainona.

ellauri016.html on line 656: PS. Sana kiwes tarkottaa wanhastaan werkonpainoa.

ellauri016.html on line 933: Säilöttävät saa ongelmalähtöistä opetusta, maan tavoille kantapään ja selkänahan kautta. Kansalaistaitoja on turha paukuttaa wannabe ei-kansalaisille. Kontakteja kantaväestöön ei suosita. Turha vihollisen kanssa veljeillä. Halutaanko muka todella, että väärän näköinen ihminen laulaa maammelaulua ja suvivirttä, jyystää makkaraa ja paskantaa kettinkiä? Johan sille naurais harakatkin. Persua ei naurata. Kettinki jo kurkkii lahkeesta. Kohta se alkaa viuhua.
ellauri016.html on line 1058: Väittelijän perhe on kuin hullunkurinen perhe korttipelistä. Isä ja poika on samixia, robusteja persuja, äiti ja tytär samixia myös, pikkuruisia, positiivisia wannabe teologeja. Eteerinen tytär oli pannut nyt niin paljon meikkiä etten ollut tuntea. Sil oli vuojudekoltee ja ihottuman näköinen tatska hartiassa perheen Martta-kissasta. Isovanhemmat on evakon lapsia, pienviljelijöitä Vesivehmaalta. Sieltä kai se positiivisuus on peräisin. Ilo pintaan vaikka syän märkänis. Kaikkien on päästävä ääneen, jopa pikkuruisen isoäidin. Puheita on kaksi tuntia. Sit aukee baari ja jengi paahtaa alakertaan, me funksunäärit hankkiudutaan kotimatkalle. Liisa laittaa farkut takas juhlamekon päälle. Kotimatkalla mä vittuilen vähän sille subliminaalisesti, makselen kalavelkoja. Liisa vitun Tiittula. Vanhoja ei unohdeta.
ellauri017.html on line 807: Caijcki myöhemmät wannabe messijat sai siltä suuntaviivoja. Iankajckisesta elamast ei kyl Jesajalla ole puhetta, waan 100 wuoden elinajanodotteesta. No onhan sekin jo paljon. Se oli jo tässä melkein saavutettu, ennustus toteutunut, satavuotiaita nuokkuu hoivakodeissa kuin lepakoita vintillä. Vaan nyt on elinajan odote taas lyhentymään päin. Hyvä niin.
ellauri017.html on line 813: Mutta sen hän pitä cuitengin lujana: lupa myös Jerusalemin tulewan Jumalalda warjelluxi ja pelastetuxi hänestä, joca ihme on yxi nijstä caickein suurimmista cuin coco pyhäs Raamatus löytän, ei ainoastans sentähden, että nijn woimallinen Keisar piti lyötämän Jerusalemin edes, waan myös että sencaltainen mahdotoin asia siellä jumalisilda uscotaisin.
ellauri017.html on line 815: Jerusalem on häwitetty 2x ja vallattu 44x, kun HERra kazo muualle. Nyt se on taas pydessä, mut jaettu kahtia. Donald Trump kuiteskin tekee parhaansa, et saatas rättipäät ajetux ulos sieltä. Sehän on ikiwanha juutalaisten kaupunki, siitä lähin kun ne heitti filistiinit pihalle. Meidän Wiipuri.
ellauri017.html on line 817: Hän sai ilman epäilemät monda paha sana cuulla uscottomilda (täsähän nijtä tule lisä). Hän piti sen cuitengin wahwana ja sai woiton, nijn että Keisar hänen sanans jälken Jerusalemin edes lyötin ja Caupungi pelastettin. Sentähden on hän tosin Jumalan edes ollut callis ja cuuluisa mies.
ellauri017.html on line 834: Älkön myös jocu luulco, että Jesaiast on nijn paljo pidetty silloin hänen aicanans Judan Canssan seas, nijncuin hänestä nyt pidetän meidän Christityiden kesken, waan sangen ylöncadzottuna, nijncuin hän idze todista 58. lugusa, nimittäin että he pistit kieldäns maalle, ja cocotit händä cohden sormellans, ja pidit caicki hänen saarnans hulludena, paidzi muutamita harwoja hywiä sencaltaisia cuin Cuningas Ezechia: sillä se oli sen Cansan wanha tapa, naura ja pilcata Jumalan Prophetaita ja näyttä nijlle fäkkiä, (4. Reg. 9). nijncuin myös ainakin caikille saarnaille ja Jumalan palwelioille tapahtu. Judalaisten seas myös sanotan Jesaia wiimein tapetuxi Cuningas Manasselda, sahalla sahatuxi.
ellauri017.html on line 880: se on se wanha kärme jonga pään waimon siemen oli tallawa.


ellauri017.html on line 901: Vanhast minä olen wai ollut, olin hiljainen ja pidätin idzeni. Teki mieli sanoa, mutten sanonut mitän. Olin ihan hilja. Hillidzin izeni. Mutta nyt minä tahdon huuta nijncuin synnyttäjä, puren nijtä käten kuijn Ricu Wocua, minä tahdon hajotta heitä ja caicki niellä, paizi niitä patoja. Minä häwitän wuoret ja cuckulat ja annan caicki heidän ruohons cuiwua, teen wirrat luodoixi ja järwet cuiwan pois.
ellauri017.html on line 903: Muucalaiset pitä seisoman ja teidän lauman caidzeman, ja wierat pitä teidän peldomiehen ja wijnamäken miehet oleman. Mutta teitä pitä HERran Papeixi cudzuttaman ja sanottaman: te oletta meidän Jumalam palweliat. Ja teidän pitä pacanain hywydet syömän, ja heidän cunniastans pitä teidän coreileman. HERra wannoi oikian kätens cautta ja woimans käsiwarren cautta: En minä tahdo sinun jywiäs sillen anda wihollistes syödä engä wijnas syöxy, jonga tähdens työtä teit, muucalaisten juoda.
ellauri017.html on line 933: Hän käy puiden seas medzäsä hacataxens Cedripuita ja ottaxens Böökiä ja Tamme ja Cedripuuta joca istutettu on ja satesta on caswanut.
ellauri018.html on line 781: Mufti on islamilainen laintulkitsija (šaria), joka voi antaa fatwan. Nimitystä käytetään etupäässä sunnalaisuudessa, kun šiiojen vastaava titteli on ajatollah.
ellauri018.html on line 1029: Egyptin fatwa-komitean kokoelmissa on kolme naisten ympärileikkausta koskevaa fatwaa. Ensimmäinen (28.5.1949) toteaa, että naisten ympärileikkaus ei ole pakollista. Toinen fatwa (23.6.1951) ei hyväksy siitä luopumista, ja kolmas (29.1.1981) pitää sitä pakollisena. Pakollisuutta korostavan fatwan antoi sunni-islamin arvostetuimman uskonnollisen korkeakoulun eli Al-Azharin yliopiston suurimaami ja Egyptin suurmufti Muhammad Sayyid Tantawy. Suurimaamia pidetään epävirallisesti ylimpänä uskonnon tulkkina sunni-islamin piirissä. Kokonaisuudessaan fatwat ilmaisevat, että naisten ympärileikkaus on suositeltavaa tai pakollista.
ellauri019.html on line 249: Torni seiso surkiast ja muuri on cukistettuna. Caicki ohidzekäywäiset paucuttawat käsiäns ja wiheltelewät Ankkalinnan tyttärelle. Roopen wiholliset ammottelewat suutans sinua wastan, wilistäwät sinua ja kiristäwät hambaitans: tämä on se päiwä jota me halaisim. Me saimme sen! Me olemma nijn cauwan elänet. Se HERra on tehnyt nijncuin hän oli ajatellut: hän on armottomat hucuttanut.
ellauri019.html on line 252: Minun wiholliseni owat minun ajanet nijncuin linnun ilman syytä. He owat minun elämäni cuoppan salwannet ja heittänet kiwen minun päälleni. He owat myös minun pääni wedellä walanet. Nijn minä sanoin: nyt minä ratki hucas olen. Olen pennitön.
ellauri019.html on line 266: Ruhtinat he owat hirttänet ja wanhimbita ei he cunnioittanet. Nuorucaisten piti jauhaman ja piscuisten puita candaisans piti combastuman. Zionin wuorikin nijn häwitetty on että ketut hänes juoxendelewat.
ellauri019.html on line 272: Jeremiaalla on jeremiaadiin helppo selitys: Sentähden on HERran wiha heitä hajottanut, ja ei niinku sillen cadzo heidän päällens, ettei he Pappia cunnioittanet eikä wanhoja armahtanet.
ellauri019.html on line 436: I don't want your botheration, go away, leave me be
ellauri020.html on line 258: - You are a complete capitalist. - I believe in hard work. Is that being a capitalist? - You want to make money. That is. - Everyone wants to make money. Even you.
ellauri020.html on line 364: Palm Beach had been Ivana Trump’s idea. Long ago, Donald had screamed at her, “I want nothing social that you aspire to. If that is what makes you happy, get another husband!” But she had no intention of doing that, for Ivana, like Donald, was living out a fantasy. She had seen that in the Trump life everything and everybody appeared to come with a price, or a marker for future use. Ivana had learned to look through Donald with glazed eyes when he said to close friends, as he had in the early years of their marriage, “I would never buy Ivana any decent jewels or pictures. Why give her negotiable assets?” She had gotten out of Eastern Europe by being tough and highly disciplined, and she had compounded her skills through her husband, the master manipulator. She had learned the lingua franca in a world where everyone seemed to be using everyone else in a relentless drive for power. How was she to know that there was another way to live? Besides, she often told her friends, however cruel Donald could be, she was very much in love with him.
ellauri020.html on line 428: Näiden pullasorsien kauhein painajainen on, että paxu rahamassi exyy epähuomiossa väärälle keitaalle, kaivelee jonkun solakamman pikkumustan etumustaa, takamustakin jos oikein ohrasesti käy. Daisyn vaisu Elliott läxi juuri sillä lailla laukalle, aisoissa monen kuulummankin ohjastajan, mm. prinssi Andrewin ja Rod Stewart-vainajan läpirazastama ravikuningatar, pornoleffan tähtönen, pien sokerpala vain. Sokru on Elliottille kuin nuoruudenlähde, ikämiehen veteraanipippeli herää takas aktiivipalveluxeen Sokrun taikakosketuxesta. Ainaskin ajoittain."Sori siitä Daisy, but I love her, and I want to marry her." Kolme kertaa ympäri ja "eroan sinusta". Rikkaat naiset on muslimien veneessä. Somalinaisetkin pahexuvat moniavioisuutta. Mut menestyneen miehen on ihan pakko vaihtaa hevosta. Siitä just näkee miten menestynyt se on. Iines miettii ohimennen, mitä eroa on sillä, Santralla ja Sokrulla. Naah, ei muuta kun et ne on ne ja mä oon mä. Turha skizoilla.
ellauri020.html on line 464: Kun salaatit asetettiin tyttöremmin eteen, ne pysty nokkimaan vaan pari haarukallista. Palanutta Liisaa oli kadehdittu, nyt on vaikee pidätellä hymyä. Korjaan kyyneltä. Kaikki nää naiset oli veikanneet mustaa hevosta vasten vanhempien tahtoa (tai oli ize sellaisia, kuten Katrinka), ja saaneet jackpotin. It just goes to show. Ne jonka kaakit hävisi ei istu nyt Grenouillessa. Tää kai siis todistaa jotakin, piru tietää mitä. Liisan vanhemmat oli snobeja kun hyljexi wannabe lehtikeisaria, ite ne oli rikastuneet lihapakkaamosta Chicagossa 20-luvulla. Daisy tietää mitä sana snobi merkizee, tajuaa snobiuden suhteellisuusteorian. Snobi se on snobillakin, niinkuin herra herralla.
ellauri020.html on line 639: St Moritz. Aku pakoilee. Katrinka hiihtelee, voittaa ohimennen jotain pokaaleja. Turm oder Taxixen naamiaisissa Katrinka kiristää Mengeleltä oharit saaneen kiukkuisen Ewa Braunin avulla Mengeleä paljastamaan pikku-Mirekin olinpaikan. Partaweizi Hannu-serkku flirttailee ankarasti. Muistaa jopa Iinexen synttärin, toisin kuin Aku. Tuo suklaalaatikon ja ruusupuketin. Waikka kaikki tutut wanhenee ja rypistyy, tukkaan tulee harmaata, ne ei muutu ollenkaan. Niin kai se on, aina aikalaisten mielestä. Suurin hölmö on wanha hölmö.
ellauri020.html on line 834: Kunderan selitysteoxen pointti on että Milan Kundera on samaa tähtikaartia kuin Euroopan parhaat kirjailijat. No, Brochin kirja Schlafwanderer oli kyllä kohtalainen. Naiskirjailijoista Milan mainizee Agatha Christien. Milan Kundera voittaa! Hyvä Milan!
ellauri021.html on line 420: Stolbowan rauha on päättynyt. Naapurin Carlo

ellauri021.html on line 451: nijn sinä wyötit idzes/ ja menit cuhungas tahdoit: mutta coscas wanhenet/
ellauri021.html on line 628: Er graif mir an daz wize gewant
ellauri021.html on line 645: – div minne twanch sêre den man –
ellauri021.html on line 860: They are everything I want to be,
ellauri021.html on line 892: Schlafly argued that the article on the Renaissance does not give sufficient credit to Christianity, that Wikipedia articles apparently prefer to use non-American spellings even though most users are American, that the article on American activities in the Philippines has a distinctly anti-American bias, and that attempts to include pro-Christian or pro-American views are removed very quickly. Schlafly also claimed that Wikipedia´s allowance of both Common Era and Anno Domini notation was anti-Christian bias.
ellauri021.html on line 956: So refreshing: Trump said "we don't want to be politically correct," and criticized how long it took an officer to remove a woman who was disrupting the event.

(Lue: Ihanaa! Turha kainoilu on menneen talven lumia, naisille öykkäröinti on taas poliittisesti korrektia. Eiku niska peffa kii, etenkin peffa.)
ellauri022.html on line 456: It is sometimes used pejoratively, referring to someone whose optimism is excessive to the point of naïveté or refusing to accept the facts of an unfortunate situation. This pejorative use can be heard in the introduction of the 1930 George and Ira Gershwin song "But Not For Me": "I never want to hear from any cheerful pollyannas/who tell me fate supplies a mate/that´s all bananas." (performed by Judy Garland in the 1943 movie Girl Crazy).
ellauri022.html on line 470: Samanlainen viuluniekka löytölapsi oli Anni Swanin Mark. Ei kai se ottanut sitä Porterilta?

ellauri022.html on line 471: Anni Swan tiettävästi matki Pikkupappilassa -sarjassa Alcottin pikku naisia ja pikkumiehiä.

ellauri022.html on line 830: Kaksi wannabe kermaperse tyttöä

ellauri022.html on line 895: Rumin runot ei ole rumia vaan päinvastoin itämaisen sievisteleviä. Niillä on tämän päivän pakanalle vähänlaisesti annettavaa. Ne tuovat mieleen tunkkaiset tekosilkkikerrastot, halvat itämaiset helyt made in Taiwan, viehkot käsieleet ja epätarkat väripainokuvat idän pyhimyxistä. Epäamerikkalaista elehdintää. Miten tää voi olla USAn luetuinta runoutta? Ehkä punaniskat ei lue mitään runoja, ainoat mitkä lukevat on itämaiset matut. Tää on tähän asti paras (en tiedä mitä se meinaa, mutta onhan siinä tunnelmaa).
ellauri023.html on line 25: Orpo Olavin koettelemuxet eli K.O. Syvännön lapsuus (Ristin Voitto 1957). Kirjoittanut Unto Kunnas. Orpo Olavi on uusi tuttavuus, jonka mulle esitteli Anssi Wanha-Yli-Jyrä. Orpo Olavi on kirjan kansikuvassa jotenkin isin näköinen poikaikäisenä, esim siinä fotossa joka on otettu Tallinnassa, jossa se seisoo mamma Margitin ja Alma Potralin välissä. Orpo Olavista tulee mieleen myös Anni Swanin Pauli on koditon, ehkä vähän Wilho Pylkkäsenkin odysseia. On siinä jotain Kullervoakin alkumetreillä. Äitipuoli antoi kiven evääxi. Axel Gallenin Kullervon kirous sopisi tähän kuvituxexi, tai sen ankka/hiiriversio.
ellauri024.html on line 580: Paha myös on kun joku wannabe koomikko pilkkaa upseeria eikä sotamiestä. Komiikka on kazojan silmässä, ja aika malka voi se ollakin sellaisella pölkkypäällä kuin Aarne Kinnunen. Sivistynyt ihminen kuten tämän kirjoittaja ei näe mitään koomista Estherin kirjan 2.12. meikkauskohdassa. Pitä olla Jeremias tai Cato sen nähdäxeen. Näyttää Aarne tykkäävän myös Mark Twainin jumalaa sättivistä pissajutuista, se varman hihityttää sitä äitivainaan jäljiltä.
ellauri025.html on line 60: Se (Tomppa siis) kuoli epäilyttävän nuorena, 49-vuotiaana. Hyvin tavallinen ikä suikille. Se on wannabe pyhimyxelle toisaalta hyvä juttu; jos elät kauhu vanhaxi, jengi ehtii unohtaa sut ja sun ihmetekosi. Tomppa sai sädekehän jo 5v päästä kuoltuaan. Dante (1265-1321) oli silloin 14-vuotias. Dante epäili komediassaan Tompan tulleen myrkytetyxi, mutta myöhemmät kuolemansyyntutkijat eivät ole löytäneet indikaatioita foul playstä. Kuinkahan ois käynyt jos Murhia ja kantrimusiikkia sarjan utelias täti oisi ollut paikalla? Se haistaa foul playn jo pitkän matkan päästä. Olikohan knaapin hepallakin joku myrkytys? Oliko se ähky? Ehkä jotain foul play enkeleiden toimesta? Enkeli- ja konitohtorille tehtiin mainosta. Crooked Housessakin epäiltiin foul playta, ja syystäkin.
ellauri025.html on line 735: Tähän kohtaan tarvitaan taas pieni intertextuaalinen excursus, nimittäin Patti Smithin muistelmat 70-luvulta, Just kids (2010), johon Monika on jo kauan viittoillut. Sieltä on otettu ainexia tähän Emmy-Gusten kuvioon. Patti ja Malethorpe (1946) oli (on? no nyt varmasti jo entisiä) wannabe beatnik runoilijoita. Tää lie ollut jonkinlainen kulttikirja 2010, meni totaalisti ohize tältä paasaajalta.
ellauri026.html on line 372: On sellasia pytagoralaisia, joille kaikki on niin yhteistä et ne ottaa mitä vaan messiin mekon alla, ne ei tee siitä isompaa numeroa kuin jos ne olis perintökamoja. Toiset on vaan olevinaan rikkaita, ja tää kuvitelma riittää niille onnexi. Joillakuilla on hienot talot Helsingissä ja sen vuoxi pihistelee mökillä. Jotkut panee menee kaiken samantien, toiset kerää kokoon hyvällä tai pahalla. Yx ährää kerätäxeen julkkismainetta, toinen makaa nokisena uunin takana. A great many undertake endless suits and outvie one another who shall most enrich the dilatory judge or corrupt advocate. One is all for innovations and another for some great he-knows-not-what. Another leaves his wife and children at home and goes to Jerusalem, Rome, or in pilgrimage to St. James´s where he has no business. In short, if a man like Menippus of old could look down from the moon and behold those innumerable rufflings of mankind, he would think he saw a swarm of flies and gnats quarreling among themselves, fighting, laying traps for one another, snatching, playing, wantoning, growing up, falling, and dying. Nor is it to be believed what stir, what broils, this little creature raises, and yet in how short a time it comes to nothing itself; while sometimes war, other times pestilence, sweeps off many thousands of them together.
ellauri028.html on line 741: An elderly couple is vacationing in the west. Bob always wanted a pair of authentic cowboy boots. Seeing some on sale one day, he buys them, wears them home, walking proudly. He walks into their hotel room and says to his wife, "Notice anything different, Helen?"
ellauri029.html on line 628: wanhin hyvä ystäväni. Kyllähän se Peter on aika naisten mies,

ellauri029.html on line 697: Av-sihteerin ajankohtaiswizit on nyt 30v vanhoja. Oman wanhuutensa näkee siitä et ne tuntuu wielä aika tuoreilta. 90-luvulla ne olis ollu 60-luvun vizejä. Helmille ne on yhtä outoja kuin 40-luvun sotilashuumori 70-luvulla. Kenraali Kaluuna, kapteeni Kalpa, lommoposkinen kersantti Ärjylä ja alivaltiosihteerit Masi, Viki ja Hönö. Franzen olis varmaan Hönö.
ellauri029.html on line 759: Yleisradio päätti Alivaltiosihteeri-ohjelman lopettamisesta tammikuussa 2017. Toukokuusta 2016 lähtien ohjelma oli ollut tauolla. Jäähyväisohjelma lähetettiin 29. huhtikuuta 2017 Radio Suomessa. Mix ne hyllytettiin? Oliko ne tylsistyneet? Wizit wanhoja? Tuliko riita? Vai sanoko ne jotain mistä Haju Pisilä ei pitänyt? Mitäs jos ei olisi koko yleä, hehe.
ellauri032.html on line 134: Melkein tommonen mekaaninen laskukone oli mullakin kouluaikana, ostin sen Laivanvarustajankadun paperikaupasta. Siinä ei ollut pyöriä vaan vierekkäisiä liukuja. Made in Taiwan. Se oli musta tosi kiva. Paskaliini näyttää enemmän maalaiskansakoulun ulkohuoneelta. Ehkä sen takeen kuningatar Kristinakaan ei siitä perustanut.
ellauri032.html on line 744: Von 1750 an lebte Zinzendorf meistens in London, dann seit 1755 in Berthelsdorf. Von London aus sandte Zinzendorf erregte Strafbriefe nach Herrnhaag, in „denen er drohte, zwanzig bis dreißig Menschen bis aufs Blut peitschen zu lassen“ und berief seinen Sohn Renatus von Zinzendorf nach England. Zinzendorf war über die Entwicklungen in Herrnhaag zutiefst erbost und ermahnte seinen Sohn umzukehren. Nach dem Tod seiner Frau Erdmuthe Dorothea, zu der er sehr wenig Kontakt hatte, heiratete Zinzendorf einige Zeit später seine enge Mitarbeiterin Anna Nitschmann. Das Verhältnis zu Anna Nitschmann hatte er vor dem Tode seiner Ehefrau geheim gehalten.
ellauri033.html on line 1073: Emile Laure oli II maailmansodan armeijankenraali Vauclusesta, Vichy-luopio, mitäs se puuhaa Lamartinen runossa? Sori my bad, puhe on jostain toisesta Lauresta. No Vauclusessa on myös ravintola Petrarque et Laure, josta jenkkivieraat sanovat: Good food but lousy service. Koska Vauclusessa on Mont Ventoux, jolle Petrarca kipusi jollain wanderungilla: For pleasure alone he climbed Mont Ventoux, which rises to more than six thousand feet, beyond Vaucluse. It was no great feat, of course; but he was the first recorded Alpinist of modern times, the first to climb a mountain merely for the delight of looking from its top. (Or almost the first; for in a high pasture he met an old shepherd, who said that fifty years before he had attained the summit, and had got nothing from it save toil and repentance and torn clothing.) Petrarch was dazed and stirred by the view of the Alps, the mountains around Lyons, the Rhone, the Bay of Marseilles. He took Augustine´s Confessions from his pocket and reflected that his climb was merely an allegory of aspiration toward a better life. Vanha paimen oli tyytyväinen kun joku oli vielä tyhmempi kuin se, niinkuin Roope ezimässä nelikulmaisia munia.
ellauri033.html on line 1076: According to legend, Tasso wrote verses to his beloved Eleonora that touched her heart. A few years later, at the wedding of one of the Gonzaga family, celebrated at the court of Este, Tasso kissed the princess Eleonora on the cheek. Furious, Alphonso turned coolly to his courtiers and remarked, "What a great pity that the finest genius of the age has become suddenly mad!" The duke had Tasso shut up in the hospital of St. Anna in Ferrara. (In actuality, Tasso had been beset by delusional fears of persecution starting in 1575 and began a series of mad wanderings around 1577.)
ellauri035.html on line 141: For love's great sleeplessness wandering all night,
ellauri035.html on line 217: And her walking as of a swan; these trouble me.
ellauri035.html on line 233: And temperate eyes that wander far away.
ellauri035.html on line 257: Is her song singing, and the state of a swan
ellauri035.html on line 316: The maker of scant songs for bread wanders
ellauri035.html on line 331: With frightened eyes, like a wood wanderer,
ellauri036.html on line 28: Goethea en ole vielä haukkunut vaikka ainexia olisi, olenhan lukenut siltä Wertherin, Faustin, Wilhelm Meisterin, Wahlverwandtschaften ja vähän matkaa tarua ja totta sen muistelmista. Se on musta täysin ylimainostettu ääliö. Ei siitä Mussetkaan oikein pidä:
ellauri036.html on line 109: Sit Musse kuinka ollakkaan tapaa köyhän wannabe leskimiehen luona leskirouvan, jonka hyvän näköiseen kroppaan se oli kiinnittänyt aiemmin jo huomion. Nyt kun leskellä ei ole huntua, Musse huomaa ettei sen naama nyt ole kummonen, vaan haitanneeko tuo, kun se on kuitenkin niin kunnollinen muuten. Tylsä talonpoika, emäntä henkihieverissä, säikähtyneet lapset, ukonilma, niissä kehyxissä rumemmanpuoleinenkin herrasrouva esiintyy eduxeen.
ellauri036.html on line 2162: Apinaagi (engl. Apinagus < apina 'apina') on noita tai velho, joka pystyy muuttumaan tahtomattaan apinaxi. Kyky on synnynnäinen, se on meillä kaikilla. Kaikkien apinaagien täytyy rekisteröityä, sillä on laitonta olla apina rekisteröitymättä. Ainoastaan McGarmiwan kerrotaan rekisteröityneen. Muut luottaa laumasuojaan.
ellauri037.html on line 159: Obgleich er von Arbeit besessen war, fand er Zeit für Sex zwischen den Filmen, "in den Stunden wenn ich gelangweilt bin". Wie Markus J. Rantala vorausgesagt hat ex post facto, er zog junge Mädghen vor. Er konnte nichts mehr geniessen, als eine knospende Jungfrau zu verführen. Die erste Schützling war 14 Jahre alt. Er versprach eine Filmkarriere, aber schon bald darauf war sie schwanger. Sie war so dumm dass er sie heiratete obwohl sie gar nicht schwanger war. Charlie liebte es, Starlets nach der Bühne auch in seinem Bett zu verwenden. Die nächste Starlet war 6 als Charlie sie merkte, aber er war geduldig wie der Prophet Muhammed und versuchte sie zu ficken erst als sie 15 war. Schliesslich entjungferte er Lita auf dem gekachelten Fussboden seines Dampfbades. Er wollte nicht Gummis benutzen, sie wären "unästetisch". Lita wurde schwanger als sie 16 war. Er war 35.
ellauri037.html on line 162: 1934 war eine 20-jährige an der Reihe, 1941 eine 22-jährige, die auf dem Rasen vor Charlies Hause schwanger wurde. In der Zwischenzeit war Chaplin Oona begegnet, den 17-jährigen Tochter des berühmten Dramatikers Eugene O´Neill. Sie wurde sein vierte und letzte Ehefrau. Als er starb, hatte Chaplin acht weitere Kinder gezeugt - das letzte, als er über 70 Jahre alt war.
ellauri037.html on line 358: Where will those tootsy-wootsies finally wander?
ellauri037.html on line 648: Sie gewann den Prozeß, und er mußte ihr für den Rest ihres Lebens eine Entschädigung zahlen. Nach diesem Vorfall brach er
ellauri037.html on line 673: Dennoch hat er die Frauen nie aus seinem Leben verbannt. In einer Zeitschrift schrieb er von einem «Fräulein Medon», einer Schauspielerin von großem Charme, die mit bürgerlichem Namen Caroline Richter hieß. Er umwarb und gewann sie, und wieder dachte er an Heirat. Nach seiner sorgfältigen Analyse war sie "recht zufriedenstellend", als Geliebte oder als Ehefrau. Aber wieder erhoben sich seine Vorsicht und sein Zynismus. Er war verliebt, aber er war auch Philosoph. Sein Pessimismus gewann die Oberhand, und die Idee einer Heirat wurde fallengelassen. Schopenhauer bedeutete sein absolutes Vertrauen auf die Unsterblichkeit seiner Werke mehr als Kinder, die er der Nachwelt hätte hinterlassen können. Dank Gott.
ellauri037.html on line 733: Und die irren Tritte wanken
ellauri037.html on line 772: Aber die Bilder, die ungewiß wanken
ellauri037.html on line 847: Schwankt mit ungewissem Schritte,
ellauri038.html on line 289: No sen nyt ainakin et julkkixuudella ja kusipäisyydellä on vahva positiivinen korrelaatio. Se et tyyppi pääse kiekumaan jossain koivun latvassa todistaa vaan, et se on onnistunut tyrkkimään jotkut muut pois vihreältä oxalta, kilpailevat linnunpojat ulos käenpesästä. Eli jos joku on suuri nimi tai julkkis niin sillon sitä on peukuttaneet a) muut kyynärpäilyssä onnistuneet kusipäät b) kasan päälle pyrkivät wannabe paskiaiset ja snobit tai c) helevetin tyhmä laahus joka juoksee perässä kun se näkee kohdat a) ja b).
ellauri039.html on line 325: Niinpä. Vyötärö on paxu, mut kazanto on kapea. Sivistystä ei enää minkäänlaista, ei sydämen eikä pään. Keneltähän tässä puuttuu historian tajua. Näitä wannabe kultapossuja nousee joka polvessa. Self employed freelance journalisti Haisu Pervonen on ehkä tietämättään sellainen.
ellauri039.html on line 384: "The process of making paper by hand allows me to be humble," according to Hatsipompponen's faculty profile. "As plant fiber, its beauty must be generated from nature. Our hands have brought paper into being. In paper resides a communion of nature and humanity." She wants to reveal a significant female job throughout the entire existence of papermaking. She thinks blank paper makes a Powerful Statement, as do stone and scissors.
ellauri039.html on line 515: Education, okay, well this one is a two bladed sword. I am studying finnish currently, and while they do suck at teaching their own language but they are teaching about proper nutrition! Which is pretty awesome if you ask me. It's great that they want to make sure even immigrants, like me, are healthy!
ellauri039.html on line 521: For me, a developed nation is one in which it cares for it´s people. That accepts science when it says “this affects your health negatively", and says “we don't want our people sick"
ellauri039.html on line 734: Pyhyyttä voidaan tuskin saavuttaa kuin likimääräisesti. Tässä tapauxessa olisi tyydyttävä vaatimattoman, laupiaaseen pirullisuuteen. Puheena oleva tekopyhimys on tässä kissojen niskaan syljeskellyt pikku-ukko. Toinen wannabe pyhimys, häränniskainen Tarrou kuolee ruttoon vipi viimeisenä. Reuxin sairaalloinen vaimo on sillä aikaa kuollut muualla tubiin. Kuolema niittää satoa, muistot vaan jää. Mut mitä muuta jää mistään muutenkaan, paizi mitä nyt lapsia ja pätäkkää. Tässä tapauxessa ei siis niitäkään.
ellauri041.html on line 795: am Schwanz die Katze grossen Schmerz.

ellauri041.html on line 923: Ich bin entflohn aus des Klosters Zwang,

ellauri041.html on line 955: Schwebte nach oben und verschwand.

ellauri041.html on line 1094: Er wandelt abseit und schaut sich nicht um

ellauri041.html on line 1120: So wandelt er weiter im stillen Gebete...
ellauri042.html on line 171: > Silti vanhuxet kokevat (jos uskaltavat kauppaan edes), että heitä tuijotellaan tartunnan pahimpina lähteinä. Varo wanhuxia! Ne voivat viedä sun hengityskoneesi!

ellauri042.html on line 688: In 2017 Gibson was diagnosed with early signs of vascular dementia. He died on 18 September 2019 in London, England, where Atwood was promoting her new book, five days after having a big stroke. Atwood later said about his death that it had not been unexpected due to the vascular dementia, had been a good one—and in a good hospital, and his children had time to come and say goodbye—and that he had been "declining and he had wanted to check out before he reached any further stages of that".
ellauri042.html on line 945: Despite his great education and poetic talents, Donne lived in poverty for several years, relying heavily on wealthy friends. He spent much of the money he inherited during and after his education on womanising, literature, pastimes, and travel. In 1601, Donne secretly married Anne More, with whom he had twelve children. In 1615 he was ordained Anglican deacon and then priest, although he did not want to take holy orders and only did so because the king ordered it. He also served as a member of Parliament in 1601 and in 1614.
ellauri043.html on line 253:

«Apt 10:11. 9. TOisna päiwänä/ cosca he matcas olit/ ja Caupungita lähestyit/ meni Petari ylös Salin ullackon rucoileman/ liki cuudetta hetke/ ja cuin hän isois/ tahdoi hän suurusta. 10. Cosca he hänelle walmistit/ tuli hän horroxijn: Ja näki Taiwan auki/ ja alas tulewan tygöns yhden astian nijncuin suuren lijnaisen waatten neliculmaisen/ sidottuna/ joca alaslaskettin Taiwast maan päälle.
ellauri043.html on line 254: 12. Josa oli caickinaisia nelijalcaisia maan eläimitä ja medzillisiä/ ja matelewaisia/ ja lendäwäisiä Taiwan alla. 13. Ja yxi äni sanoi hänelle: Petari/ nouse/ tapa ja syö.
14. Petari wastais: en suingan HERra/ sillä en ole minä ikänäns syönyt mitän yhteist eli saastaista.
ellauri043.html on line 280: Waan sentähden on se minulle ilmoitettu/ että sen selitys pidäis Cuningalle tiettäwäxi tuleman/ ja sinä saisit sinun sydämes ajatuxet tietä. 31. Sinä Cuningas näit/ ja cadzo/ suuri ja corkia cuwa seisoi sinun edesäs/ ja se oli hirmuinen nähdä. 32. Sen cuwam pää oli parahimmast cullast/ mutta rinda ja käsiwarret olit hopiast/ sen wadza ja landet olit waskest. 33. Sen sääret olit raudast/ sen jalgat olit puolittain raudast/ ja puolittain sawest. 34. Sencaltaista sinä näit/ sijhenasti cuin yxi kiwi temmattin ilman käsitä/ ja löi sen cuwan jalcoin/ jotca raudast ja sawest olit/ ja murensi heidän. 35. Silloin tulit ne caicki muserretuxi/
ellauri043.html on line 281: rauta/ sawi/ waski/ hopia ja culda/ ja tulit nijncuin acanat suwirijhes/ ja tuuli wei ne pois/ nijn ettei nijtä sillen taittu löyttä: mutta kiwi joca cuwa löi/ tuli suurexi wuorexi/ nijn että se coco maan täytti. 36. Tämä on se uni/ nyt me tahdomma Cuningalle sen selityxen sanoa. 37. SInä Cuningas olet Cuningasten Cuningas/ jolle Jumala taiwast waldacunnan/ woiman/ wäkewyden/ ja cunnian andanut on. 38. Ja caicki joisa ihmisen lapset asuwat/ ja eläimet kedolla/ ja linnut taiwan alla on hän sinun käsijs andanut/ ja sinulle näiden caickein päälle lainais wallan.
ellauri043.html on line 282: 39. Sinä se cullainen pää olet/ sinun jälkes pitä yhden toisen waldacunnan tuleman/ halwembi cuin sinä. Sijtte se colmas waldacunda/ joca waskinen on/ jonga pitä caicki maacunnat hallidzeman. 40. Sen neljännen pitä cowan oleman nijncuin raudan/ sillä nijncuin rauta särke ja murenda caicki/ ja nijncuin rauta caicki ricko/ juuri nijn tämän pitä myös caicki särkemän ja murendaman. 41. Mutta ettäs näit jalgat ja warpat/ puolittain sawest ja puolittain raudast/ sen pitä jaetun waldacunnan
ellauri043.html on line 283: oleman. Cuitengin pitä rauistuttamisest sijhen jäämän/ nijncuin sinä näit raudan olewan sawella secoitetun. 42. Ja että warpat sen jalgois/ puolittain rauta/ ja puolittain sawi oli/ sen pitä puolittain wahwan/ ja puolittain heicon waldacunnan oleman. 43. Ja ettäs näit rausecoitetun sawella/ kyllä he ihmisen siemenellä secoitetan/ mutta ei he cuitengan ripu kijnni toinen toisesans/ nijncuin ei rauta taita secoitetta sawen cansa yhten. 44. Mutta näiden waldacundain aicana on Jumala taiwasta yhden waldacunnan asettawa/ joca ei ikänäns cukisteta/ ja hänen waldacundans ei pidä toiselle Canssalle annettaman/ sen pitä caicki nämät särkemän ja hajottaman
ellauri046.html on line 377: Crop Rotation: If you want to be happy, keep rotating your view of things, like farmers rotate their crops. Learn how to forget.

ellauri047.html on line 80: „Er besitzt, was man Genie nennt, und eine ganz außerordentliche Einbildungskraft. Er ist in seinen Affekten heftig. Er hat eine edle Denkungsart. […] Er liebt die Kinder und kann sich mit ihnen sehr beschäftigen. Er ist bizarre und hat in seinem Betragen, seinem Äußerlichen verschiedenes, das ihn unangenehm machen könnte. Aber bei Kindern, bei Frauenzimmern und vielen andern ist er doch wohl angeschrieben. – Er tut, was ihm gefällt, ohne sich darum zu kümmern, ob es anderen gefällt, ob es Mode ist, ob es die Lebensart erlaubt. Aller Zwang ist ihm verhaßt. […] Aus den schönen Wissenschaften und Künsten hat er sein Hauptwerk gemacht oder vielmehr aus allen Wissenschaften, nur nicht denen sogenannten Brotwissenschaften.“
ellauri047.html on line 488: Schlangenwandelnd.
ellauri047.html on line 782: Strassburgista ostin Proustin Du coté de chez Swann. Siitä alkoi kirjojen lueskelu alkukielellä. Goethe teki razastusretkiä Strassburgista aina Saarbrückeniin, jonka jenkkipaskiaiset pommitti WW2:n lopulla sileäxi kuten Dresdenin. Siellä oli pelkkiä uusia taloja, kun mä kävin siellä DFKIssa tapaamassa Hans Uzkoreitia. Saarbrücken oli sille kuin mulle Kouvola, sietämätön tuppukylä. Erottuaan Swannista se lähti kiidulla takaisin synnyinkaupunkiinsa Berliiniin, josta se oli karannut muurin alta länteen.
ellauri048.html on line 214: sydän on täynnä mitä se haluaa, ja enkun want

ellauri048.html on line 926: Goethe plucks the flower although it tells him not to do so. He takes it to his house and plants it in his garden. He wants to tell us, viewers or readers, look how noble I am, he because he takes it home. He doesn't realize that by taking the flower home he is taking her wild life away and domisticating it in his factory (garden). In that he is not different from industrialists and people who practise green house raising. It is like enslaving his flower and on top of that he wants to be applauded and praised because he doesn't kill it. However, he does't listen to what his flower says: do not pluck me or I will die.
ellauri048.html on line 1076: EITHER they had to knuckle under and settle for a "sublimated", more-or-less disembodied, spiritualized passion . . . . OR they could plunge and risk martyrdom. They must have agreed that they had no taste for martyrdom — or even Byronic exile. . . . It is clear they both knew, in their heart of hearts, they wanted to express their love for each other in a physical way; yes, even in a sexual way — Love and Duty is eloquent testimony to that. But both of them knew in the prevailing moral climate . . . there seemed to be no possibility of love between males that would not incur hysterical opposition. . . . There is not much doubt, had they wanted to take the sexual path and do so openly, they would only have wanted the kind of sex which they felt about each other.
ellauri048.html on line 1118: The medical report on the death certificate listed 'Schlagfluss' – that is, a stroke. A blood-vessel near the brain had suddenly burst. The autopsy declared 'a weakness of the cerebral vessels, and a want of sufficient energy in the heart.' The coffin was quickly sealed and sent to the nearest seaport, to be returned to England for burial.
ellauri048.html on line 1184: Forgive these wild and wandering cries, Anna ilmatteex nää villit kiljahtelut,
ellauri048.html on line 1308: Drops in his vast and wandering grave. putoaa sen valtavaan vaeltavaan kuoppaan.
ellauri048.html on line 1377: Yet as that other, wandering there Kuiteskin se toinen kulkiessaan
ellauri048.html on line 1768: I wander, often falling lame,
ellauri048.html on line 1796: Is dash'd with wandering isles of night.
ellauri048.html on line 1864: Nor any want-begotten rest.
ellauri050.html on line 552: nur ein Vorwand, zu sein: seine letzte Geburt. vain tekosyy on ollaxeen olla: sen viimeinen syntymä.
ellauri050.html on line 963: Über den ich wandle eli mudassa mä kahlaan,
ellauri051.html on line 639: 85 Not words, not music or rhyme I want, not custom or lecture, not even the best, En taho sanoja, musaa tai loppusointuja, en palvelua enkä luentoa, en edes parasta,
ellauri051.html on line 651: and lovers, wannabe rakastajia,
ellauri051.html on line 1354: 754 At apple-peelings wanting kisses for all the red fruit I find, 754 Omenankuorilla toivoen suudelmia kaikille punaisille hedelmille, joita löydän,
ellauri051.html on line 1362: 762 Where the humming-bird shimmers, where the neck of the long-lived swan is curving and winding, 762 Missä kolibri hohtaa, missä pitkäikäisen joutsenen kaula kiemurtelee ja kiertyy,
ellauri051.html on line 1597: 990 Say, old top-knot, what do you want? 990 Sano, vanha pätkä, mitä haluat?
ellauri051.html on line 1960: 1340 If you want me again look for me under your boot-soles. 1340 Jos haluat mut uudestaan ezi saappaan anturoiden alta.
ellauri052.html on line 60: Eugene Henderson is a troubled middle-aged man 1948. (synt. 1800-luvulla). Despite his riches, high social status, and physical prowess, he feels restless and unfulfilled, and harbors a spiritual void that manifests itself as an inner voice crying out "I want, I want, I want". Hoping to discover what the voice wants, Henderson goes to Africa. What a Yankee notion.
ellauri052.html on line 678: Duunattuaan vähän aikaa arkeologisilla kaivauxilla (kuten mä) T.E. meni vapaaehtoisena väkeen (toisin kuin mä). Se teki muistinpanoja varusmiespalveluxesta (kuten mä).
Sale nähtävästi tunnisti Arabian Larskassa izensälaisen wannabe suklaapuolen miehen. Homofoobit on usein homofiilejä ja kääntäen. T.E. kirjoitti paljon pitkiä kirjeitä (kuten mä) kuuluisuuxille (toisin kuin mä): G B Shaw, Edward Elgar, Winston Churchill, Robert Graves, Noël Coward, E. M. Forster, Siegfried Sassoon, John Buchan, Augustus John, and Henry Williamson. Mitäh, olix nääkin kaikki hilpeitä?
ellauri052.html on line 737: `No, I don't want one.'
ellauri052.html on line 812: `That's certainly one way of looking at it. I can say this much, I feel better. It has certainly helped me. Is this the Bruderschaft you wanted?'
ellauri052.html on line 818: `At any rate, one feels freer and more open now -- and that is what we want.'
ellauri053.html on line 556: Semantiikkaa. Se on Uarnen mielisana. Sillä sanalla on rumat talousliberaalit jäljet. Mulla oli Hayakawan kirja niin nuorena etten edes sitä honannut.
ellauri053.html on line 1270: Leda and the Swan Leda på en svan
ellauri054.html on line 187: Riikonen even found his wife-to-be, Salme Marjatta, at the University. They both studied Latin and attended the same lectures. The couldn’t marry until 11.5 years after their first meeting, however, as H. K. Riikonen wanted to follow scholar Valentin Kiparsky’s advice to not marry until his dissertation was complete. "Saatuani väitöskirjani valmiixi aion palata mielirunoilijani Horatiuxen pariin." Julkaistuaan kirjeet Tarastin kanssa kirjana Eero ja Hannu (vai oliko se toisinpäin) se sanoi myhisten partaansa: "seuraavaxi aion julkaista rakkauskirjeeni."
ellauri055.html on line 545: Anni Swanin huvilassa asuu jumeja ja kuolemankelloja. Niin tässäkin, vaikka ollaan muka Sysmässä. Ei olla, kyllä tää on Kangasniemeä.
ellauri055.html on line 553: Eilen käytiin rengasmatkalla Kangasniemellä. Nähtiin laituri josta pääsee veneellä Anni Swanin huvilasaarelle. Saarta ei näkynyt. Sinne olis ollut 3km uintimatka. Ei lähdetty. Kangasniemi oli ihan yhtä kuollut paikka talviteloilla kuin Sysmiö, mutta kauniimpi. Puulavesi on erämaajärvi Päijänteeseen verrattuna. Mezät siellä päin on sääälittäviä, tikuixi hakattuja männiköitä.
ellauri055.html on line 597: Helluntaiystävien kahvikuzuissa kävi pikkuhattuisia tätejä, joilla oli värisevät lauluäänet ja viheltävä hengitys. Leuassa oli näppylä ja siinä karva. Ne oli nonparelleja kuin englantilaiset lakut. Arkkitehdin bilevieraat Anni Swanin saaressa on samanlaisia, vaikka fixumpia ihmisiä tietysti, ekonomeja, arkkitehteja, psykologeja ja yliopistolaisia. Sinuttelu käy vielä kankeasti. Rva T:n kallein aarre on loviisalaisen hopeasepän rokokookannu jossa on siseloidut jalat ja nuppina suloinen kukkanen. Että minkälaiset? kysyy Mirkku oomoilasena. Hande selittää kärsivällisesti et siselöinti on jotain hopeankäsittelyä. Aha.
ellauri055.html on line 607: Ja tie eeku paranoo kun bailut lämpenevät. Pirre eläytyy hyvin myös väpelön Handen arvomaailmaan. No Jaakon ja Pirren mökki lienee joku tönö Anni Swanin huvilan huussimezässä. Vähän samanlainen kuin Aarne Rannalla ja sen perheellä Nilkin kesäsiirtolassa. Sevverran kokematon on Pirre sauna-asioissa ezen ukot luulee saunan lämpötilan nousevan löylynheitosta. Hassunhauskahko on bailuemäntä joka säntää järveen ja hukkaa silmälasit jorpakkoon, lainaa sattuvasti Mao Tse Tungin runoja ja on hyvin hyvin onneton. Täähän on vähän kuin Theofrastosta tai Jean de la Bruyereä, hullunkurisia luonteita.
ellauri055.html on line 1186: Heikki Järnefeltin äiti oli Saimi Swan. Isä oli Eero. Hömelö Arvid oli Eeron isoveli, Sibben Aino kuopus. Eero oli oikeistolainen kermaperse joka suhteessa. Sitä Toope varsin kadehti. Sibbis vääntelehti velkakierteessä Toopen tavoin. Ainolassa piti olla hiljaa. Aho löntysteli kalatamineissa Nobel-haaveissa.
ellauri058.html on line 83: Astrid Lindgren does not shy away from describing the situation for African-Americans during that era. Her language is not always comfortable, at least not for this day, referring to blacks as “the coloured race,” “young negro girl,” and, embarrassingly, “darkies.” How much of this is just a rough translation, how much of it is accurate translation, how much was totally acceptable back then, how much did Lindgren want us to feel uncomfortable . . .? Yeah, things sucked back then (*cough*even more than they do now*cough*) for African-Americans, and it shouldn’t be comfortable to read about it.
ellauri058.html on line 478: Ookei, tän perusteella ei tarvi enempää Hotakaista plärätä. Se on jo Juoksuhaudantiestä nähty. Vaikea uskoa että sitä pidetään humoristina. Taiwanilaisessa A Sun leffassa naurettiin vaan kerran: kun vankilasta vapautunut heebo pyysi uhriltansa anteexi että oli katkassut siltä käden, uhri nauroi kovaa ja ilottomasti. Hotakaisen huumori on vähän saman tasosta.
ellauri060.html on line 243: In 1685, Defoe joined the ill-fated Monmouth Rebellion but gained a pardon, by which he escaped the Bloody Assizes of Judge George Jeffreys. Queen Mary and her husband William III were jointly crowned in 1689, and Defoe became one of William's close allies and a secret agent. Some of the new policies led to conflict with France, thus damaging prosperous trade relationships for Defoe. In 1692, he wanxus arrested for debts of £700 and, in the face of total debts that may have amounted to £17,000, was forced to declare bankruptcy. He died with little wealth and evidently embroiled in lawsuits with the royal treasury.
ellauri060.html on line 450: Antin sukulainen toimittaja Tuomas Manninen kommentoi: Uimahalleissa roiskuttelu on oikeasti vakava tasa-arvokysymys. On oikeasti olemassa kantelevia kilpauimareita, koppavia veetee uimavalvojia ja kostonhimoisia vallasihmisiä jotka jatkaa riitaa hallinto-oikeuteen asti sukanvarresta löytämillään säästöillä. Suomessa on totuteltava tämmöisiin jenkkityylisiin korvauskanteisiin. Tuumaa wan Anni">Anni Swanin mökissä asuva pojanpoikansa Ilta-Sanomien mainio toimittaja Tuomas Manninen. Asia ratkennee vasta KHO:ssa. Kantaja oli hapan ilkimys rva Haapasalo, kriminaalizykologi Salosta, joka sittemmin vielä ärhenteli kun Salo voitti jonkun koripallopokaalin ja "koko Salo hurrasi", paizi tää sitruuna, joka ei kilpaurheilusta perusta. Se tykkää vaan kuntouinnista, kunhan keulijat ei roiskuta. Oiskohan syytä huolestua kun omat mielipiteet nazaa ilmiselviin kusipäihin? Mäkään en siedä eliittiurheilua enkä "koko Salo" tyyppistä kirkonkellojen soittelua. No huolestun kyllä vähän, mutta kantaani en tarkista.
ellauri060.html on line 1042: The core issue is the Web as we know has been dying, as people all over the world do not want to bother to put up links to other high quality content just for the sake it. It is not that there is no such excellent content, there certainly is on the Web itself which now has tens of trillions of archived pages.
ellauri061.html on line 568: Conjures the wandering stars, and makes them stand kuzuu esiin planeetat, ja saa ne pysähtymään
ellauri061.html on line 852: julistettacan HERran wanhurscautta/ ja

ellauri061.html on line 853: hänen taloinpoicains wanhurscautta

ellauri061.html on line 1123: Jos Pervo ois saanut Finlandia-palkinnon, ois akkainlehdet soitelleet ja naimatarjouxia sadellu julkisuuden- ja kullinkipeiltä. Mut pääsipä hän kuitenkin televisioon ilkkumaan. Vaimoa ei wannabe nobelisti töihin laskisi: tekisikö hänen uraloikkansa Jarzasta kotitohvelin, joka voisizä kulta hakea pennut kun ei sulla ole mitään tekemistä. Vaimo voitonriemuisena ja Jarza hädissään nai kuin viimeistä päivää. Etovaa, sanoisi F.E. Sillanpää.
ellauri062.html on line 269: Only when June learns it is essentially Serena's personal request to meet Nichole, she eventually agrees, pointing out she wants Serena "to owe her". Ihankuin Jill Pylkkänen: they owe me SOOOO much. Tääkin on jotain juutalaiskristillisyyttä. Serena is still bitter about the loss of Nichole. Later, June visits the Lincoln Memorial where the statue of Abraham Lincoln has been desecrated (actually only beheaded). June tells Serena that she is small, cold, and empty and that she will always be empty. Wrong, to the contrary, June is full of shit.
ellauri062.html on line 571: Lola rennt ist ein deutscher Actionthriller des deutschen Regisseurs und Filmproduzenten Tom Tykwer aus dem Jahr 1998 mit Franka Potente und Moritz Bleibtreu in den Hauptrollen. Der Film zeigt dreimal dieselbe Zeitspanne von zwanzig Minuten, jedes Mal mit kleinen Detailunterschieden, die die Handlung jeweils zu einem völlig anderen Ausgang führen (Schmetterlingseffekt in einer Form ähnlich einer Zeitschleife).
ellauri062.html on line 760: Oskar Dirlewanger oli saksalainen sotilas, joka toisessa maailmansodassa komensi useisiin sotarikoksiin syyllistynyttä 36. Waffen-SS-divisioonaa.
ellauri063.html on line 92: The first form seeks to bring ‘socialism’ to the mass of the population, whether they want it or not. It is imposed from above by a centralised, or even a democratically legitimated, state, as its name suggests. This app … (more)
ellauri063.html on line 212: If a Mogwai gets wet, it spawns new Mogwai from its back; small balls of fur that are approximately the size of a marble pop out from the wet Mogwai's back, then the furballs start to grow in size before unfolding themselves into new and fully grown Mogwai. This process does not take much time but it still usually takes just about a minute. According to the novel, the creator of the species, Mogturmen, wanted the Mogwai to be able to easily reproduce themselves. The cocoon and gremlin stage are unwanted defects from when the Mogwai species was created. It turned out that all the positive attributes are recessive.
ellauri063.html on line 319: “There is no contradiction between creation and destruction. I never thought music was a healing force of the universe. I didn’t agree with Mr. Albert Ayler. But we wanted to change things; we needed a new start. In Germany, we all grew up with the same thing: ‘Never again.’ But in the government, all the same old Nazis were still there. We were angry. We wanted to do something.” Like jazz.
ellauri063.html on line 356: Deutschland schafft sich ab ist der Titel eines 2010 erschienenen Buches von Thilo Sarrazin. Es trägt den Untertitel Wie wir unser Land aufs Spiel setzen. Sarrazin beschäftigt sich darin mit den Auswirkungen auf Deutschland, die sich seiner Ansicht nach aus der Kombination von Geburtenrückgang, wachsender Unterschicht und Zuwanderung aus überwiegend muslimischen Ländern ergeben werden. Das Buch erlangte bereits im Vorfeld der Veröffentlichung erhebliche Medienaufmerksamkeit, Der Spiegel und die Bild-Zeitung veröffentlichten vorab Auszüge. Bis Anfang 2012 wurden über 1,5 Millionen Exemplare verkauft. Das Buch stand 2010 und 2011 insgesamt 21 Wochen lang auf Platz 1 der Spiegel-Bestsellerliste.
ellauri064.html on line 106: Spätestens seit dem Untergang des Realsozialismus denkt heute kaum noch jemand an solche Lokomotiven. Die Vorstellung einer besseren Zukunft mag in der Ideologie des Neoliberalismus noch einigen präsent sein, etwa der Wunschtraum eines Kapitalismus, der irgendwann keine Diskriminierungen mehr kennen wird – den meisten Linken dürfte die Hoffnung aber erst einmal abhandengekommen sein.
ellauri064.html on line 112: Konstruktive, kreative Köpfe sollen es richten: Ein paar Erfindungen hier, ein paar schlaue Ideen da – so kann das Ende der Menschheit vielleicht doch noch verhindert werden. Doch auch Tausende Hackathons werden nicht helfen, wenn die gesellschaftlichen und ökonomischen Ursachen des Klimawandels unangetastet bleiben, also die kapitalistische Produktionsweise, die dem Profit grundsätzlich den höchsten Stellenwert einräumt, nicht beendet wird.
ellauri064.html on line 118: Einst war der Marxismus von einem unbändigen Optimismus geprägt: Nach der Revolution wird der neue Mensch geschaffen, immerzu geht irgendwer dem Sonnenaufgang entgegen, ist der Zukunft zugewandt.
ellauri064.html on line 358: The Network for Dialogical Practices is an open platform for researchers, students and practitioners who want to help people in distress by full presence, responsiveness and human connection. The European Network for open dialogical practices started in 2008 to care for the legacy of Tom Andersen, Gianfranco Cecchin and Michael White who all passed away shortly one after another and to preserve their voices for the future generations.
ellauri065.html on line 167: Kahden maailmansodan välisenä aikana monet Saksassa väittivät, että vuosina 1919–1922 Puolalle luovutettu alue olisi palautettava Saksaan. Tämä väite oli yksi perusteluista Saksan hyökkäykselle Puolaan vuonna 1939, mikä ilmoitti toisen maailmansodan alkamiselle. Kolmas valtakunta liitti entiset Saksan maat, käsittäen " Puolan käytävän ", Länsi-Preussin, Posenin maakunnan ja osia Itä- Ylä-Sleesiaa. Valtuusto on Danzigin vapaakaupunki äänesti tulla osaksi Saksan jälleen, vaikka puolalaisia ja juutalaisia riistettiin äänioikeuttaan ja kaikki muut kuin natsien puolueiden kiellettiin. Vuonna 1919 menetettyjen alueiden ottamisen lisäksi Saksa otti myös lisää maata, joka ei ollut koskaan ollut saksalainen. Adolf Hitlerin kahdessa asetuksessa (8. lokakuuta ja 12. lokakuuta 1939) jaetut Puolan alueet jaettiin hallinnollisiin yksiköihin: Reichsgau Wartheland (alun perin Reichsgau Posen), johon kuului koko Poznańin voivodikunta, suurin osa Łódźin voivodikunnasta, viisi Pommerin voivodikunnan lääniä ja yksi Warszawan voivodikunnan lääni ; Reichsgau Danzig-Länsi-Preussit (alun perin Reichsgau Länsi-Preussit), joka koostui jäljellä olevasta Pommerin voivodikunnan alueesta ja Danzigin vapaakaupungista ; Ciechanówin alue ( Regierungsbezirk Zichenau), joka koostuu viidestä Warszawan voivodikunnan pohjoisesta läänistä ( Płock, Płońsk, Sierpc, Ciechanów ja Mława ), josta tuli osa Itä-Preussia; Katowicen alue (Regierungsbezirk Kattowitz) tai Itä-Ylä-Sleesia ( Ost-Oberschlesien ), johon kuului Sosnowiecin, Będzinin, Chrzanówin ja Zawiercien läänit sekä osat Olkuszin ja Żywiecin läänistä. Näiden alueiden pinta-ala oli 94.000 km 2 ja asukasluku 10.000.000 ihmistä. Liittyneet Puolan alueet olivat koko sodan ajan Saksan kolonisaation alaisia. Itse Saksasta tulleiden uudisasukkaiden puuttuessa siirtolaiset olivat pääasiassa etnisiä saksalaisia, jotka siirrettiin muualta Itä-Euroopasta. Nämä etniset saksalaiset uudelleensijoitettiin koteihin, joista puolalaiset oli karkotettu. Loput Puolan alueesta liittyi Neuvostoliittoon (ks. Molotov – Ribbentrop -sopimus ) tai tehtiin Saksan hallitsemalle valtionhallinnon miehitysvyöhykkeelle. Sen jälkeen, kun Saksan hyökkäys Neuvostoliittoon kesäkuussa 1941 alueella Białystokin, johon kuului Białystok, Bielsk Podlaski, Grajewo, Łomża, Sokółka, Volkovysk, ja Grodno läänien oli "kiinni" (ei sisällytetty) Itä-Preussi, kun taas Itä Galicia ( District of Galicia ), johon sisältyi kaupungit Lwów, Stanisławów ja Tarnopol tehtiin osa julkisyhteisöjen.
ellauri065.html on line 204: Six says, "each film is a reaction to the other. And the film got so big, it was a pop culture phenomenon, and people wanted more: a bigger centipede, helicopters and things… it had to be bigger and bigger. And what I did, I used the idea and almost made a parody on the human centipede films itself." As Full Sequence was intended to make First Sequence look like My Little Pony in comparison, Final Sequence was intended to make Full Sequence resemble a Disney film. Aargh.
ellauri066.html on line 220: Runoilija Carlson kiistelee erälehdessä yxiäänisesti edesmenneen Tuomas Anhawan kanssa siitä minkä kuusen kävystä on kysymys ja missä hauin laulu ylösmerkittiin. Voisihan se olla niinnii että Aaro kirjas Puulaveden erähavainnon ylös myöhemmin. Kesien kesänä 1928 oli Lempin käpy Aaron penseissä päällimmäisenä. Vitun pompöösisti Aaro vetää äänityxen, taisi olla aika itsetärkeä ja mahtipontinen. Mahtavalla äänellä mä rallin viskaan. Nää ei ole mitään velkahirsiä. Aarolla oli muuten huulihalkio, sinänsä viaton mutta izetunnon kannalta hankala esteettinen vamma, samanlainen kuin hauella. Tai jänöllä. Shöshshöttävä äshshä voishi shelittyä shiitä.
ellauri066.html on line 318: Tompan novelleissa piisaa sofistikoitua koomillista sanaleikkiä, tietysti, mutta tekijä, älyttömän mätystyxen ystävänä, tykkää vulgääreistä vizeistä, naurettavista läpistä, nurinkurisista akronyymeistä, syntaxipastissista, hopomaisista nimistä, esim Pentti Pakana, Herpertti Rei'ikäs, Oidipa Massa, Leo Pyöriä, Viki Kirsikkakokis, Väpi Nurja, ja Tri Tarjoilupöytä. Kipparikallemainen seilori nimeltä Porsas Bodaaja esiintyy useassa kirjassa (no sehän on yxi piipunrassimaisen Pynchonin monista wannabe alter egoista), tai joku sen lukuisista puritaani-esi-isistä. Ihan varmasti sua naurattaa itäintialainen peräaukkolääkäri nimeltä Pokemon. Mua nauratti eniten limainen hahmo nimeltä Viv Epperdew. En mä oikeastaan tiedä mixi, mut mä vaan repesin ja hajosin.
ellauri066.html on line 728: At the Headzone salon, hairdresser Fay Botsi, 23, says: “We don’t want to wear masks or visors. We keep our distance and use disinfectant.”
ellauri066.html on line 914: “I think we are reasonably optimistic,” Tegnell said last August. “Our prognosis is, No, we don’t really see a huge second wave coming on.” This did not last. By December, cases and hospitalizations were higher than they’d been since the earliest days of the pandemic. Intensive-care units in Stockholm and Malmö, the country’s third biggest city, were full. “It was just this development we did not want to see,” Björn Eriksson, Stockholm’s director of health and medical care, said during a press conference.
ellauri067.html on line 487: Hey, I just figured out that "Who Framed Roger Rabbit" might be making a sly allusion.... that Roger and Jessica Rabbit are named after Roger Mexico and Jessica Swanlake from Gravity´s Rainbow by Pynchon. Posted by ergomatic at 7:16 AM on March 16, 2016. Why it's obvious! just look at Roger's incisors!
ellauri067.html on line 493: Book reviewers have a long history of attacking Pynchon for his flat characters. Roger and Jessica are susceptible to this criticism. Neither is given much of a history. We don’t know where they grew up or who their parents were. This is one of the great failings of... what to call it? "middlebrow" is antiquated... anyway, a very common kind of criticism (common in the Anglo-American world, anyway), and it affects how authors write (which is one reason I read mainly Russian literature these days). I don't need to know "where they grew up or who their parents were" and I don't much care, unless, of course, you write about it brilliantly because that´s truly what you want to focus on, as opposed to "welp, better provide a plausible background for my characters so the reader will believe they're behaving this way." Just write good sentences in a good and surprising order. Two people have fallen out of love? I don't care if it's because one of them has mommy issues or the other was bullied as a child—people fall out of love all the time, for any reason or none, just tell me what they do about it, and in language that makes me want to keep reading! Teoxet on tärkeät, vähät elämästä. En jaxa luontokuvauxia, hyppään ne heti yli.
ellauri069.html on line 222: Richard Fariña, to whom Gravity's Rainbow is dedicated, was a good friend of Pynchon's when they were students at Cornell University in the 50s. In 1963, Farina married Mimi Baez, a folksinger and sister of Joan Baez. Although first married under the Napoleonic Code in a secret ceremony in Paris in the spring of 1963, they had an official marriage in Carmel, California, for the benefit of the Baez family. Pynchon was the best man for the Carmel ceremony, coming up from Mexico City where he was living and working on Gravity's Rainbow. In A Long Time Coming and a Long Time Gone, Farina's posthumously published collection of stories (Random House, 1969), Farina describes his and Pynchon's visit to the Monterey Fair. Richard and Mimi Farina formed a folk-music duo (Farina on guitar and Mimi on dulcimer, both singing) and released several albums in the 60s. Richard Farina was killed in a motorcycle crash following a book signing in Carmel for his newly published first (and only) novel, Been Down So Long It Looks Like Up To Me (Random House, 1966). You might want to visit this sweet website dedicated to the memory of Richard and Mimi (who died of cancer in 2001).
ellauri069.html on line 393: —the love affair between statistician Roger Mexico and Jessica Swanlake, whose love seems to be all that can save him from being psychologically consumed by the war;
ellauri069.html on line 459: As my favourite English teacher in university used to say, “Stop it. Use your intelligence, not your attitude.” If the querent is seriously perplexed by the book, he might want to consult the Wikipedia article on it, which explains the book more or less adequately and also provides pointers to literature on the subject.
ellauri070.html on line 239: Naht aber Nacht, so wandeln sie leiser, und bald Hämärä saapuu, hiljaa mennään, pian kuutamo nousee
ellauri070.html on line 426: Stephen Collins Foster (4. heinäkuuta 1826 – 13. tammikuuta 1864) oli yhdysvaltalainen lauluntekijä, joka tunnetaan ”amerikkalaisen musiikin isinä”. Monet hänen kappaleistaan ovat kansanlaulunomaisia ja niissä on vaikutteita Yhdysvaltojen etelävaltioiden musiikista, vaikka Foster ei itse asunut koskaan etelävaltioissa. Hänen laulunsa, kuten ”Oh! Susanna”, ”Camptown Races”, ”My Old Kentucky Home”, ”Old Black Joe”, ”Beautiful Dreamer” ja ”Old Folks at Home” (”Swanee River”), ovat suosittuja vielä nykyäänkin. Tää on jo ainaskin toinen Amer. musan isi. Vanhempi vielä kun se jutku joka teki Dog bless American.
ellauri071.html on line 44: Tucker Carlson Justifies Kenosha Shootings: Vigilante Kid Did What ‘No One Else Would’ AND THERE IT IS “How shocked are we that 17-year-olds with rifles decided they had to maintain order when no one else would?” Carlson asked his viewers on Wednesday night. “Our leaders want us to believe this is a racial conflict, they’re always telling us it is. They’re lying. It is not a racial conflict,” Carlson grumbled, adding: “This is not a race war. This is a class war.” Updated Aug. 27, 2020 5:20AM ET / Published Aug. 26, 2020 9:11PM ET
ellauri071.html on line 492: Als weitere deutsche Trivialnamen wurden unter anderem Waldmeier, Mösch, Mäserich, Mai(en)kraut, Zehrkraut und Herz(ens)freu(n)d genannt. Im deutschsprachigen Raum werden oder wurden für diese Pflanzenart, zum Teil nur regional, auch die folgenden weiteren Trivialnamen verwandt: Gliedegenge (Schlesien), Gliedekraut (Schlesien), Gliederzunge, Gliedzwenge, Halskräutlein (Elsass), Herfreudeli (Bern, Freiburg), Herzfreud, Leberkraut, Mäsch (Mecklenburg), Mariengras, Massle, Meesske (Ostpreußen), Wohlriechend Megerkraut, Meiserich, Meister (Westfalen), Mentzel, Meserich (Schlesien), Meusch (Mecklenburg), Möschen (Holstein, Ostpreußen), Möseke (Mark bei Rheinsberg), Schumarkel, Sternleberkraut (Schweiz), Theekraut (Schweiz), User leiven Fraun Bedstoa (Göttingen), Waldmännlein und Wooldmester (Bremen, Unterweser).
ellauri072.html on line 145: No More Games. No More Bombs. No More Walking. No More Fun. No More Swimming. 67. That is 17 years past 50. 17 more than I needed or wanted. Boring. I am always bitchy. No Fun – for anybody. 67. You are getting Greedy. Act your old age. Relax – This won’t hurt.
ellauri072.html on line 155: Akutagawa syntyi Tokiossa maitomiehen poikana. Hän sai lisänimen Ryūnosuke, ”Lohikäärmeen poika”, koska hänen sanottiin syntyneen lohikäärmeen vuonna 1892, lohikäärmeen kuussa, lohikäärmeen päivänä lohikäärmeen tuntina. Asiasta ei kuitenkaan ole varmuutta, sillä tallessa ei ole syntymätodistusta, josta Akutagawan tarkka syntymäaika ilmenisi. Hän kasvoi enonsa perheessä ja sai siksi äitinsä tyttönimen Akutagawa. Eliskä siis maitomies käväistessään enolassa täytteli muutakin kuin pulloja.
ellauri072.html on line 156: Suuri osa Akutagawan tuotannosta on vahvasti omaelämäkerrallista. Hän kamppaili horjuvan fyysisen kunnon ja mielenterveyden kanssa. Akutagawa kärsi harhoista ja syömishäiriöistä, yritti pari kertaa itsemurhaa ja onnistui siinä lopulta vuonna 1927, vain 35-vuotiaana. Kuolinsyy oli barbituraattien yliannostus.
ellauri072.html on line 160: It was an episode in Frost’s life that occurred in 1894, when he was 20. He desperately wanted to fuck his high school girlfriend, Elinor White, pressuring her to quit St. Lawrence University as he had Dartmouth. She refused.
ellauri072.html on line 168: Frost boarded a steamship from New York to Norfolk, and walked into the Great Dismal Swamp where, Hart maintained, he planned to commit suicide in the woods by a canal. Some biographers have scoffed at the idea that Frost wanted to “throw… [his] life away” in the swamp.
ellauri072.html on line 170: “But that’s what he said when he was candid in interviews,” Hart said, “that he wanted to put an end to his life in the Great Dismal Swamp. He went in with his street clothes, a little satchel, no food or gear. He was rescued by a couple of guys in a boat who were going down the canal [to pick up some duck hunters].”
ellauri072.html on line 178: “A lot of biographers didn’t want to go into that subject,” Hart said, shrugging. “Maybe they thought they would turn away readers.”
ellauri072.html on line 447: Esim Navalnyi ja Putin on aika samantyyppisiä roistoja, Alexei vaan uudempaa kaliiperia. Putin on vanhan neuvostokoulun miehiä, Navalnyi Mikko Alapuron ikäinen uusporvarillinen villin idän kaveri. Alexei on polittisesti Trumpin tyyppiä, kiero bisnesmies ja talousliberaali persu. Sitä kannattaa pääkaupunkien hipsterit, talousnousukkaat ja muslimifoobikot. Ei ihme että lännen globalisaation peukuttajat tukee sitä. Eine sitä ihan täysillä uskalla hehkuttaa kun se on niin arvaamaton kaveri. Jos se pääsee vallankahvaan siitä voikin tulla Putin kakkonen. Esim Ukrainan suhteen se ajaa yhdistymistä takas äiti Venäjään. Se ei olis wannabe länsikräkkääjille yhtään mieleen. Kiperähkö pähkinä.
ellauri072.html on line 477: What will happen when the age-old economy of scarcity gives way to the Age of Leisure? Professor Gabor, who won the 1971 Nobel Prize for physics offers a futuristic projection based on a static population and GNP, "classless, democratic, and uniformly rich." Fearful that total secruity "will create unbearable boredom and bring out the worst in Irrational Man," Gabor is anxious to retain "effort," "hardship," and the Protestant Ethic -- lest society dissolve in an orgy of anti-social, hedonistic nihilism (viz. the current drug explosion and the spoiled-brat students). To avoid such evils Gabor proposes that work and its attendant moral uplift be divorced from production and the service sector of the economy be vastly enlarged. But this is only the beginning -- enthusiastic about Social Engineering Gabor suggests using it to weed out potential misfits, trouble-makers and "power addicts"; supplementing I.Q. tests with E.Q. (Ethical Quotient) measurements; and modeling elementary and secondary education on the 19th century British public school which knew so well how to inculcate good citizenship, intellectual excellence and pride in achievement. The Third World, still wrestling with pre-industrial material want, is ignored -- since we can't afford any more industrial pollution presumably they will just have to adjust to their misery. Gabor's assessment of "the Nature of Man" shows a woefully naive Anglo-American ethnocentricity and complete ignorance of anthropology and his vision of post-industrial utopia operating on the moral axioms of the 19th century is as elitist as it is improbable.
ellauri072.html on line 489: You find yourself thinking that you wouldn’t have wanted him as your brother or lover or close friend, though he would probably have been a very good neighbor, course instructor, A.A. sponsor, or fellow American. You feel, to be honest, repelled.
ellauri073.html on line 275: Quickly on your attacks on Wallace's writing style, I will mention that -- contrary to your rather baffling notions -- people did enjoy Infinite Jest and other works of his. They will continue to do so for decades. Listen Fartey: his work will live on. People recognize great writing wherever it materializes. Forget your distaste of footnotes, or your struggle in understanding the themes and ideals his work encompasses. His audience is clearly beyond you, so try to see that not everyone feels the same as you. You don't have to like his writing, but when you detract from it it makes it even more apparent that you are the lesser man. Your comments on Foster's writing ability led me to some of your other articles, and to be completely honest, it wasn't all bad. I genuinely enjoyed your "Fucking vs. Making Love" poetry bit, although it did seem like a cheap knockoff of Black Coffee Blues. Regardless, I can still acknowledge that the piece had its moments. However (and this is where I want you to pay attention you tub of lard), the piece can also be slammed in several areas. This is highly important, as we can see the parallels between this aspect of "Fucking vs. Making Love" and anything David Foster Wallace wrote. When it comes down to it, your writing can be criticized stylistically and formatically just like his can; the only difference is that there are few that actually give a shit about your writing, whereas Wallace's work is meaningful to the point where people have legitimate incentive to think critically about it. So defile it with your petty blog posts all you want, but at the end of the day you're the one who's only making yourself look bad, and as a heavily obese man based in Europe you are surely having few problems achieving this in the status quo, since Europeans are notably fatist.
ellauri073.html on line 317: Takakannessa lukee esimerkiksi: ”I have written this book for myself and for all people who want to live their lives completely and to the maximum, filled with happiness, power and energy” ja “Life in the modern world is fast-paced and frantic.”
ellauri073.html on line 451: But I’m not the boss of you. This is America—you can do whatever you want to. For example, you could start with some articles I’ve written for a variety of publications, including The New York Times Magazine and Hazlitt.
ellauri074.html on line 72: They always want to talk to me about the real things, the things that matter.
ellauri074.html on line 242: Robbins was so captivated by the seminar and impressed with Rohn’s credentials. At the time, Rohn was giving personal development speeches to executives at Standard Oil, the oil-producing company started by John D. Rockefeller. Robbins found Rohn’s approach captivating and he knew he wanted to learn as much as he could from him.
ellauri074.html on line 464: It is written: "You shall walk modestly with your God." It is therefore necessary to be modest in all your ways. Thus when putting on or removing your shirt or any other garment from your body you should be very careful not to uncover your body. You should put on and remove the garment while lying in bed under a cover. You should not say: "I am in a private, and dark place." "Who will see me?" Because the Holy One, Blessed is He, Whose glory fills the entire world [sees] and to Him darkness is like light, Blessed be His Name. Modesty and shame bring a person to submissiveness before Him, Blessed be His name. He does not want to look at your hairy genitals. He knows how they look, after all He made them. Don't worry He does not peek under the cover, although He could.
ellauri077.html on line 613: Wallace saw this (psycho) kind of writing as simply an example of self-love. Like the Onan whose name is another Wallu acronym-pun, these writers were working out of “the part that just wants to be loved” (i.e. the wiener) rather than “out of the part [. . .] that can love,” that is the “art’s heart”.
ellauri077.html on line 631: Wallace wanted the reader to Identify with a character, the first step to feeling less lonely, as he explains in the interview with Miller.
ellauri077.html on line 849: Why is it that it´s the hierarchically oriented types that want to feel there is something bigger than themselves? Religious types, patriots, all sorts of bigots and fundamentalists? Lots and lots of authors and philosophers, including David Foster Wallace.
ellauri077.html on line 863: Bigger, better, higher, humbler. The translation of Klopstock, quite early, contemporaneous, to Swedish is by the Rector of Klara skola. Mr. Humble bought a copy from Sweden wanting to translate Messias suomeksi.
ellauri077.html on line 865: Why is it that people want this kind of shelter against failure. That they fit in. Tight enough, but also big enough, with some leeway and freedom and the feeling of being free at least in some respect, other than the duty. Duty line and nothing-to-declare green line. Snakes can well eat bigger things than their heads.
ellauri078.html on line 89: She effectively secluded herself and poured forth poems with a profligacy bordering on hypographia. If you want a fairly succinct on-line biography of Dickinson, I enjoyed Barnes & Noble’s SparkNotes.
ellauri078.html on line 151: Dickinson left the academy at the age of 15 in order to pursue a higher, and for women, final, level of education. In the fall of 1847 Dickinson entered Mount Holyoke Female Seminary. Under the guidance of Mary Lyon, the school was known for its religious predilection. Part and parcel of the curriculum were weekly sessions with Lyon in which religious questions were examined and the state of the students’ faith assessed. The young women were divided into three categories: those who were “established Christians,” those who “expressed hope,” and those who were “without hope.” Much has been made of Emily’s place in this latter category and of the widely circulated story that she was the only member of that group. Years later fellow student Clara Newman Turner remembered the moment when Mary Lyon “asked all those who wanted to be Christians to rise.” Emily remained seated. No one else did. Turner reports Emily’s comment to her: “‘They thought it queer I didn’t rise’—adding with a twinkle in her eye, ‘I thought a lie would be queerer.’“
ellauri078.html on line 230: Eunukki kysyy mixei Wallulla ole sexiä. No koska se ei masturboi. Ei sillä ole ketään muita ihmisiä kuin Wallu. Wallu nuorena Wallu wanhana, Wallu selvänä Wallu turtana, Wallu miehenä Wallu naisena, Wallu isänä ja äitinä. Waĺlu Wallun sexikumppanina. Wallu oli nuorempi kuin mä. Nyze on kylmempi.
ellauri079.html on line 109: Jethro is the only surviving member of the family and has had his fair share of ups and downs since being on the show. He never really reached the level of stardom that he wanted and instead went on to be a producer and a director, as he had 6yrs of school and his uncle owned the studio. After a while he had the idea to create a Beverly Hillbillies-themed casino out of a WalMart but failed. The second attempt is still currently suspended. He’s hopeful that he’ll get things going again.
ellauri079.html on line 122: A lot of fans will remember this awkward but funny family from TV and probably be able to sing the theme song without having to hear it. The Beverly Hillbillies were after all a favorite show back in their day and inspired a lot of other ideas that came much later, like David Foster Wallace´s magnum opus The Infinite Jest. The attempt to make a movie out of the show wasn’t all that successful and kind of left a bad taste in a lot of peoples’ mouths since it was such a poor attempt that even watching the trailer was something that people didn’t want to admit for a while. Sometimes the best thing you can do is remember the good times and think back to the original that made it something special. Lets hope they will never, never try to make a movie out of Infinite Jest. Jim Incandenza tried that once already, with singularly bad results.
ellauri080.html on line 259:
  • Manipulates others to get what they want

  • ellauri080.html on line 400: Intensity of reaction: intense children will have very powerful reactions to things. For instance, if they want to wear their favorite purple shirt and it’s in the washer, they may have an intense outburst. Children with low intensity will react very mildly to negative and positive situations. It may be difficult to recognize how a low intensity child is feeling.
    ellauri080.html on line 431: It seems to be a natural tendency of human nature to want to categorize the infinite variety of phenomenological reality into neat, distinct, and useful components. We have types and varieties from every area of human experience. There is some security when confronted by a brand new situation to be able to instantly ascribe this novelty to a pre-arranged mental coding system. Once we have categories we can describe differences and similarities – we can form hypotheses of relationship. This can be both useful and destructive, as unnecessary stereotyping leads to a relativizing of uniqueness. Jung walks this thin line by simply stating, “In my practical medical work with nervous patients I have long been struck be the fact that besides the many individual differences in human psychology there are also typical differences.”
    ellauri080.html on line 482: TE/FI asks ‘what do you want, and how can we get it?’
    ellauri080.html on line 494: Hence, the TE/FI attitude, represented by Nietzsche, assumes that people do things because they want to, they desire to, they have a passionate, sentimental drive to: desires and feelings are the metaphysical bottom-line, for which structure serves only as a vehicle. Meanwhile, the FE/TI attitude represented by Hume assumes that people do things because that is what makes sense to them: because that is the decision-making paradigm which they are working off of, and all feelings, motivations, and desires result from the way a person chooses to logically view the world, whether they realize it or not. Feelings and motivations are merely the skin of logically ascertainable principles upon which people operate.
    ellauri080.html on line 498: These two views of the world are, of course, mutually inimical — they inevitably chase each other’s tails. Nietzsche says to Hume: ‘he stole that bread because he wanted to feed his family,’ to which Hume replies, ‘yes, that is true: but why did he want to feed his family? Because he is adhering to a familial principle,’ to which Nietzsche replies, ‘I suppose you could put it that way, but why is he operating according to that principle? It’s because he wants to, because he loves his family,’ to which Hume replies, ‘yes, but why does he love his family? It’s because that is his logical worldview…’ And so on.
    ellauri080.html on line 530: This helps illuminate a number of characteristics of SI and NE individually: dominant SI types focus their energy on the apprehension and upholding of the Truth as it is carefully and cautiously composited and systematically tested for weaknesses; hence, their stereotypically thorough, cautious, and reserved nature, and why they are not so sure in idea-based conversation as Ni types: because of just that — they aren’t sure. Meanwhile, dominant NE types, focusing their energy on the exploration and experimentation from various angles, have the same presence of doubt, which is why NE types so often eschew dogma and may be perceived as intellectually ‘flakey’ or ‘capricious’ because they never truly commit to anything: it’s all experimentation and exploration, forming a composite Truth, though their trouble is they never want to stop. The SI’s trouble, on the other hand, is that they don’t want to start.
    ellauri080.html on line 542: This axis is also apparent in my own videos: you’ll notice there are quite a few of them, partly because I keep on redoing the same topics whenever I feel I’ve hit on a new perspective that I then can’t help but explain as though it were my new ‘doctrine’ because it suddenly seems so much more clear and beautiful and compelling than any previous perspectives, and I just want to get that pure idea out. Literally, after I do a video on a compelling subject, if I did it well, I’ll feel like I’ve emptied myself out, and I’ll very easily forget what it was that I just explained in that video. The idea dulls, I start finding some problems with it, and over time I mull it around with other material and then become bedazzled by the next rich synthesis.
    ellauri080.html on line 605: The shipwrecked castaways desperately want to leave the remote island, and various opportunities frequently present themselves, but always fail, usually due to some bumbling error committed by Gilligan. Sometimes this would result in Gilligan saving the others from some unforeseen flaw in their plan.
    ellauri080.html on line 628: Rikkaat hihittävät hienoissa taloissaan valvontakameroiden takana ja järjestävät puutarhajuhlia. Köyhät vilistävät kuin torakat keittiöstä kun valot sytytetään, ja haisevat pahalta. Asuvat tulvaveden ja paskan täyttämissä kellareissa, eivät ylitä näkymätöntä rajaa. Ikävintä on, että tää ei edes ole liioittelua. Korealainen Parasiitit ja japanilainen Shoplifters ei ole liioittelua. Eikä taiwanilainen A Son. Tämmöstä tää nyt taas on. Marxilla ja Engelsillä olis töitä.
    ellauri080.html on line 696: “It could be that people with just a few autistic traits have an increased risk of substance-abuse problems, while those with more traits are somehow protected,” Agrawal concluded. “For this study, we clumped all of these symptoms together. In future research, we want to look at how individual traits-like repetitive behaviors or being withdrawn socially-may influence risk. It could be that some traits related to autism are protective, while others elevate the risk for alcohol and substance-abuse problems.”
    ellauri080.html on line 741: In 1897, he was stripped and nearly lynched by a white mob in Natal, but when the governor sought to press charges, Gandhi refused – saying he didn’t want to use a court of law for personal issues.
    ellauri080.html on line 758: “I do not want to be a pariah, but if I have to be reborn I should be reborn an untouchable so that I must share their sorrows, sufferings, and the affronts levelled against them in order that I may endeavour to free myself and them from their miserable condition.” – Gandhi
    ellauri080.html on line 791: In the words of the Indian writer Khushwant Singh, "nine-tenths of the violence and unhappiness in this country derives from sexual repression". Gandhi isn't singularly to blame for India's deeply problematic attitudes to sex and female sexuality. But he fought, and succeeded, to ensure the country would never experience sexual freedom while his legend persevered. Gandhi's genius was to realise the great power of non-violent political revolution. But the violence of his thoughts towards women has contributed to countless honour killings and immeasurable suffering.
    ellauri082.html on line 97: Perversely, it is often more fun to want something than to have it. It seems fun to many people to be perverse.
    ellauri082.html on line 145: Orin (who never attended his father’s funeral) went to the gravesite and dug up his father, releasing the wraith in the process. (244: “After a burial, rural Papineau-region Québecers purportedly drill a small hole down from ground level all the way down through the lid of the coffin, to let out the soul, if it wants out.”) Orin, who is such a partisan of his father that he feels the need to repeatedly ruin the lives of people like his mother, has been mailing the tapes to his father’s enemies in revenge: disapproving film critics in Berkeley and the medical attaché (whose affair with his mother drove Himself especially wild) in Boston. It’s possible he’s being influenced by the wraith in these actions.
    ellauri082.html on line 343: 50; ETA student and Big Buddy; rooms w/Pemulis & Schacht; "promoting" Pemulis's Tenuate, 60, fn.5a.983; "constant 'drines" 267; wants a tennis-broadcasting career, 308; "left-eye-nystamic" 329; paranoid about powdered milk, 630; "and sex: no way" 634; 673; "heavy-browed red-nostriled kid" 677; sleeping in Axhandle's room, 869.
    ellauri082.html on line 678: Okinawan perinteinen dietti on arvioitu terveelliseksi hyvin alhaisen energiamäärän vuoksi. Aikuisen kalorimäärät (silloin kun vielä edustivat Japanin kärkeä) olivat 15% ja lapsilla yli 30% alhaisemmat kuin japanilaisilla keskimäärin. Pieni nälkä siis pidentää ikää. Tähän sopii hyvin se, että kaikkien näiden pitkäikäisyysalueiden ihmisistä valtaosa elää varsin luonnollissa oloissa ja syö kohtuullisesti ja suhteellisen yksinkertaista ruokaa - paitsi Loma Lindan ihmiset, jotka ovat ainoat länsimaisessa vauraudessa elävät tässä joukossa (Okinawahan ei ole rikas alue muuten vauraassa Japanissa, Nagano taas taitaa olla vuoristoinen seutu...).
    ellauri082.html on line 737: Another study by researchers Carrie Haslam and V. Tamara Montrose found that although narcissistic males do not make good partners, women aged 18 to 28 desire them more than other men. The researchers asked women about their dating experience and desire for marriage. They wanted to see whether these factors influenced their attraction to narcissistic men.
    ellauri082.html on line 740: Ensinäkin se varmentaa wanhan tutun totuuden siitä, että naiset suosivat narsisteja miehiä. Se samalla todistaa sitä hypoteesia, jonka mukaan naiset pitävät näistä jännämiehistä, koska nainen on ize luontaisesti samalla luonnolla varustettu, ja nämä miehet täten hänen hengenheimolaisiaan.
    ellauri082.html on line 800: In downtown Boston you may see trash cans, cones, or other objects being used to save parking spots in residential areas throughout the winter. No one wants to shovel their spot to find it taken by the time they return! This is common practice, and completely legal.
    ellauri083.html on line 92: I was notified in December of last year that a woman in Texas who has a business buying storage units that have not paid their rent and she had purchased a unit in Fort Worth and discovered this manuscript, which was in a holographic form as a written manuscript, of course. And the woman in Texas wanted to sell it.
    ellauri083.html on line 96: WALSH: To whomever. Initially, she wanted to put the manuscript on eBay and try to sell it there. I contacted an attorney in Philadelphia, Peter Hearn, and said we will not give her what she's asking for, but we will pay her a modest sum of money, and we wanted it returned immediately. That worked. I read the manuscript, and I said, you know, I want to get this published.
    ellauri083.html on line 137: The story begins on Wang Lung's wedding day and follows the rise and fall of his fortunes. The House of Hwang, a family of wealthy landowners, lives in the nearby town, where Wang Lung's future wife, O-Lan, lives as a slave. However, the House of Hwang slowly declines due to opium use, frequent spending, uncontrolled borrowing and a general unwillingness to work. He was willing to take any woman who knew how to work, except a harelip (which is just what Inger was). He was disappointed when O-Lan had big and ugly feet. These boots are made for walking...
    ellauri083.html on line 139: Following the marriage of Wang Lung and O-Lan, both work hard on their farm and slowly save enough money to buy one plot of land at a time from the Hwang family. O-Lan delivers three sons and three daughters; the first daughter becomes mentally handicapped as a result of severe malnutrition brought on by famine. Her father greatly pities her and calls her "Poor Fool," a name by which she is addressed throughout her life. O-Lan kills her second daughter at birth to spare her the misery of growing up in such hard times, and to give the remaining family a better chance to survive. Pearl's daughter Carol was mentally handicapped too.
    ellauri083.html on line 143: In the city, O-Lan and the children beg while Wang Lung pulls a rickshaw. Wang Lung's father begs but does not earn any money, and sits looking at the city instead. They find themselves aliens among their more metropolitan countrymen who look different and speak in a fast accent. They no longer starve, due to the one-cent charitable meals of congee, but still live in abject poverty. Wang Lung longs to return to his land. When armies approach the city he can only work at night hauling merchandise out of fear of being conscripted. One time, his son brings home stolen meat. Furious, Wang Lung throws the meat on the ground, not wanting his sons to grow up as thieves. O-Lan, however, calmly picks up the meat and cooks it. When a food riot erupts, Wang Lung is swept up in a mob that is looting a rich man's house and corners the man himself, who fears for his life and gives Wang Lung all his money in order to buy his safety. O-Lan finds a cache of jewels elsewhere in house and takes them for herself.
    ellauri083.html on line 145: Wang Lung uses this money to bring the family home, buy a new ox and farm tools, and hire servants to work the land for him. In time, two more children are born, a twin son and daughter. When he discovers the jewels that O-Lan looted, Wang Lung buys the House of Hwang's remaining land. He later sends his first two sons to school, also apprenticing the second one to a merchant, and retains the third one on the land.
    ellauri083.html on line 149: Wang Lung and his family move into town and rent the old House of Hwang. Now an old man, he desires peace within his family but is annoyed by constant disputes, especially between his first and second sons and their wives. Wang Lung's third son runs away to become a soldier. At the end of the novel, Wang Lung overhears his sons planning to sell the land and tries to dissuade them. They say they will do as he wishes, but smile knowingly at each other. Ah what's the use...
    ellauri083.html on line 679: God responded by saying, the “Lord will give you meat, and you shall eat. You shall not eat one day, or two days, or five days, or ten days, or twenty days, but a whole month, until it comes out at your nostrils” (Numbers 11:19-20). He gave them quail that covered the earth, three feet deep! You wanted meat? Here you go!
    ellauri088.html on line 93: Wundt wanted to catalog all possible basic immediate experiences, and form a “periodical table of elements” as chemistry did, through observing consciousness.
    ellauri088.html on line 526: Voltin ja Foodoran romanttiset nuoret opiskelijapojat jotka pitää yllä kuntoa fixipyörillä ja tuo sivutoimisesti prekariaatille sushiherkkuja on jo kurjistuneet nekrukuskeixi jotka ajelee surkeilla pyöränrämillä lumisohjossa valtava kolli pizzalaatikoita selässä kuin parhaina britti-imperiumin bwana-aikoina.
    ellauri088.html on line 595: Viktoriaanista läppäkeppiä. Heinleinin opetus on tässä: A man almost always gets what he wants if he wants it badly enough. Kolme stoogea eivät riittävästi halunneet ananasta purkista. Bob lainasi ton kynäveizi-insidentin Have spacesuit-kirjan esipuberteettiseen Kip/Peewee kohtauxeen.
    ellauri089.html on line 72: Bill does not want the responsibility of keeping Earth peaceful, a responsibility that could require him, in an extreme situation, to bomb his own country. Loooooseeer!
    ellauri089.html on line 103: He wanted to do his own juvenile work, stating that: "I want to do my own stuff, my own way". Vapaa sexi kiinnosti. Kirjassa Strangers in a strange land se oli aivan daft. Jill is homophobic and says that "nine times out of ten, if a girl gets raped it's partly her own fault." Bobia kiinnosti myös insesti. Heinlein often posed in situations where the nominal purpose of sexual taboos was irrelevant to a particular situation, due to future advances in technology.
    ellauri089.html on line 116: There's no gap between will and action, for Heinlein's juveniles adulthood is devotion to something they want to do. This is the origin of the books' guilelessness—for that worldview is innocence, down at its root, even when the grand theme of a book is slavery, war, or survival in harsh circumstances. Being human isn't an insoluble problem for them. It's a puzzle that has a solution: be juvenile. What made Robert Heinlein inimitable was the easiness of the people in those stories.
    ellauri089.html on line 153: Most of what Heinlein wrote after 1958 explores ideas that are more interesting, more profound, in certain senses, than any of his early work, like quirky sex. But at some point, even his most fervent fans want to return to books where the hero doesn't use time travel and advanced technology to have sex with his mother, his granddaughter, and his own clone. Or his computer made flesh.
    ellauri089.html on line 210: Men rarely if ever manage to dream up a god superior to themselves. Most gods have the manners and morals of a spoiled child. One man's theology is another man's belly laugh. The most ridiculous concept ever perpetrated by Homo Sapiens is that the Lord God of Creation, Shaper and Ruler of the Universes, wants the saccharine adoration of his creations, that he can be persuaded by their prayers, and becomes petulant if he does not receive this flattery. Yet this ridiculous notion, without one real shred of evidence to bolster it, has gone on to found one of the oldest, largest and least productive industries in history.
    ellauri089.html on line 613: § 99. And (d) if we consider the distinct question of how a single individual should decide to act (α) in cases where the general utility of the action in question is certain, (β) in other cases: there seems reason for thinking that, with regard to (α), he should always conform to it; but these reasons are not conclusive, if either the general observance or the general utility is wanting; …
    ellauri092.html on line 190: United Methodist elders and pastors may marry and have families. They are placed in congregations by their bishop. Elders and pastors can either ask for a new appointment or their church can request that they be re-appointed elsewhere. If the elder is a full-time pastor, the church is required to provide either a house or a housing allowance for the pastor.
    ellauri093.html on line 161: Neen läheisin työtoveri oli Witness Lee -niminen babtisti. Heidän yhteistyönsä alkoi 1932. Lee muutti Shanghaihin 1934 voidakseen työskennellä enemmän Neen kanssa. Hän muun muassa toimitti Neen julkaisua The Christian 1934–1940 ja oli hänen best maninsa mm. tämän avioituessa. Vuonna 1949 Nee lähetti Leen ja ryhmän muita Taiwanille jatkamaan lähetystyötä. Charity oli käynyt mustasukkaisexi. Taiwan eli Formosa on oikeistokiinalaisten saari Fuzhouta vastapäätä. Yhtä lähellä kuin Tallinna. Danin vanhemmat oli vieläkin vihaisia sen petturuudesta.
    ellauri093.html on line 589: Agnostikko astmaatikko sak samma, ei siitä saa saikkua. Agnostikko on wannabe ateisti joka pelkää että sittenkin voi loppupeleissä pilvestä iso nyrkki tunnottoman päähän kumahtaa (YUP). Turhaan jarruttelee agnostikko, ezii verukkeita astmaatikko, who is not for us is against us, varoittelee aidalla istujia Jeesus ja Jehova. Nollasummapeliä ilman tasapeliä ja pattia.
    ellauri094.html on line 729: So in your view of Christianity, let me get this straight, you honestly believe that God wants you to kill the Jihadists? Am I understanding you right?
    ellauri094.html on line 785: I want somebody to love
    ellauri094.html on line 798: I want somebody to love
    ellauri095.html on line 184: Hopkins was a supporter of linguistic purism in English. In an 1882 letter to Robert Bridges, Hopkins writes: "It makes one weep to think what English might have been; for in spite of all that Shakespeare and Milton have done... no beauty in a language can make up for want of purity." He took time to learn Old English, which became a major influence on his writing. In the same letter to Bridges he calls Old English "a vastly superior thing to what we have now."
    ellauri096.html on line 63: Prior knowledge of an action seems incompatible with it being a free action. If I know that you will take a shit tomorrow, then you will take a shit tomorrow (because knowledge implies truth). But that means you will take a shit even if you resolve not to. After all, given that you will shit, nothing can stop you from shitting. So if I know that you will take a shit tomorrow, you are not free to do otherwise. Conversely if you're free to shit or constipate, I can't know which it's going to be. My solution is that you are free to do one or the other, nothing stops you, but knowing you I know for a fact that you will want to shit. You are not free to want what you want. You are an ape, for Cod's sake.
    ellauri096.html on line 680: The authors stated that, since fluctuations in employment are central to the business cycle, the "stand-in consumer [of the model] values not only consumption but also leisure," meaning that unemployment movements essentially reflect the changes in the number of people who want to work. "Household-production theory," as well as "cross-sectional evidence" ostensibly support a "non-time-separable utility function that admits greater inter-temporal substitution of leisure, something which is needed," according to the authors, "to explain aggregate movements in employment in an equilibrium model." For the K&P model, monetary policy is irrelevant for economic fluctuations.
    ellauri097.html on line 97: Mencken recommended for publication philosopher and author Ayn Rand´s first novel, We the Living and called it "a really excellent piece of work." Shortly afterward, Rand addressed him in correspondence as "the greatest representative of a philosophy" to which she wanted to dedicate her life, "individualism" and later listed him as her favorite columnist. No voi vietävä!
    ellauri097.html on line 117: Mencken, says Charles A. Fecher, was, "deeply conservative, resentful of change, looking back upon the 'happy days' of a bygone time, wanted no part of the world that the New Deal promised to bring in." In 1931, the Arkansas legislature passed a motion to pray for Mencken´s soul after he had called the state the "apex of moronia."
    ellauri097.html on line 418: Kant wanted to prove, in a way that would dumbfound the common man, that the common man was right: that was the secret of this soul. He wrote against the scholars in support of popular prejudice, but for the scholars and not for the people. [§193.]
    ellauri097.html on line 459: If they want to work on repairing the flaw in their argument, they’re welcome to try that. It would involve introducing a moral term that can be substantiated into the premise to arrive at a conclusion with a moral term. They might say, “If a thing is natural, then it’s moral. This is natural for me, therefore it’s moral.” Now, there’s a valid argument. I don’t think it’s sound, but at least it doesn’t commit the is-ought fallacy.
    ellauri097.html on line 475: Of course, this trades on the notion that human beings, in this case, were made for certain ends. And if a person wants to deny God, then we weren’t made for certain ends, and that’s a way to get out of this argument. So does this argument work for people who are not theists?
    ellauri097.html on line 786: Because it was grassy and wanted wear; Koska se oli ruohottunut ja käymätön;
    ellauri098.html on line 116: näkyvyys (julkkis tavis wannabe hyypiö)
    ellauri098.html on line 154: Goethe floruit...Wahlverwandtschaften...
    ellauri098.html on line 357: Mä en tosiaankaan ole sankari, en edes anti enkä nais. Vihaan sankareita kuin rakkikoira. Mä oon tollanen rhipsaspis, kilvenheittäjä, annan periksi ja lähden litomaan, jätän toiset jakamaan suuret setelit. Luovuttajan rooliin sopiva. Mixi niin, kun kerta wannabe sankari on narsistin synonyymi? No koska mä oon epäonnistunut narsisti, arvonkieltäjä. Siinä se!
    ellauri098.html on line 444:
    Alexanteri Suuri, Rowan Atkinson, Sirius Black, Bugs Bunny, Borat, Samuel Butler, Julia Child, John Cleese, Wile E. Coyote, Celine Dion, Thomas A. Edison, Stephen Fry, Frederico Fellini, Richard Feynman, Ben Franklin, Garfield (president), Garfield (cat), Hugh Grant, Annie Hall, Tom Hanks, Werner Heisenberg, Alfred Hitchcock, David Hume, Katariina Suuri, Henry Kissinger, Karl Lagerfeld, Tyrion Lannister, N.Macchiavelli, J.S. Mill, Karl Popper, Murray Rothbard (laissez-faire), Bertrand Russell, Babe Ruth, R2-D2, Socrates, Leonardo da Vinci, Voltaire, Frank Zappa

    ellauri098.html on line 483:
    H.C. Andersen, Frodo Baggins, William Blake, Marlon Brando, Charley Brown, Albert Camus, Johnny Depp, Jane Eyre, Mia Farrow, V.van Gogh, Homeros, P.Johannes, Franz Kafka (taas), Helen Keller, Kermit the Frog, Sören Kierkegaard, Hugh Laurie, John Lennon, Luna Lovegood, P.Luukas, C.S. Lewis (taas), Neizyt Maria, Bob Marley, A.A. Milne, John Milton, Jim Morrison, Edgar Allan Poe, Fred Rogers, Romeo&Juliet, J-J.Rousseau, Antoine de Saint-Exupery, Carlos Santana, William Shakespeare, Bella Swan (Twilight), Luke Skywalker, Amy Tan, Daenerys Targaryen, JRR Tolkien, Vergilius, Andy Warhol, Bill Waterson (Calvin&Hobbes), Virginia Woolf

    ellauri098.html on line 533: ISFJs are caring and helpful. They are devoted to protecting and helping out those in need. ISFJs have very strong family ties and are quick to leap to the defense of their family. Sometimes, however, take on too much responsibility and lose sight of the big picture while trying to help everyone around them. They can also be too unassertive and pushovers for those who want to take advantage of their helpfulness. But there is no friend to have like an ISFJ when you find yourself in need of help.

    ellauri098.html on line 556: ESFPs operate from the principle that “all the world’s a stage” — and they want to be the stars.
    ellauri098.html on line 605: Welcome to the Disney Animal Kingdom! Who wants to be an animal in the real world when you can be a magical, super adorable and/or gorgeous Disney animal, anyway?
    ellauri099.html on line 35: Mitä enemmän mä luen ja mietin näitä runoja ja romskuja ja luen kirjailijoiden elämäkertoja, sitä selvemmäxi tulee että tämän kukkatarhan tärkein lajike on narsissi. Sitähän se on, kirjojen ja leffojen ym viihteen lukeminen, kirjoitus ja tuijotus, lammen peiliin kazomista, kunnes masentava todellisuus unohtuu. Tärkein kaikkia wannabee kirjailijoita yhdistävä tekijä on hyvin kehittynyt narsismi. Oma naama lammen sameen veden kalvon ystävällisesti pehmentämänä sieltä vastaan tuijottaa. Rakkaus on samea, kuin vessan ikkuna, sanoi Vittoria, ja tiesi kyllä mistä puhui. Izerakkaus ei ole muita kummempi. Izeviha on vain sen toinen fenotyyppi. Oman navan haistelua molemmat. Haista, haista haista, seinää vessan, kunnes valot sammuu, haju jää.
    ellauri099.html on line 63: It is quite true I have worshipped you with far more romance of feeling than a man should ever give to a friend. Somehow I have never loved a woman…. From the moment I met you, your personality had the most extraordinary influence over me…. I adored you madly, extravagantly, absurdly. I was jealous of everyone to whom you spoke. I wanted to have you all to myself. I was only happy when I was with you.
    ellauri099.html on line 86: How to Get Rid of Barn Swallows? Hire an Exterminator. For as beautiful as their song is, barn swallows also bring a lot of less attractive features when they move into your property. The early-morning noise and piles of droppings and feathers they create are reason enough to want these birds gone. As an Amazon Associate, this site earns from qualifying purchases.
    ellauri100.html on line 67: Usein moraalittomuus aiheutuu vaeltavasta kohdusta. Silloin sappi muuttuu keltaiseksi aiheuttaen hysteriaa, himoa ja maniaa; mikäli taasen maniaan liittyy myös jumalten suoma hulluus, tuloksena saattaa olla myönteisiä siirtymiä myös ympäristöön. Tämän vuoksi runoilijat ja taiteilijat varmaan kuuluivatkin sairaalan ehdottomaan eliittiin ja kaikki halusivat olla heidän kamujaan. Heillä oli ”haltioitumisen lahja”. Maallikko voisi ajatella, että esim. Lapinlahden lähteen jengi olisi juuri wannabe-keltasappisia. Hysteriassa on jotakin vähän hienoakin. Eiks je!
    ellauri100.html on line 455: The idea behind the scale is that there is very little systematic research on everyday ethical issues in business. This measure has been tested cross-culturally to show relevance for participants from Hong Kong, mainland China and Taiwan. Specifically, a values structure highlighting the importance of self-transcendence values correlates with more ethical behavioral orientations, while a values structure highlighting the importance of the self-enhancement dimension of values correlates with less ethical behavioral orientations. Further, we are interested in what behaviors are seen as unethical as while all individuals espouse ethicality, different types of behavior are often seen as being more or less relevant to ethics, depending on one’s culture. In previous research, women have reported being more ethical than men.
    ellauri100.html on line 471: Liberals and conservatives seem to disagree in their basic understandings of the causes of human action, particularly of immoral action. Liberals are more likely to believe that social forces, poverty, childhood trauma, or mental illness can serve as valid excuses. Conservatives are more likely to reject such excuses and want to hold people accountable for their actions, including a preference for harsher punishments. At least, that is the way things play out in many disputes in the legal world. We want to see if we can look at this stereotypical difference in more detail. We want to find out WHICH kinds of free will and determinism show a correlation with politics, and with other psychological variables.
    ellauri100.html on line 493: We are interested in measuring happiness on this site because many studies have found that religious people are happier than non-believers, and some have found that politcally conservative people are slightly happier than are political liberals, even after controlling statistically for religiosity. A recent Gallup survey found that religiosity was associated with better mental health for Republicans, but it didn’t make a difference for Democrats. We want to investigate these complex relationships among happiness, morality, religion, and ideology.
    ellauri100.html on line 497: In addition, we asked you some questions on the second page about your mental health. That recent Gallup poll showed that conservatives and religious people report having better mental health when asked using a single question (“how would you rate your mental health?”). We want to see if their finding holds up using a more specific scale, so we asked you to report on a variety of symptoms related to depression and anxiety, which are the most common kinds of mental health symptoms that people report. In the graph below, your score is shown in green. High scores mean MORE mental health complaints. Scores run from 1 (the lowest possible score, no symptoms at all) to 5 (the highest possible score, people who responded “extremely” to all items). As before, the blue bar shows the score of the less religious people; the red bar shows the average score of the most religious people.
    ellauri100.html on line 577: Virginiassa kannatetaan Donald Trumppia ja ahdistellaan märkäselkiä. Niille maxetaan hurrikaanivahinkojen korjauxista tosi huonosti jos ollenkaan, ja paperittomia jahdataan öisin pitkin Virginian kaupunkien katuja poliisien voimilla. We don't want any wetbacks latinos blackies and coons hereabouts. Get off my property. Minähän sen oravan myrkytin.
    ellauri100.html on line 777: Like a rush-imbedded swan,
    ellauri100.html on line 889: Like two wands of ivory
    ellauri101.html on line 163: No one wants to upset me! That's a good one! My life was nothing but misery at this place and now people come along ruining my death!
    ellauri101.html on line 308: Clap along if you feel like that´s what you wanna do
    ellauri101.html on line 322: Clap along if you feel like that´s what you wanna do
    ellauri101.html on line 340: Clap along if you feel like that´s what you wanna do
    ellauri101.html on line 348: Clap along if you feel like that´s what you wanna do
    ellauri101.html on line 362: Clap along if you feel like that´s what you wanna do
    ellauri101.html on line 370: Clap along if you feel like that´s what you wanna do
    ellauri101.html on line 556: The Lost Generation was the social generational cohort that came of age during World War I. "Lost" in this context refers to the "disoriented, wandering, directionless" spirit of many of the war's survivors in the early postwar period. The term is also particularly used to refer to a group of American expatriate writers living in Paris during the 1920s. Gertrude Stein is credited with coining the term, and it was subsequently popularized by Ernest Hemingway who used it in the epigraph for his 1926 novel The Sun Also Rises: "You are all a lost generation".
    ellauri101.html on line 600: Y-sukupolvi on varautunut niin ammatinvalinnan kuin avioliitonkin suhteen, ja kokee painostavina ja lamaannuttavina vanhemman X-sukupolven korkeat odotukset opiskelun ja työllistymisen suhteen. Tohtori Larry Nelson Brigham Youngin yliopistosta kuvaili ilmiötä: "In prior generations, you get married and you start a career and you do that immediately. What young people today are seeing is that approach has led to divorces, to people unhappy with their careers ... The majority want to get married [...] they just want to do it right the first time, the same thing with their careers."
    ellauri102.html on line 596: I´ll do what you want me to do
    ellauri102.html on line 601: I want to make a million dollars
    ellauri102.html on line 602: I want to live out by the sea
    ellauri102.html on line 604: Yeah, I guess I want a family
    ellauri102.html on line 612: I´ll do what you want me to do
    ellauri102.html on line 618: I´ll do what you want me to do
    ellauri102.html on line 626: Tell me, do you want to see me do the shimmy again?
    ellauri102.html on line 630: Do what you want me to do
    ellauri102.html on line 646: I´ll do what you want me to do
    ellauri102.html on line 652: I´ll do what you want me to do
    ellauri106.html on line 46: Philip Roth has not had much luck with biographers. Late in his life, furiously aggrieved after the failure of his marriage to the actress Claire Bloom and the publication of Bloom’s incendiary memoir of their years together, he asked a close friend, Ross Miller, an English professor at the University of Connecticut, to take on the task. Roth sent Miller lists of family members and friends he wanted to be interviewed, along with the questions that he felt should be asked. (“Would you have expected him to achieve success on the scale he has?”) It didn’t work out, for various reasons. Roth had wanted Miller to refute a familiar charge, “this whole mad fucking misogynistic bullshit!” that he felt flattened his long erotic history into one false accusation. But Miller came to his own conclusion. “There is a predatory side to both Sandy and Philip,” he told a cousin of Roth’s. (Sandy was Roth’s older brother.) “They look at women—I’m not gonna write about this—but they are misogynist. They talk about women in that way.”
    ellauri106.html on line 84: In October 2012, Roth announced to the French culture magazine Les Inrocks that Nemesis was his last book. At the age of 74 he began to reread his favorite authors such as Dostoyevsky, Turgenew, Conrad and Hemingway as well as his own works. He came to the conclusion that he had made the best of his possibilities and did not want to continue working as an author, read or talk about new literature.
    ellauri106.html on line 104: He enjoyed a robust childhood and was poplar in high school where he was a bright student but not quite diligent enough in his studies to win a prized full scholarship to Rutgers where he wanted to study law. Roth attended Rutgers University in Newark for a year, then transferred to Bucknell University in Pennsylvania, where he earned a B.A. magna cum laude in English and was elected to Phi Beta Kappa. He received a scholarship to attend the University of Chicago, where he earned an M.A. in English literature in 1955 and briefly worked as an instructor in the university´s writing program. Less prestigious Bucknell University in Pennsylvania was Roth’s fallback school. There he abandoned his vague dreams of becoming a lawyer for the underdog and turned his attention to writing.
    ellauri106.html on line 156: Eli Rosenthal, his former roommate at the time, said the two met in a fashion illustrating class. "I looked over at him and I said, 'Wow, this guy can really draw and I want to be like him,'" he said. "He always walked around with a sketch pad. He said it was great for picking up girls."
    ellauri106.html on line 184: “The comedy is that the real haters of the bourgeois Jews, with the real contempt for their everyday lives, are these complex intellectual giants,” Zuckerman snorts. “They loathe them, and don’t particularly care for the smell of the Jewish proletariat either. All of them full of sympathy suddenly for the ghetto world of their traditional fathers now that the traditional fathers are filed for safekeeping in Beth Moses Memorial Park. When they were alive they wanted to strangle the immigrant bastards to death because they dared to think they could actually be of consequence without ever having read Proust past Swann’s Way. And the ghetto—what the ghetto saw of these guys was their heels: out, out, screaming for air, to write about great Jews like Ralph Waldo Emerson and William Dean Howells. But now that the Weathermen are around, and me and my friends Jerry Rubin and Herbert Marcuse and H. Rap Brown, it’s where oh where’s the inspired orderliness of those good old Hebrew school days? Where’s the linoleum? Where’s Aunt Rose? Where is all the wonderful inflexible patriarchal authority into which they wanted to stick a knife?”
    ellauri106.html on line 272: He often said he did not want to have kids.
    ellauri106.html on line 313: Eisenhowerin kampanjointitiimi teki Disneyn kanssa yhteistyötä ja mainoksista luotiin hyvin piirrettyjen lastenohjelmien näköisiä ja joissa soi melodinen "I like Ike, you Like Ike, everybody likes Ike for president!"-teemalaulu ja "We don't want John(Sparkman) or Dean(Acheson) or Harry(Truman)." Ike oli rebublikaaneista rebublikaanisin.
    ellauri106.html on line 352: No wonder class conscious Phil was flustered. He wanted to wear his gloves to dinner.
    ellauri106.html on line 392: "I'm exactly the opposite of religious, I'm anti-religious. I find religious people hideous. I hate the religious lies. It's all a big lie. … I have such a huge dislike. It's not a neurotic thing, but the miserable record of religion. I don't even want to talk about it, it's not interesting to talk about the sheep referred to as believers."
    ellauri106.html on line 599: Phillu myöntää izekin että Lydian ja Naatanin tarina kuulostaa kexityltä. Mixi niin upea jutku nuorimies tuhoaisi elämänsä tollasen shixan jalkovälissä, josta se ei edes pidä? No se ei viizi mainita hyviä hetkiä, joissa jutkujolppi sai vapaasti keekoilla, keikailla ja kukkoilla blondille shixalle, joka palvoi jokaista sen huulilta vuotavaa sanallista hunajan pisaraa. Niitä hetkiä ei maxa vaivaa mainita, koska niillä ei ole moraalista sisältöä. Mitä VITUN moraalista sisältöä? Ai koska niillä oli tollasta vaan tavista kivaa yhdessä? Sellaista ei lasketa, koska se ei vie wannabe snobia hitustakaan eteenpäin, kuten Lea tapasi sanoa. Egoistille moraali on yhden hengen peliä, pyrkyryyteen tarvittavaa Roope Ankkamaista uutteruutta pihiyttä ja izekuria.
    ellauri107.html on line 34: Tässä albumissa silitellään vielä Peppyä mutta Hayakawan yleisen semantiikan kahdapuollon periaatteen mukaan enempi myötäsukaan. Tai sitten ei.
    ellauri107.html on line 97: At the end of his stay, Neil attends Ron's wedding to Harriet, who was his college sweetheart from Ohio. Brenda returns to Radcliffe in the fall, keeping in touch by telephone. She invites Neil to come up to spend a weekend at a Boston hotel. However, once they are in the hotel room, Brenda tells Neil she just received letters telling her that her mother found her diaphragm and that her parents know about their affair. They argue, with Neil asking why she left it to be found unless she wanted it to happen. Siding with her parents, Brenda ends the affair as abruptly as she allowed it to commence. Neil walks out of the hotel, leaving her alone in the room.
    ellauri107.html on line 110: Rojack is still considerably different from me — he's more elegant, more witty, more heroic, his physical strength is considerable, and at the same time he's more corrupt than me. I wanted to create a man who was larger than myself yet somewhat less successful. That way, ideally, his psychic density, if I may use a private phrase, would be equal to mine — and so I could write from within his head with comfort.
    ellauri107.html on line 119: Mailer commented in a later New York Post interview: "I wanted a man who was very much of my generation and generally of my type.
    ellauri107.html on line 120: A lot of people get cancer because they were too responsible with their lives. They led lives that were more responsible then they wanted to be. They lived their lives for others more than for themselves. Denied themselves certain fundamental things, whatever they were. . . . Cancer is a revolution of the cells."
    ellauri107.html on line 272: Roth confesses, Oh, I wanted to be literary, wanted to be influencer. There were Flaubert and Henry James, Dreiser and Sherwood Anderson. But I discovered I was but a raucous talent.
    ellauri107.html on line 325: “What kind of diaspora? I’m not in any diaspora. I am in my country and I’m here and I’m free and I can be whatever I want to be.” Ei kyllä siltä vaikuta.
    ellauri107.html on line 402: In crisis over whether he’s a man or nuts. I'd say nuts. He is a sexual extremist and erotomaniac, a sociopath and wannabe paedophile, rummaging in the knicker drawer of his best friend’s teenage daughter. A habitual liar, a graveyard onanist, a childless despiser of families and couples; a joyous micturator over all laughter, hope, goodness and wholesomeness (a peculiarly American obsession: see also David Lynch), Sabbath entertains us with his negativity.
    ellauri107.html on line 418: In Babbitt (1922), Sinclair Lewis created a living and breathing man with recognizable hopes and dreams, not a caricature. To his publisher, Lewis wrote: “He is all of us Americans at 46, prosperous, but worried, wanting — passionately — to seize something more than motor cars and a house before it's too late.” George F. Babbitt's mediocrity is central to his realism; Lewis believed that the fatal flaw of previous literary representations of the American businessman was in portraying him as “an exceptional man.”
    ellauri107.html on line 439: “Now you look here! The first thing you got to understand is that all this uplift and flipflop and settlement-work and recreation is nothing in God's world but the entering wedge for socialism. The sooner a man learns he isn't going to be coddled, and he needn't expect a lot of free grub and, uh, all these free classes and flipflop and doodads for his kids unless he earns 'em, why, the sooner he'll get on the job and produce—produce—produce! That's what the country needs, and not all this fancy stuff that just enfeebles the will-power of the working man and gives his kids a lot of notions above their class. And you—if you'd tend to business instead of fooling and fussing—All the time! When I was a young man I made up my mind what I wanted to do, and stuck to it through thick and thin, and that's why I'm where I am to-day, and—Myra! What do you let the girl chop the toast up into these dinky little chunks for? Can't get your fist onto 'em. Half cold, anyway!”
    ellauri107.html on line 481: Say, Sid,” Babbitt turned to Finkelstein, the buyer, “got something wanta ask you about. I went out and bought me an electric cigar-lighter for the car, this noon, and—”
    ellauri107.html on line 484: Finkelstein asserted that five dollars was not too great a sum, not for a really high-class lighter which was suitably nickeled and provided with connections of the very best quality. “I always say—and believe me, I base it on a pretty fairly extensive mercantile experience—the best is the cheapest in the long run. Of course if a fellow wants to be a Jew about it, he can get cheap junk, but in the long RUN, the cheapest thing is—the best you can get! Now you take here just th' other day: I got a new top for my old boat and some upholstery, and I paid out a hundred and twenty-six fifty, and of course a lot of fellows would say that was too much—Lord, if the Old Folks—they live in one of these hick towns up-state and they simply can't get onto the way a city fellow's mind works, and then, of course, they're Jews, and they'd lie right down and die if they knew Sid had anted up a hundred and twenty-six bones. But I don't figure I was stuck, George, not a bit. Machine looks brand new now—not that it's so darned old, of course; had it less 'n three years, but I give it hard service; never drive less 'n a hundred miles on Sunday and, uh—Oh, I don't really think you got stuck, George. In the LONG run, the best is, you might say, it's unquestionably the cheapest.”
    ellauri107.html on line 501: “Look here, Stan; let's get this clear. You've got an idea somehow that it's you that do all the selling. Where d' you get that stuff? Where d' you think you'd be if it wasn't for our capital behind you, and our lists of properties, and all the prospects we find for you? All you got to do is follow up our tips and close the deal. The hall-porter could sell Babbitt-Thompson listings! You say you're engaged to a girl, but have to put in your evenings chasing after buyers. Well, why the devil shouldn't you? What do you want to do? Sit around holding her hand? Let me tell you, Stan, if your girl is worth her salt, she'll be glad to know you're out hustling, making some money to furnish the home-nest, instead of doing the lovey-dovey. The kind of fellow that kicks about working overtime, that wants to spend his evenings reading trashy novels or spooning and exchanging a lot of nonsense and foolishness with some girl, he ain't the kind of upstanding, energetic young man, with a future—and with Vision!—that we want here. How about it? What's your Ideal, anyway? Do you want to make money and be a responsible member of the community, or do you want to be a loafer, with no Inspiration or Pep?”
    ellauri107.html on line 504: Whenever Thompson twanged, “Put your John Hancock on that line,” Babbitt was as much amused by the antiquated provincialism as any proper Englishman by any American. He knew himself to be of a breeding altogether more esthetic and sensitive than Thompson's. He was a college graduate, he played golf, he often smoked cigarettes instead of cigars, and when he went to Chicago he took a room with a private bath. “The whole thing is,” he explained to Paul Riesling, “these old codgers lack the subtlety that you got to have to-day.”
    ellauri107.html on line 512: Mrs. Babbitt, darning socks, speculated, “Yes, I wonder why. Of course I don't want to fly in the face of the professors and everybody, but I do think there's things in Shakespeare—not that I read him much, but when I was young the girls used to show me passages that weren't, really, they weren't at all nice.”
    ellauri107.html on line 514: “I'll tell you why you have to study Shakespeare and those. It's because they're required for college entrance, and that's all there is to it! Personally, I don't see myself why they stuck 'em into an up-to-date high-school system like we have in this state. Be a good deal better if you took Business English, and learned how to write an ad, or letters that would pull. But there it is, and there's no talk, argument, or discussion about it! Trouble with you, Ted, is you always want to do something different! If you're going to law-school—and you are!—I never had a chance to, but I'll see that you do—why, you'll want to lay in all the English and Latin you can get.”
    ellauri107.html on line 515: “Oh punk. I don't see what's the use of law-school—or even finishing high school. I don't want to go to college 'specially. Honest, there's lot of fellows that have graduated from colleges that don't begin to make as much money as fellows that went to work early. Old Shimmy Peters, that teaches Latin in the High, he's a what-is-it from Columbia and he sits up all night reading a lot of greasy books and he's always spieling about the 'value of languages,' and the poor soak doesn't make but eighteen hundred a year, and no traveling salesman would think of working for that. I know what I'd like to do. I'd like to be an aviator, or own a corking big garage, or else—a fellow was telling me about it yesterday—I'd like to be one of these fellows that the Standard Oil
    ellauri107.html on line 516: Company sends out to China, and you live in a compound and don't have to do any work, and you get to see the world and pagodas and the ocean and everything! And then I could take up correspondence-courses. That's the real stuff! You don't have to recite to some frosty-faced old dame that's trying to show off to the principal, and you can study any subject you want to. Just listen to these! I clipped out the ads of some swell courses.”
    ellauri107.html on line 550: Kate Croy and Merton Densher are two betrothed Londoners who desperately want to marry but have very little money. Kate is constantly put upon by family troubles, and is now living with her domineering aunt, Maud Lowder. Into their world comes Milly Theale, an enormously rich young American woman who had previously met and fallen in love with Densher, although she has never revealed her feelings. Her travelling companion and confidante, Mrs. Stringham, is an old friend of Maud. Kate and Aunt Maud welcome Milly to London, and the American heiress enjoys great social success.
    ellauri107.html on line 552: With Kate as a companion, Milly goes to see an eminent physician, Sir Luke Strett, because she worries that she is suffering from an incurable disease. The doctor is noncommittal but Milly fears the worst. Kate suspects that Milly is deathly ill. After the trip to America where he had met Milly, Densher returns to find the heiress in London. Kate wants Densher to pay as much attention as possible to Milly, though at first he doesn't quite know why. Kate has been careful to conceal from Milly (and everybody else) that she and Densher are engaged.
    ellauri108.html on line 108: According to Clarke, Rastafari is "concerned above all else with black consciousness, with rediscovering the identity, personal and racial, of black people". The Rastafari movement began among Afro-Jamaicans who wanted to reject the British imperial culture that dominated Jamaica and replace it with a new identity based on a reclamation of their African heritage. Its emphasis is on the purging of any belief in the inferiority of black people, and the superiority of white people, from the minds of its followers. Rastafari is therefore Afrocentric, equating blackness with the African continent, and endorsing a form of Pan-Africanism.
    ellauri108.html on line 229: Enthusiasm for Rastafari was dampened by the unexpected death of Haile Selassie in 1975 and that of Marley in 1981. During the 1980s, the number of Rastas in Jamaica declined, with Pentecostal and other Charismatic Christian groups proving more successful at attracting young recruits. Several publicly prominent Rastas converted to Christianity, and two of those who did so—Judy Mowatt and Tommy Cowan—maintained that Marley had converted from Rastafari to Christianity, in the form of the Ethiopian Orthodox Church, during his final days. The significance of Rastafari messages in reggae also declined with the growing popularity of dancehall, a Jamaican musical genre that typically foregrounded lyrical themes of hyper-masculinity, violence, and sexual activity rather than religious symbolism.
    ellauri108.html on line 233: Rastafari is not a homogeneous movement and has no single administrative structure, nor any single leader. A majority of Rastas avoid centralised and hierarchical structures because they do not want to replicate the structures of Babylon and because their religion's ultra-individualistic ethos places emphasis on inner divinity. The structure of most Rastafari groups is less like that of Christian denominations and is instead akin to the cellular structure of other African diasporic traditions like Haitian Vodou, Cuban Santería, and Jamaica's Revival Zion. Since the 1970s, there have been attempts to unify all Rastas, namely through the establishment of the Rastafari Movement Association, which sought political mobilisation. In 1982, the first international assembly of Rastafari groups took place in Toronto, Canada. This and subsequent international conferences, assemblies, and workshops have helped to cement global networks and cultivate an international community of Rastas.
    ellauri108.html on line 311: Schindler also agreed with Moyo that the Goulds’ values are not aligned with those of the museum and that their money was not wanted. But he was soon converted and started hounding her instead.
    ellauri109.html on line 183: Iwan Turgenjew:
    ellauri109.html on line 346: Miten niin? Oulusta lähettää terkkuja Tiina Wiik, osuvasti @SwanOfTuonela, Junes jonkun heila:
    ellauri109.html on line 349: http://gab.com/SwanOfTuonela
    ellauri109.html on line 515: A fiction writer’s life is his treasure, his ore, his savings account, his jungle gym,” Updike wrote. “As long as I am alive, I don’t want somebody else playing on my jungle gym—disturbing my children, quizzing my ex-wife, bugging my present wife, seeking for Judases among my friends, rummaging through yellowing old clippings, quoting in extenso bad reviews I would rather forget, and getting everything slightly wrong.”
    ellauri109.html on line 589: Miller became Roth’s health-care proxy. One year, Roth wrote him a check for ten thousand dollars, telling him, “I want you to share in the general prosperity."
    ellauri109.html on line 597: In 2012, Roth invited Blake Bailey to his apartment, on West Seventy-ninth Street, for a kind of job interview. After quizzing Bailey on how a Gentile from Oklahoma could possibly write the life of a Jew from Newark, the deal was made. “I don’t want you to rehabilitate me,” Roth told him. “Just make me interesting.”
    ellauri109.html on line 829: "There are very many elements in Israeli society who want to avoid this kind of discussion."
    ellauri110.html on line 344: The diary gives a detailed account of Pepys's personal life. He was fond of wine, plays, and the company of other people. He also spent time evaluating his fortune and his place in the world. He was always curious and often acted on that curiosity, as he acted upon almost all his impulses. Periodically, he would resolve to devote more time to hard work instead of leisure. For example, in his entry for New Year's Eve, 1661, he writes: "I have newly taken a solemn oath about abstaining from plays and wine…" The following months reveal his lapses to the reader; by 17 February, it is recorded, "Here I drank wine upon necessity, being ill for the want of it."
    ellauri110.html on line 743: Eräänä funnutaina, talvella vuonna 1547 nähtiin (niinkuin luotettawa henkilö, Paulus von Gitzen, jumaluusopin tohtori fekä piispa Schleswiikisfä on kertonut) Hampurin erääfeen kirkkoon papin juuri faarnatesfa astuwan pitkä mies awoin jaloin, fekä pitkät hiukfet riippuwina alas olkapäille.
    ellauri110.html on line 745: Hän pyfähtyi wastapäätä faarnastuolia ja kuunteli femmoifella hartaudella faarnaa että hän, joka kerta kun Wapahtajan nimeä laufuttiin, notkisti polwiaan, huokafi fywään sekä löi rintaansa. Ja waikka silloin oli ankara talwi, ei hänellä ollut muuta päällänfä kuin wanhat, rikkinäiset houfut, pitkä polwiin asti ulottuva takki, wyöllä kiinnitetty, sekä päällimpänä kauhtana, joka ulottui jalkoihin faakka. Ulkonäöstä päättäen näytti hän olewan noin 30 wuoden ikäinen. Sanottiin hänen olewan syntyifin juutalainen.
    ellauri110.html on line 747: Koska siihen aikaan yleisesti puhuttiin tästä juutalaifesta ja kaikki ihmettelivät häntä, tiedusteli tohtori von Gitzen hänen majataloanfa ja faatuansa tietää, misfä hän afusteli, oli mainittu tohtori lähtenyt hänen luoksenfa ja kyfellyt kaikkia häntä koskevia afioita. Juutalainen oli mielellään fastannut hänen kyfymykfiinfä ja fanonut fyntyneenfä Jerufalemisfa, misfä hän Kristufen aikana oli fuutarina, fekä että hänen nimenfä oli Ahasverus. Hän oli itfe ollut faapuvilla Wapahtajan ristiinnaulitfemifesfa ja fiitä faakka oli hänen täytynyt moniaita fatoja vuofia kuljekfia ympäri mailmaa, toifesta kaupungifta toifeen. Puheenfa wahfistukfekfi oli hän tarkasti kertonut monta feikkaa, jotka olivat yhteydesfä Kristufen kärfimifen, ristiinnaulitfemifen ja kuoleman kansfa. Hän oli myöskin titetänyt kertoa kaikista muutokfista, jotka olivat tapahtuneet sittenkin Iätmaista fekä kirkollifella että waltiollifella alalla, ja erittäinkin oli hän ilmoittanut, kuinka kauwan jokainen Wapahtajan opetuslapfista oli elänyt fekä mimmoifen lopun jokainen heistä wihdoin oli faanut.
    ellauri110.html on line 749: Kaikkia tätä oli tohtori von Gitzen hartaalla tarkkaawaifuudella kuunnellut ja nähnyt olewan fyytä waatia juutalaifelta afian felwittämifekfi feikkaperäifen kertomukfen hänestä itfestään ja hänen elämänwaiheistaan. Kiertelemättä juutalainen oli filloin kertonut että hän Kristukfen ristiinaulitfemifen aikana oli afunut Judean pääkaupungisfa Jerufalemisfa ja samoin kun fuurin ofa juutalaifista ollut fitä mieltä, että Kristus oli kapinan nostaja ja kansan wiettelijä. Hän oli monta kertaa omin filmin nähnyt hänen ja niinkuin mutkin hänelle wihamielifet juutalaifet toiwonut, että hän hyvin anfaitukfi rangaistukfekfi tuomittaifiin kuolemaan ja kun nyt roomalainen maaherra Pontius Pilatus wihdoin oli wahwistanut Kristukfen kuolemantuomion ja kun hän itfe oli faanut kuulla, että Kristus wietäifiin ristiinnaulittawakfi oli hän heti jusfut waimonfa ja lapfienfa tykö fekä ilmoittanut heille, että jos tahtoifiwat nähdä, kuinka Kristus wiedään pääkallonpaikalle, heidän tuli heti feurata häntä. Ja koska talo, misfä hän fiihen aikaan afui, oli fen kadun warrella, joka raastuwasta johti Pääkallonpaikalle, ja fotamiesten fiis piti kuljettaa Kristusta fen talon fiwu, oli hän ottanut pienimmän lapfenfa käfivarrelleen ja kantanut fen portin ulkopuolelle, että lapfi paremmin ja felwemmin faifi nähdä kuolemaan tuomitun. Kun nyt Kristus, kantaen raskasta ristiään, oli päässyt fuutarin talon eteen, oli hän pyfähtynyt tahtoen wahän lewahtää ja fiinä aikomufesfa tahtoi wähän nojata feinää wastaan, oli Ahaswerus osakfi ymmärtämättömyydestä ja wihasta Kristutsa wastaan, ofakfi woittaakfenfa kiitosta kanfalta, karkoittanut hänet feinän tyköä näillä fanoilla: "Mene pois taloni feinän tyköä ristifi luo. joka kuuluu finulle", jonka perästä Kristus oli kääntynyt hänen puoleenfa ja fanonut: "Minä tahdon nyt feifoa täällä hetkifen lewähtämäsfä, mutta finä et täst´edes tule faamaan mitään rauhaa eli lepoa täsfä maailmasfa, vaan pakolaifena ja wainottuna pitää finun kuljeskeleman toifesta maasta toifeen, aina tuomiopäiwään faakka."
    ellauri110.html on line 751: Silloin fuutari oli heti laskenut lapfen fylistään ja kun hän aikoi lähteä huoneefeenfa, ei hän woinut fitä tehdä, waan hänen oli täytynyt feurata Kristusta Pääkallonpaikalle, misfä hän omin filmin näki hänen ristiinnaulittawan ja kuolewan.
    ellauri110.html on line 753: Kun nyt tämä murhenäytelmä oli loppunut, oli hän aikonut lähteä takaifin Jerufalemiin, kotiinfa waimonfa ja lapfienfa tykö, mutta ei ollut woinut fitä tehdä, waan hänen oli täytynyt lähteä fiitä paikasta, misfä ristiinaulitfeminen oli tapahtunut, aiwan wastakkaifeen fuuntaan - wieraifiin maihin, ja fiellä wuofifatoja wainottuna ja pakolaifena, fuuresfa kurjuudesfa, furullifena ja murheellifena kuljeskellut ympäri maailmaa toifesta paikasta toifeen. Hän oli aina fuuresti ikäwöinyt kerrankin taas faada käydä Jerufalemin kaupungisfa, johon hän Jumalan fallimukfesta oli kerran pääsfytkin, mutta oli tawannut koko kaupungin häwitettynä ja autiokfi faatettuna, eikä muuta nähtäwänä kuin kiviroukkioita ja talojen raunioita. Kokko kaupungin loistosta ja komeudesta, jommoisena se oli ennen Kristukfen kärfimystä ja ristiinnaulitfemista, ei näkynyt wähintäkään jälkeä. Sen lifäkfi oli hän fanonut ei warmuudella tietäwänfä, minkä tähden Jumala oli määrännyt hänet kurjuudesfa ja wiheliäifenä niin pitkänä aikoina kuljeskelemaan ympäri maailmaa monien tuhanfien ihmisten katfeltawakfi, luuli kujitenkin, että Jumala teki niin fiitä fyystä,, että hän fiitä afiasta faarnaifi kaikille juutalaifille ja kaikille parantumattomille fekä kehottaifi heitä katumukfeen ja parannukfeen. Wiimeifekfi hän toiwoi, että Jumala autuaalla kuolemalla wapahtaifi hänet hänen kurjuudestaan ja onnettomuudestaan.
    ellauri110.html on line 757: Mitä juutalaifen ykfityiselämään tulee, oli fe, ainakin fen mukaan kuin hän Hampurisfa eleli, ollut hiljaista ja ykfinäistä. Ei hän koskaan puhutelllut ketään, ellei joku fuoraan ollut kyfynyt häneltä jotakin. Jos joku oli kutfunut hänet aterioitfemaan, oli hän fyönyt ja juonut aiwan wähän, ja filloinkin kaikkein halwimpaa ruokaa, mitä pöydällä oli. Jos joku oli tahtonut antaa hänelle rahaa, ei hän koskaan ollut ottanut enempää kuin kahta lübeckiläitä killinkiä, jotka hän tawallifesti heti lahjoitti jollekin toifelle köyhälle ihmifelle, joka fattui wastaan tulemaan. Hänellä oli nimittäin tapana aina fanoa, ettei hän pannut mitään arwoa rahaan, waan luotti aina Jumalaan, että hän ruokkifi ja holhoifi häntä, mihinkä hän waan tulifi, että Jumala taiwuttaifi hyväfydämmifiä ihmifiä antamaan hänelle kyllikfi ruokaa ja waatteita. Hän ei koskaan hymyillyt, waan kulki alinomaa huokaillen, murheisfaan ja furullifena, fyvisfä ajatukfisfa, filloin tällöin toistaen, että hän luotti Jumalaan ja uskoi warmaan, että Jumala taas ottifi hänet armoonfa, koska hän fydämmestään katui fyntiä, jonka hän oli tehnyt Kristukfen ristiinnaulitfemifen päiwänä, ja lakkaamatta rukoili anteekfi antamusta tästä fynnistä.
    ellauri110.html on line 761: Muuten hän oli aina puhesfaan jumalallinen ja hurskas. Aina kun Wapahtajan nimeä mmainittiin, notkisti hän polwiaan jua huokafi fywään. Jos hän kuuli jonkun kiroowan eli fadattelewan taki wäärin käyttäwän Kristukfen nimeä, fanoi hän femmoifelle: "Woi finua kurjaa ja wiheliäistä ihmisraukkaa, minkä tähden käytät wäärin Jumalan ja Wapahtajafi Jefukfen nimeä, fekä minkä tähden puhut pilkallifesti hänen katkerasta kärfimykfestään ja kuolemastaan? Jos finä, niinkuin minä, olifit nähnyt, kuinka Wapahtajamme kidutettiin, ja mitkä haawat hän on meidän tähtemme faanut ja mimmoifen tuskan hän meidän fynteimme tähden on kärfinyt, niin ennemin tekifit omallle ruumiillefi jotain pahaa, kuin pilkallifesti puhuifit hänen pyhästä nimestään, kärsimykfestään ja kuolemastaan."
    ellauri110.html on line 765: Tämän kertomukfen on fepittänyt oppinut mies Rääwelisfä nimeltä Khrysostomus Dutulaeus, joka omin korwin oli kuullut tohtori von Gitzenin kertowan fen, ja on hän päiwännyt ja omakätifellä nimikirjoitukfellaan todistanut sen oikeakfi, joka tapahtui Huhtikuun 11:ta päiwänä wuonna 1604.
    ellauri110.html on line 767: Wuonna 1759 Kefäkuun 12:ta päiwänä oli Wernamon markkinoille faapunut tuntematon mies,fuuri ja luja wartaloltaan, pitkäpartainen ja wanhanaikaifella ulkonäpllä, kantaen feläsfään laatikkoa, jommoista fuutarit käyttiwät. Hän oli puettuna pitkään takkiin, jonka päälline noli tuhottu hewosenjouhista, houfut ja liiwi oliwat kameelinnahasta, fekä pääsfä päähine, talwilakin kaltainen, tehty tiikerintaljasta. Hän näytti hywin furullifelta, ja kun häneltä kyfyttiin, kuka hän oli, oli hän wastannut, että hän oli tuo onneton fuutari, ja oli hän monella tawalla kehoittanut kanfaa tekemään parannusta. Seuraawana päiwänä hän taas oli poisfa.
    ellauri110.html on line 769: Muuten owat monet muutkin ihmiset kuulleet kerrottawan, kuinka on olemasfa henkilöitä, jotka useisfa paikoisfa owat nähneet ja puhutelleet tätä juutalaista, joka ilman lepoa ja rauhaa kuljekfii maasta toifeen, aina tuomiopäivään faakka. The End.
    ellauri110.html on line 1068: Things that prevent you from eating include anger, pain, sickness, sabbath, or being unable to get food. So mendicants, for a human being with a hundred years life span I have counted the life span, the limit of the life span, the seasons, the years, the months, the fortnights, the nights, the days, the meals, and the things that prevent them from eating. Out of compassion, I’ve done what a teacher should do who wants what’s best for their disciples. Here are these roots of trees, and here are these empty huts. Practice absorption, mendicants! Don’t be negligent! Don’t regret it later! This is my instruction to you.”
    ellauri111.html on line 116: Not one of the apocryphal books is written in the Hebrew language (the Old Testament was written in Hebrew). All Apocryphal books are in Greek, except one which is extant only in Latin. Jehovah only knows Hebrew. You better pick it up if you want to talk to him.
    ellauri111.html on line 228: “The question is: what is guilt and what is it to be guilty or to confess your guilt? Most people don’t understand this at all. They think it’s just a matter of fact – did he or didn’t he do it? If he did, he’s guilty, if he didn’t, he’s not guilty. Remember what Ivan Karamazov said, that everyone wants to kill their father – but the world knows many of these mental parricides as obedient and loving sons, who are not guilty of anything.”
    ellauri111.html on line 235: “I’ve read about it …” I answered, not wanting to risk offending him any more, though sensing that he did in fact know exactly what I had and hadn’t read.
    ellauri111.html on line 253: “These are difficult things to talk about, and I should emphasize that I never wanted anyone to be locked up, or beaten, or put to death for what they’d done. I’ve seen too much of what that means. Punishment isn’t the answer, but acknowledging your guilt is … the first step.”
    ellauri111.html on line 257: “You want me to explain?” he asked.
    ellauri111.html on line 267: “But I repeat,” he continued after a moment, raising his hands dramatically, “I am not demanding the maximum penalty of the law, not even for these torturers. I do not want them imprisoned, beaten, or executed, though I understand the outrage of people who do. Remember, when Ivan asked Alyosha what to do about the general who’d had the little boy torn to pieces by his dogs, even mild, sweet-tempered Alyosha said ‘Shoot him’. But that doesn’t help either. Just because I wrote a novel called Crime and Punishment, people imagine I’m obsessed with punishing. Not at all. All I want is that the guilty are not acquitted. That their guilt is clearly stated. And that they accept it—that’s the most important of all. Let them be found guilty—and let them go free.”
    ellauri111.html on line 297: “Now some people might think that was a sign of how deeply he had repented, allowing himself to be shamed before the whole word. But, as I hope you also remember, Bishop Tikhon could see that wanting to publicize your guilt in that way is not necessarily the same as really accepting it, inwardly. Wanting to be seen – and maybe even admired – as a great sinner is not quite the same as actually repenting. And perhaps that’s how it is here too. Of course, if you want to be fussy, you could say that he’s just talking to himself. He’s not produced a written, let alone a printed, confession. I’m the one who wrote it, not him. And yet, it’s as if he’s rehearsing his story for the benefit of the world, for the imaginary audience we each of us have inside our heads.”
    ellauri111.html on line 303: “Exactly! It’s a performance. It’s not the heart speaking. The heart would say something very different. In fact, the heart wouldn’t need to say very much at all: it has only one thing to say, to love and to ask for love, to forgive and to ask forgiveness. We’ve been talking about people who commit crimes but won’t own up to what they’ve done, people who want to say to anyone who’ll listen: ‘Not guilty! My conscience is clear! Don’t blame me!’ But the real problem is not the evidence of the facts—did he or didn’t he do this or say that. The real problem is that this is completely back to front. The person who loves, even if they haven’t committed any crimes, is the person who wants to be guilty, who doesn’t just want to forgive but wants to be forgiven; the person who thinks of themselves not only as guilty but infinitely guilty, guilty of everything, before everyone, in fact the guiltiest one of all.”
    ellauri111.html on line 311: “The person who loves is the person who wants to be guilty.” Yes! This is the profound essence of “All are responsible to all for all.” Love your blog.
    ellauri111.html on line 361: In the Bible, God tells us what we need to do to have eternal life. He tells us how we can to get to heaven, how we can go there--and he wants us to make it. He wants to know us and he wants us to make it into heaven. He is not willing that any should perish, but that all should come to repentance (ref. 2 Peter 3:9).
    ellauri111.html on line 443: God does not want to remain your enemy and he does not want you to go to hell. Well he wants to be our enemy long enough to scare us into obedience. Why he didn't just make us so from the beginning may make you wonder, but never mind. There are more wonderful things reserved for us to wonder at. He is a friend at heart, though he may strike you as a bully.
    ellauri111.html on line 522: (You can't see it but trust me he is. Faith is strong confidence on something you don't see, so have faith. Faith is will to believe. If you want to believe it do. There´s nothing more to it.)
    ellauri111.html on line 552: Is this working on you at all guys? Are you ready to repent of your sins? To repent means to forsake your evil ways and live God's way according to his word. Are you ready to listen finallly? All your life you've been your own authority concerning what is right and what is wrong. You've made your own decisions while ignoring what the Lord says in His holy word, the Bible. You've served yourself and not God. To repent means that you turn to GOD AND THE BIBLE AS YOUR AUTHORITY. It means you can say, "Lord, everything you say in the Bible is right. If my feelings contradict the Bible, I AM WRONG. Lord, I want to live under YOUR AUTHORITY, not my own. Help me, Jesus, to do right."
    ellauri111.html on line 564: Realize that you have lived under your own authority. You've lived the way that YOU have wanted to. You have lived without regard for God's precepts. Understand in your mind that you've lived in sin against God's word. Think it through and count the cost. Jesus made no promises that you will have an easy life. In fact, the Bible teaches that all that will live godly in Christ Jesus will suffer persecution. Are you willing to live as one of the despised, saved, holy, overcoming, victorious ones? If so, come on to Jesus. He is waiting backstage already.
    ellauri111.html on line 566: Be determined that you want God to be your Father and not your enemy. (Believe me, he is not a guy you want as an enemy.) Decide that you WANT the Lord and His ways. Satan and this world are doing nothing but kicking your hind parts all up and down the street. They will leave you destroyed and with your part in the lake that burneth with fire and brimstone. God will lift you up if you submit yourself to him for his superintending care. And his holy child, Jesus, will be your all-powerful Lord, Saviour, protector, guide, and best friend you could ever have. You will still be kicked in the behind as before, but now it's God's friendly boot that is doing the kicking.
    ellauri111.html on line 580: If you are ready to save yourself from this untoward generation, if you are ready to reject what this wicked and perverse world has to offer, if you are ready to be safe and stay safe in God Almighty, if you want Jesus Christ as Lord of your life, if you want to be reconciled to your Creator, if you want to go to heaven, if you want to escape hell -- then put your faith in the only one who can do something about it! Do you believe that Jesus Christ died for you? Do you believe that He rose from the dead? Do you repent of your sins? Do you want to follow Jesus? Join the short line marked LAMBS on the right. Do you want to go to hell? Go to the long line on the left with a goat logo.
    ellauri111.html on line 582: If so, REPENT of your sins and talk to the Lord in prayer in your own words RIGHT NOW. Here are some suggestions for your own words, but feel free to vary them ever so slightly. Ask God to forgive you of your sins and to help you to do what is right. BELIEVE in the Lord Jesus. CONFESS the Lord Jesus with your mouth. This is not a long, drawn out, hard process. Do you believe in the blood of Jesus? Do you want God to pass over you in the day of his wrath so that you are not cast into hell and the lake of fire with the wicked? Do you want to be saved?
    ellauri111.html on line 584: You don't need a preacher in your presence in order to be saved, you have heard the gospel here. Do you BELIEVE it and want it? Are you ready to be under God's commands or do you want to keep on doing what you want to do? This decision is yours and your future depends on what choice you make.
    ellauri111.html on line 586: If you know that this is the truth, I counsel you to make your decision today because tomorrow is not promised to you, or the price may have gone up. Not only people´s hearts get hard when they keep on rejecting the truth. I could say from my own experience what else tends to get hard but I won´t. You don´t want your heart to turn to stone to the gospel because if it does, you will go to hell. That I can guarantee you because the Bible says so. Hell is real notwithstanding the fake preachers and "theologians" and "doctors" that would tell you otherwise.
    ellauri111.html on line 592: Some people don't know how to pray. Praying is just talking to the Lord. If you want to be saved, talk to Jesus about it. You don't have to repeat these words, but someone may say something like this--
    ellauri111.html on line 594: "Hi Lord, how are you doing? Any catches from the pool of sinners today? Well here's one, if your daily quota is short. I know that I am a sinner but I want to be saved before the gong. I repent of my sins, every one, even the one... OK I get it, you know. I don't WANT to do evil anymore, it just happens. I want to become self-righteous through the blood of Jesus. I'm asking you to please forgive some of my sins against you. I want a new lease of life in the Lord Jesus Christ. I want to be everything that You created me to be, and more. I think Jesus shed His blood and died for me so that I could be saved from my sins. I guess He rose from the dead on the third day. I so want to be your child and follow behind the holy scriptures like a dog. Okay? In that case, thank you for being merciful to me, a sinner. Thank you Lord Jesus for saving my soul from sin. Please fill me with your precious, Holy Spirit so that I can live a self-righteous, fun-denying life for you. I'm giving you myself, for what it's worth. Please show me what you want me to do. Give me a sign! Any sign! Please help me to understand your word and to walk in your leash. Please don't mumble! Please guide me to Jesus!. It is in Jesus' Name I pray, Amen."
    ellauri111.html on line 625: You should confer with God about what you want to do and confess with my mouth full of soap that you believe in his holy child, Jesus. That you repent of my sins and that you believe in the death, burial and the little doubtful part of the resurrection of the Lord Jesus Christ.
    ellauri111.html on line 626: After praying and making a confession of faith, end your prayer in Jesus' name and then read some suitable scriptures such as 1 Peter 3:21 and Matthew 28:18-20 aloud (Matthew 28:18-20 says to baptize in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost), and then say something like, "Father, I am baptizing myself in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, in want of a holier man" and then go COMPLETELY under the water (keep your nose shut with your fingers, symbolizing death and burial with the Lord Jesus Christ) and come up again after counting to ten (symbolizing my rising to my new life in Christ Jesus)
    ellauri111.html on line 644: As time goes along we are in a position to receive whichever spiritual gift(s) that God is pleased to give us, e.g., exhortation, prophesy, teaching, etc. (the gifts are found in the New Testament epistles (letters)). The apostle Paul teaches us that we should desire to prophesy because then we speak to men unto edification, exhortation, and comfort (I Corinthians 14:1)--just ask God for what you want and just walk on in obdience to the word--we can help the saints to go forward and be built up and be comforted (I Corinthians 14:3).
    ellauri111.html on line 646: Prophesying can be fun and it is easy, even women can do it (not in the church of course, but at home). When you prophesy you can edify God´s church (I Corinthians 14:4)--we need the prophets. John the Baptist was more than a prophet (Matthew 11:9) and it was testified that he did no miracle (John 10:41). Prophesying is telling men what God wants them to hear. The testimony of Jesus is the spirit of prophecy (Revelation 19:10).
    ellauri111.html on line 666: NOTE: THERE ARE TWO GREAT WEAPONS BY WHICH THE DEVIL AND HIS AGENTS HAVE DESTROYED AND ARE DESTROYING MANKIND--THE TELEVISION AND THE SCHOOL SYSTEM. THESE THINGS ARE WORSENING AT BREAKNECK SPEED. I do not want to overload you, but babies can read while still in diapers and the sooner they can read, the sooner they can read the Bible. Learn about sanctified homeschooling at this link.
    ellauri111.html on line 689: The world is full of false churches, full of false teachers and false prophets that want to make merchandise of you--they are on television and in churches. As a Christian, you will want to go to church and be with other Christians, but I do not know of ONE good church building and there are MANY cults. BE CAREFUL AND READ YOUR AUTHORIZED BIBLE (I urge you to print out and bind your own--the ones being sold today are often altered--There is a good Authorized Bible download at this link and a sound Overview of the Bible at this link.).
    ellauri111.html on line 703: BEWARE OF THE HELL BOUND CHURCH PEOPLE--ALL OF THEM! IF YOU FOLLOW THEIR DOCTRINES, YOU WILL GO TO HELL TOO! They will tell you you can do what you feel like doing--doing all the sins you want to--and that you will still go to heaven. That is a lie from the devil and totally the opposite of what the Bible says. Nobody will sin their way into heaven. Ephesians 5:6 says, Let no man deceive you with vain words: for because of these things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of disobedience. If you do not repent, believe AND follow the commands of Jesus, you are not saved. If Jesus is not your Lord, he is not your Saviour, you are yet in your sins. For more on this, you may wish to see our article entitled, Lordship Salvation.
    ellauri111.html on line 705: FLEE FROM "CONTEMPLATIVE PRAYER", "EMERGING 'CHURCH'", "CONTEMPLATIVE SPIRITUALITY" "ANCIENT FUTURE CHURCH", etc. In this movement, these people are learning and using black magic type occult techniques in churches! In disregard and disobedience to the Bible, they THEY TELL PEOPLE TO CLEAR THEIR MINDS AND KEEP REPEATING THE NAME OF THE LORD OR SOME OTHER NAME. They say that focusing on the Bible is a hinderance to prayer--yes, the Bible is a hinderance to praying to the DEVIL!!!!!!!!!!!!! Praise the Lord!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! Stay away from people who want to teach you to pray to the devil calling the devil by the name of the Lord. Flee from anybody who puts down the word of God--they are doing that so that you will be defenseless against their lies. These are the end times and now church people are being deceived into CALLING AND SUMMON DEVILS! The emerging church of the devil is using the same yoga-type techniques as hindus, buddhists Roman Catholic mystics, Greek orthodox mystics, occultists and other mystical traditions. The people are even warned about the possibility of encountering evil spirits during these exercises--no regular prayer requires a warning, no, no, no--BUT PRAYING TO THE DEVIL DOES! AND WHEN THAT KUNDALINI SERPENT POWER RISES UP IN THESE PEOPLE, THEY WILL EITHER BECOME MAGICIANS OR GO INSANE OR SOME OTHER HORRIBLE THING--THERE ARE SYMPTOMS AND MANIFESTATIONS! CHURCH PEOPLE ARE GOING TOWARDS BEING POSSESSED! These are last days--BE WARE, DEAR ONE, BE WARE!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! GET SAVED, READ YOUR BIBLE AND OBEY IT AND LEAVE THE TELEVISION ALONE!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! THE BEAST IS COMING!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!
    ellauri112.html on line 683: Marlo, already a mother of two, begins the film heavily, outrageously pregnant: we learn, in rapid succession, that this third pregnancy was unwanted, that her husband does little of the domestic labour, and that her “shitty” upbringing is the reason she’s so committed to her nuclear family unit. Postnatal depression, never named, haunts the narrative: her wealthy brother offers to pay for a night nanny to avoid, in his words, the advent of another “bad time” like the one that followed the birth of her son, Jonah. When the nanny arrives – described by more than one reviewer as a “millennial Mary Poppins” – the panacea seems to be working. Not only does she look after the baby at night but she also operates as a kind of empathy machine, listening to Marlo’s problems, sharing sangria in the garden, and baking the Minions cupcakes that Marlo herself never has the time to make. The postnatal depression, it seems, disperses; Jonah – who has “emotional problems” – finds a place at a school more suited to his needs, family dinners get increasingly wholesome, and Marlo does a passable Stevie Nicks impression at a child’s birthday party. And then comes the twist: after a bender in Brooklyn with Tully, a sleep-deprived Marlo, drunk at the wheel, drives her car off a bridge and ends up in hospital, and we realise there was nobody else in the car. Her maiden name, we learn, was Tully.
    ellauri112.html on line 709: In Tully, Marlo starts to see the kind of caretaker she wants to have, and their bondage becomes what keeps her going. As much as Tully turns into a super nanny, the real job she does is help return Marlo to a functioning hole person. With the aid of Tully, Marlo gets her love life back again, gets it each day, and kicks the postpartum depression to the curb. Should kick Drew there too maybe. Tully she cant kick without kicking herself in the ass.
    ellauri112.html on line 723: "Tully," is a dramedy you'll love so much that you'll want to rewind and watch it all over again. Rewind? What a retro notion.
    ellauri112.html on line 795: If I kept the 7th day as the Sabbath rest, then I’d be “a debtor to keep the whole law”, and then I will “become estranged from Christ” and “fallen from grace” (Gal. 5:3-4). I will not be estranged from Christ and fall from His grace nor will I teach my family nor my congregation family this. Who wants to keep all those 10 plus obsolete paragraphs anyway? Love is all you need.
    ellauri112.html on line 869:
    Bishop Wayne T. Jackson from Detroit womanizing moderately. He wanted to hear out Donald Trump on diet coke.

    ellauri112.html on line 897: Persistently, honorable men are engaged in a discussion as to what should be the contents of the communion cup. Should the cup contain wine, the fermented juice of grapes? Or should it be unfermented grape juice? Does it matter? What difference does it make, if any? Should church leaders accommodate both Christians who want to use wine, as well as those who prefer unfermented grape juice, by offering what is sometimes called a “split cup” or a “split tray”? In other words, what should be the second “element,” or the contents of the communion cup? Can grape juice change to real blood and no fucking tomato juice? How should such questions—controversial as they are—be answered?
    ellauri112.html on line 915: Since the use of unfermented grape juice is so popular, individual lay Christians may be confronted with grape juice instead of wine when they want to observe the sacrament. Therefore, we must briefly examine the Christian´s duty, whenever he or she is offered grape juice in the Lord´s Supper.
    ellauri112.html on line 923: The last three pages of this web site contain an epilogue, a list of suggested readings for those who want to pursue their study of wine in the Lord´ Supper, and information about this web site and its author. The about page also contains a link to a downloadable paper about wine in the Lord´s Supper. (This paper is available as either a .doc or a .pdf.)
    ellauri112.html on line 925: Last, but not least, the about page offers a downloadable brochure, suitable for mass distribution and for anyone wanting a very brief summary of the subject of wine in the Lord´s Supper. Some readers may want a few copies for their church´s book table.
    ellauri117.html on line 144: 1906 machte Kafka seinen Abschluß an der Prager Universitet und wandte sich mit Unbehagen dem Versicherungsgeschäft zu. Die Plackerei der Büroarbeit verlangte nach einem Ausgleich, und er nahm jede Gelegenheit wahr, außerhalb der Stadt zu schwinmen, zu rudern oder zu wanken. Aber diese Zerstreuungen waren nur kurze Unterbrechungen der zermürbenden Routine, die er sich gezwungenermaßen als Lebensinhalt gewählt hatte. Tagsüber arbeitete er für die Arbeiter-Unfall-Versicherungs-Anstalt», und
    ellauri117.html on line 151: Das Leiden unterbrach seine Laufbahn als Versicherungsangestellter und zwang ihn, die ihm verbleibenden Jahre in Sanatorien und Kurorten zu verbringen. So paradox es klingt, diese Situation machte ihm das Leben leichter, da er jetzt in der Lage war, sich ganz auf das Schreiben zu konzentrieren.
    ellauri117.html on line 153: machen. In den zwanziger Jahren edierte er die drei Romanfragmente Kafkas, Mitte der dreißiger Jahre veröffentlichte er die erste Gesammelte Werke»-Ausgabe. Doch erst nach dem Zweiten Weltkrieg wurde die Bedeutung Franz Kafkas einem breiten Leserpublikum bewusst.
    ellauri117.html on line 160: Man sagt, daß Kafka seine erste sexuelle "Begegnung" mit seiner französischen Gouvernante hatte, doch hat er diskreterweise immer nur in Andeutungen über dieses «Urerlebnis» gesprochen. Den ersten regen Geschlechtsverkehr hatte er als Zwanzigjähriger mit einer tschechischen Verkäuferin. Sie verbrachten einen Abend in einer billigen Absteige. Diese Erfahrung bestärkte Kafka in seinem Ekel vor dem Geschlechtsverkehr und in seinem Glauben, daß Sexualität eine von Natur aus schmutzige, nichtswürdige Anlegenheit sei. Gerade das Entgegengesetzte predigte D.H.Lawrence (infra). Trotzdem streunte er seine ganze Studentenzeit indurch immer wieder durch das Bordellviertel von Prag, genau wie die anderen Heißsporne unter seinen Kommilitonen. Er ekelte sich vor seiner eigenen sexuellen Lust, erkannte aber zugleich auch die Notwendigkeit, ihr hin und wieder einzustecken:
    ellauri117.html on line 166: 1912 lernte er in Max Brods Haus Felice Bauer kennen, die die erste große Liebe seine ns werden sollte und mit der er zweimal insgeheim verlobt war, Franz war zu jener Zeit 29 Jahre alt. In den folgenden fünf Jahren bildete Felice das Zentrum seines Lebens, von dem er sich im ständigen Wechsel angezogen und wieder abgestoßen fühlte. Er verwirrte sie mit einer Flut selbstquälerischer Briefe. Diese ambivalente, heftigen Gefühlsschwankungen unterworfene Romanze beflügelte den Schriftsteller in Kafka, doch seine Unentschlossenheit, in welche Richtung sich ihre Beziehung entwickeln sollte, frustrierte Felice. Wie Koalas Onkel, aufzählte der kleine Jude die Vorzüge und Nachteile einer Ehe. Schließlich schickte sie ihre Freundin Grete Bloch, um Kafka nach seinen Absichten zu fragen. Mit der Zeit wurde Grete die Vertraute des Schriftstellers, und Felice hegte den Verdacht, daß dabei sein Fühler tiefer gegangen war, als sie zugeben wollten. Das Verhältnis zwischen Franz und Felice kühlte mehr und mehr ab. Doch 1916 verbrachten sie gemeinsam einen zehntägigen Urlaub. Sie wohnten in zwei neben einanderliegenden Zimmern und spielten offensichtlich Mann und Frau. Wieder beschlossen sie zu heiraten, doch 1917 - ungefähr zur gleichen Zeit, als seine Tuberkulose erkannt wurde - löste Kafka die Verlobung wieder. Was für ein Mistkäfer.
    ellauri117.html on line 168: 1919 begegnete er während eines Aufenthalts in einer Pension in der Nähe von Prag Julie Wohryzek, der Tochter eines tschechischen Schuhmachers. Sie wurde seine zweite Verlobte. Im Gegensatz zu Felice hatte Julies Familie weder Besitz noch Ansehen, un Kafkas Vater bemerkte mit beißendem Spott, daß sein Sohn wohl besser beraten wäre, wenn er ein Bordell besuchen würde. Die etwa dreißig Jahre alte Julie war eine unbekümmerte, unge gebildete Frohnatur. Kafka sah in ihr die ideale Partnerin für eine zuträgliche, vernünftige Ehe. Doch auch diese Verlobung wurde aufgelöst - angeblich weil das Paar das Loch nicht finden konnte, in Wahrheit eine der zwanghaften Befürchtungen, die Frans Beziehungen zu Frauen stets überschatteten.
    ellauri117.html on line 173: 1923 knüpfte Kafka eine Beziehung zu der zweiundzwanzigjährien Polin Dora Diamant. Dora war in chassidischer Tradition erzogen worden und bestärkte Kafka in seinem wachsenden Interesse am Zionismus. Bald darauf lebten sie zusammen in Berlin, in jenem häuslichen Glück, dem er sein Leben lang ausgewichen war. Dora blieb bis zu seinem Tod im Jahre 1924 bei ihm.
    ellauri117.html on line 235: `No, I don't want one.'
    ellauri117.html on line 310: `That's certainly one way of looking at it. I can say this much, I feel better. It has certainly helped me. Is this the Bruderschaft you wanted?'
    ellauri117.html on line 316: `At any rate, one feels freer and more open now -- and that is what we want.'
    ellauri117.html on line 472: A blonde, wanting to earn some money.

    ellauri117.html on line 661: There are always things that might suggest Mr. Locke was gay, such as his being a lifetime bachelor, having no children, and having a life that was surrounded by philosophical men, there is nothing that would give substance to said rumor. You might want to read Locke’s Fundamental Constitution of the Carolinas (1669) which was co-authored by The First Earl of Shaftesbury. It is rather draconian and clearly deviates from the principles of Locke’s more famous two Treatises. It is a matter of scholarly debate just how much Locke contributed to the positions on slavery in this document. Locke was also a good counter-voice to Rousseau in terms of perhaps a more individualistic bent, whereas Rousseau’s philosophy was more collectivist. I think if you look to the Preamble to the US Constitution you can see the influence of both, although the Bill of Rights has a much more individualist orientation.
    ellauri118.html on line 646: She wants the pow´r to say — Ah!what do you do? Ei jaxa sanoa - hei!mitäs tää nyt on?
    ellauri118.html on line 723: It self now wants the Art to live, Ei siihen auta usko eikä rukous,
    ellauri118.html on line 773: The Wind that wanton´d in her Hair, Tuuli joka tuiversi sen palmikkoa,
    ellauri118.html on line 953: "At some point you find out Serena Joy is not sterile," Miller said. "If it's the Commander [who is sterile] and Serena could be fertile, that opens up a whole lot of doors for us story-wise. When you work in TV, you're always trying to think of just filling up your bag with tennis balls because you don't know when you're going to have to play tennis with them. You always want all sorts of interesting stuff to be happening."
    ellauri118.html on line 972: The show modernizes the setting with references to Uber and Craigslist.
    (Mikä vitun Craigslist? Craigslist is an American classified advertisements website with sections devoted to jobs, housing, for sale, items wanted, services, community service, gigs, résumés, and discussion forums. Craig Newmark began the service in 1995 as an email distribution list to friends, featuring local events in the San Francisco Bay. Privately owned company. Property is theft.)
    ellauri119.html on line 446: The term "free love" has been used to describe a social movement that rejects marriage, which is seen as a form of social bondage. The Free Love movement's initial goal was to separate the state from sexual matters such as marriage, birth control, and adultery. It claimed that such issues were the concern of the people involved, and no one else. Many people in the early 19th century believed that marriage was an important aspect of life to "fulfill earthly human happiness." Middle-class Americans wanted the home to be a place of stability in an uncertain world. This mentality created a vision of strongly defined gender roles, which provoked the advancement of the free love movement as a contrast. The term "sex radical" has been used interchangeably with the term "free lover". By whatever name, advocates had two strong beliefs: opposition to the idea of forceful sexual activity in a relationship and advocacy for a woman to use her body in any way that she pleases. These are also beliefs of Feminism. As St. Augustine put it: love God and then do as you please.
    ellauri119.html on line 518: Examples of ludus in movies include Dangerous Liaisons [Okay!], Cruel Intentions, and Kids. Ludic lovers want to have as much fun as possible. When they are not seeking a stable relationship, they rarely or never become overly involved with one partner and often can have more than one partner at a time, in other words a school of partners. They don't reveal their true thoughts and feelings to their partner(s), especially if they think they can gain some kind of advantage over their partner(s). The expectation may also be that the partner(s) should also be similarly minded. If a relationship materializes it will be about having fun and indulging in activities of varying degrees of learnedness together. This love style carries the likelihood of infidelity. In its most extreme form, ludic love can become sexual addiction. No Lee's recognizable traits.
    ellauri119.html on line 646: Rosenbaum left Russia at the tail end of the Trust program. She was assisted by bolshevik Hollywood. Like a typical crypto-jew and communist she used a pseudonym. She became, together with Leo Strauss, a leading philosopher of the Trotskyites. She, like Strauss, helped create the philosophy of arrogance and entitlement that justifies the lies of government leaders to the people. Her philosophies misrepresent the realities of how wealth and psychopathic greed coupled with immorality destroys civilization. Her solution to class warfare is group disloyalty of the rich to society and the exploitation of the national resources by a privileged class to destroy the economy and sabotage the nation. She misrepresented American tradition in a way that benefitted our enemies and internationalized our national resources leaving them easy pickings for the exploitation of unregulated international markets. She advocated the ruinous gold standard which allows our enemies the opportunity to deflate our money supply and strangle the economy at their whim. By simply hoarding gold and/or sending it out of the nation the bankers can ruin us under a gold standard. Her philosophy falsely claims that the market can and will correct the actions of the enemy within to ruin the nation by their designs. She wanted to grant the enemy the right to act with impunity and free rein as a Trojan horse within America to completely destroy our nation, and she has nearly succeeded. The removal of the ability of government to impose with force the collective will of the nation inevitably leads to balkanization, and that was well known and desired by our bolshevik enemies, Rosenbaum’s masters. She never pointed out the name and the nature of the enemy, instead scapegoating the poor and the communists for what international jewry was doing, with her as one of its leading members. As far as I know, she NEVER addressed the existential danger of jewish messianic prophecy and the subversion of the American government by Israel. Being herself a jew, she was disloyal to America in favor of Israel. She was disloyal to the American majority population in favor of the banking class. She did absolutely nothing that was ever in any way harmful to the communists or the bankers, who have so harmed America.
    ellauri119.html on line 702: Rational people are utilitarians who want government to produce the greatest good for the greatest number. Libertarians like Rand want the greatest good for me and the public be damned.
    ellauri119.html on line 730: “Atlas Shrugged” is fiction. Authors of fiction can write anything they want to write no matter how nonsensical it is.
    ellauri131.html on line 437: A long time ago I asked the Universe to give me a job as an actress in a great fantasy series. I did everything I thought was right. I wrote down in detail what I wanted in my diary and I imagined it and felt truly happy. However, for some reason, my desire did not happen.
    ellauri131.html on line 439: Then one day, suddenly, I discovered the reason why. Sometimes, when my daily obligations felt too heavy for me, I felt desperate that I was not yet an actress. Right there was the problem! It was because of the despair that I was sending out to the Universe that I still did not have what I so much wanted. When I released that energy of lack and truly believed that what is mine will find its way to me, things started to happen. Today I live the life I always wanted as a homemaker, blogger, and part time cleaning lady. I send huge gratitude to the Universe. Thank you so much for The Secret!
    ellauri131.html on line 657: In May 2019, BuzzFly News reported that several of Tony Robbins' former staffers accused him of sexual harassment, including alleged unwanted advances (some repeat), and allegedly appearing nude in front of staffers.
    ellauri131.html on line 708: He's not everything I ever wanted
    ellauri131.html on line 728: The reality: even in 1995, people didn't want to pay Robbins' prices to watch Robbins talking.
    ellauri131.html on line 863: I think that is because, over the past decade or so, people have become far more aware of the concept of privilege. Which roughly translates to: “no I don’t want to read about all the problems a middle-class straight, white women with a good job has, no thank you”. It feels whiny, flat, tone-deaf. Marianne Power chases self-help like the world is falling apart and her life is in tatters, but the main source of her problems?
    ellauri131.html on line 940: Covey was raised on an egg farm outside Salt Lake City in a tight-knit Mormon family, and that, too, played a part. "My parents were just constantly affirming me in everything that I did. Late at night I'd wake up and hear my mother talking over my bed, saying, 'You're going to do great on this test. You can do anything you want.'
    ellauri131.html on line 1063: levottomasti kun lentelevät lehdet. unruhig wandern, wenn die Blätter treiben. ja harhaa irtautuneen lehden lailla.
    ellauri132.html on line 157: Der Philosoph Descartes glaubte in seiner berühmten Aussage: "Ich meine, also bin ich" die grundlegendste Wahrheit gefunden zu haben. Tatsächlich hatte er den grundlegendsten Fehler ausgesprochen: Denken mit Sein und Identität mit Denken gleichzusetzen. Der zwanghafte Denker, also fast jeder, lebt in einem Zustand scheinbarer Isolation, in einer wahnsinnig komplexen Welt ständiger Probleme und Konflikte, einer Welt, die die wachsende Zersplitterung des Geistes widerspiegelt. Erleuchtung ist ein Zustand der Ganzheit, „in einem“ und somit in Frieden. In einem Leben in seinem manifestierten Aspekt, mit der Welt, sowie mit deinem tiefsten Selbst und unmanifestierten Leben – mit einem Wesen. Erleuchtung ist nicht nur das Ende des Leidens und des ständigen Konflikts innen und außen, sondern auch das Ende der schrecklichen Versklavung des unaufhörlichen Denkens. Was für eine unglaubliche Befreiung es ist! Kein Quatsch mehr zwischen den Ohren. Ich bin nur!
    ellauri132.html on line 163: E.T. Jaaaa, aber nur weil Sie ein Kreuzworträtsel lösen oder eine Atombombe bauen, heißt das nicht, dass Sie Ihren Verstand benutzen. So wie Hunde es lieben, Knochen zu kauen, liebt es der Verstand, seine Zähne in Probleme zu bekommen. Deshalb löst er Kreuzworträtsel und baut Atombomben. An beidem hast du kein Interesse, Knochen oder Bomben. Lassen Sie mich Folgendes fragen: Können Sie Ihren Verstand verlieren, wann immer Sie wollen? Haben Sie den "Aus"-Button gefunden? Den "Toll"- Knopf? Ich habe! Einen "Ein"-Knopf habe ich dagegen nicht gefunden. Vielleicht gibt es keinen.
    ellauri132.html on line 223: “It’s about intelligence and talent, and wealth is not a demonstration of either one,” said Vonnegut, 82, of New York. He said he wouldn’t want schoolchildren deprived of a quality education because they were poor.
    ellauri132.html on line 360: Catch? None. Just sign up to receive some additional, exclusive Writer’s Wisdom on topics every writer wants answered!
    ellauri132.html on line 875: Und wieder zum drittenmale verzieht sich des Fremden Gewand. Ja vielä 3. kerran se kiskoo vieraan palttoota.
    ellauri132.html on line 886: Und ließ sich durch sie führen im Schatten der Häuserwand. Ja antoi johtaa izeänsä talonseinän varjossa.
    ellauri132.html on line 914: Die Dirne wankt' und lachte und bot ihm die Hand zum Gruß, Huzu wänkkäsi ja nauroi ja tarjos miekkoselle kättä,
    ellauri133.html on line 64:

    Your opening has to do a lot of different things. It has to establish the setting. Think of this as the camera planing over the outside of the spaceship, or across the crowded ballroom. Fuck I will! That's for idiots who cannot read but want to watch ABC TV. You know where you can stick that camera of yours and take inside belfies.


    ellauri133.html on line 67:

    Describing an average day in the life of your character. No, it won’t give us deep insight into her personality, it’s just boring. Start the story where your character’s life gets interesting. Fuck you, only idiots with a boring life want stories apt to tickle striped-ass baboons.


    ellauri133.html on line 68:

    Backstory. No-one except the author is really interested in your character's backstory. The reader wants to see what is happening now. Speak for yourself, dear "reader"! Whatever backstory is really necessary can be woven into the main story. Fuck you, damn tunnel visionary. This type of fundamentalistic rules get bent from wire to cater to the nonexisting taste of hoi polloi.
    ellauri133.html on line 75:

    Geography. If I had wanted to know that Granard was in the midlands and had 1200 inhabitants, I would have bought an atlas. I wanted to read about people doing interesting things. Interesting monkeys doing interesting monkey things, like fleecing, hooting, or masturbating in a tree. Yep, who cares which tree.


    ellauri133.html on line 398: It is set in the fictional town of Derry, Maine. According to King, it’s a stand-in for the real town of Bangor, Maine, where he has lived since 1979. King and his wife were debating between moving to Portland or Bangor; King was in favor of Bangor because he considered Portland “a yuppie town” and that Bangor was “a hard-ass working class town ... and I thought that the story, the big story, I wanted to write, was here … all my thoughts on monsters and the children’s tale Three Billy Goats Gruff.
    ellauri133.html on line 402: King has stated that his goal with It was to blend all of the scariest monsters together. "But then I thought to myself, ‘There ought to be one binding, horrible, nasty, gross, crevice kind of thing that you don’t want to see, [and] it makes you scream just to see it,’" he explained. "So I thought of myself: ‘What scares children more than anything else in the world?’ And the answer was ‘a clown like me with a scary face like mine.´ Reconsidering, no that was daddy's nightly horror that drove him away. For me, the answer was, 'it is mommy's IT as daddy's stickig it to IT.'"
    ellauri133.html on line 468: I don’t want to repeat King’s utter creepiness and describe this in too much detail (shit, I would but there is not enough space), but there are some elements of the scene that deserve mentioning. Again, functioning in misogynist misunderstanding of female sexuality, for at least one of these encounters Bev “feels no physical pleasure, but there is a kind of mental ecstasy in it for her.” When she does feel “some pleasure, dim heat in her childish unmatured sex,” she thinks of birds and resolves that having sex “is what flying is like.” The penis size of the character of Ben is commented on (“is he too big, can she take that into herself?”) and she eventually has an orgasm with him. Steve looks on with his little droopy wiener in his hand. I bet Mustafa had a biggish "It", and Tabitha King (the other one with the curves going in instead of out) has an even bigger one. They are like the little goat, the middling goat, and the big big goat that can suck the big bad wolf all the way in, balls and all.
    ellauri135.html on line 229: After the surrender of Sebastopol and the transition of the chief of staff of the Crimean army in Odessa, Berg left the service, and until 1868 was not employed at all, leading the life of a tourist. The war of 1859 between Italy and Austria drew Berg in Lombardy, where he was at different headquarters of the French, Italian and at the end of Garibaldi, the detachment of Alpine rifles, wrote a number of correspondences in the "Russian Gazette" in 1859 the Movement in 1860, in the Lebanese mountains between Druze and Maronites drew Berg to the East. He lived in Beirut, Damascus, visited Jerusalem, said, Alexandria. Cairo, pyramids and Keepaway left an inscription, then the first in the Russian language. The fruit of these wanderings there were a few articles in Moscow and St. Petersburg editions and book "Guide to Jerusalem and its surroundings" (1863). During this trip, Berg studied the Bedouin life, which wandered in the wilderness. In 1861 he returned to Russia and has translated a significant part of "pan Tadeusz" (printed in "Domestic. Notes" 1862). Then again, Berg went to the East, lived again in Beirut, Damascus and Jerusalem, and printed about this trip in several articles in "Fatherlands. Notes", "Russian Gazette", "Our time" and SPb. Statements".
    ellauri135.html on line 395: Das Cabinet des Dr. Caligari ist ein deutscher Horrorfilm von Robert Wiene aus dem Jahr 1920 über einen Schlafwandler, der tagsüber vom zwielichtigen Dr. Caligari als Jahrmarktsattraktion herumgezeigt wird und nachts Morde begeht; in einer weiteren Handlungsebene wird diese Geschichte vom Insassen einer Irrenanstalt erzählt, der ihren Direktor bezichtigt, eben jener Dr. Caligari zu sein. Dieser expressionistische Stummfilm gilt als ein Meilenstein der Filmgeschichte.
    ellauri140.html on line 107: Chrysostome F+-, mother of Belphoebe and her twin Amoretta. She hides in the forest and, becoming tired, falls asleep on a bank, where she is impregnated by sunbeams (sure) and gives birth to twins. The goddesses Venus and Diana find the newborn twins and take them: Venus takes Amoretta and raises her in the Garden of Adonis, and Diana takes Belphoebe and does what she wants with her.
    ellauri140.html on line 209: In the year after being driven from "his home", 1599, Spenser travelled to London, where he died at the age of forty-six – "for want of bread", according to Ben Jonson; one of Jonson's more doubtful statements, since Spenser had a payment to him authorised by the government and was due his pension (What the fuck, ei kaxitonnisella vuodessa vielä kuuhun mennä.)
    ellauri140.html on line 410: But wander too and fro in wayes unknowne, Ne ei löydä enää polkua, jota tulivat,
    ellauri140.html on line 444: This is the wandring wood,° this Errours den, Jota vihaa sekä Jahve että me.
    ellauri140.html on line 661: But wanting rest will also want of might? Maha tarvii pihvin kahvin sekä munkin?
    ellauri140.html on line 848: Bathed in wanton blis and wicked joy: Se uiskenteli ihanassa synnin ammeessa,
    ellauri140.html on line 960: To all that in the wide deepe wandring arre: Vaan toimii majakkana yökulkijoille,
    ellauri140.html on line 984: His wanton dayes that ever loosely led, olis petipuuhissa ja naisten nauratuxessa,
    ellauri140.html on line 1008: In wanton lust and leud embracement: Kuka päällä kuka alla, vaikee sanoa,
    ellauri140.html on line 1054: And Una wandring in woods and forrests, Unan vaeltelevan mezälöissä ja mezissä,
    ellauri141.html on line 270: quod ut superbo povoces ab inguine, If that is what you want from my fastidious groin,
    ellauri141.html on line 518: I got the ordinary allowance of Latin, ending with Virgil and Horace – specially Horace. I don’t pretend that I liked it, any more than I should have liked anything else that purported to be education, but looking back at it now, it strikes me as valuable.
    ellauri142.html on line 104: When diplomats and politicians joined the organization in the mid-1600s, the stonemason lodge movement began its climb as a stealthy phenomenon. If you were politically active and wanted to connect with the power structures of the times, you would do just about anything to become a member of The Masons.
    ellauri142.html on line 106: In 1717, Masonry created a formal organization in London, when four lodges united to form the first Grand Lodge. This gave the organization credibility and added to its membership’s mystical allure. Men flocked, begged, coerced, and maneuvered to become members. Everybody wanted in.
    ellauri142.html on line 777: Hayakawan kirjassa Semantiikka oli tällänen sana kuin kahdapuolto. Se viittaa siihen ikivanhaan hyvä poliisi - paha poliisi retoriseen kikkaan, et lepertelyn jälkeen pannaan paha poliisi käyttelemään pamppua. Arvaan että näin on käymässä tänkin viisun seuraavassa luvussa, jonka nimi on lupaavasti Jumalallisten ja demonisten henkien toisistaan erottamisen jooga. Nyt varmaan kerrotaan miten huonosti käy tuhmille. Enkelit ja pirut.
    ellauri143.html on line 194: If household excellence be wanting in the wife,

    ellauri143.html on line 1254: The wanton's tender arm, with gleaming jewels decked,

    ellauri143.html on line 1515: Explanation : To those who after enjoyment of sexual pleasure suffer for want of more, there is no help so efficient as the palmyra horse.
    ellauri144.html on line 63: If no amount of water could quench your thirst, you would tell your story to the doctor: seeing that the more you get, the more you want, do you not dare to make confession to any man? If your wound were not relieved by the root ...
    ellauri144.html on line 153: Women wanzhong yixin,
    ellauri144.html on line 394: Dylan Thomas was born on 27 October 1914 in Swansea, the son of Florence Hannah (née Williams; 1882–1958), a seamstress, and David John Thomas (1876–1952), a teacher. His father had a first-class honours degree in English from University College, Aberystwyth and ambitions to rise above his position teaching English literature at the local grammar school, which he never did. Thomas had one sibling, Nancy Marles (1906–1953), who was eight years his senior. The children spoke only English, though their parents were bilingual in English and Welsh, and David Thomas gave Welsh lessons at home. Thomas´s father chose the name Dylan, which could be translated as "son of the sea", after Dylan ail Don, a character in The Mabinogion. (Mulla on se, mutten ole lukenut.) His middle name, Marlais, was given in honour of his great-uncle, William Thomas, a Unitarian minister and poet whose bardic name was Gwilym Marles. Se oli se silverbäk jota ne kaikki koittivat apinoida. Dylan, pronounced ˈ [ˈdəlan] (Dull-an) in Welsh, caused his mother to worry that he might be teased as the "dull one" (which he was). When he broadcast on Welsh BBC, early in his career, he was introduced using this pronunciation. Thomas favoured the Anglicised pronunciation and gave instructions that it should be Dillan /ˈdɪlən/. He was fed up with the "dull one" joke. in 1914. In 1931, when he was 16, Thomas, an undistinguished pupil, left school to become a reporter for the South Wales Daily Post, only to leave under pressure 18 months later.
    ellauri144.html on line 591: did i mention boring its really good if yu want a lullaby
    ellauri145.html on line 201: Tämmöinen fiilis on ollut varmaan yhdellä jos toisella wannabee kirjailijanerolla, esim. juopolla Poella ja yhtä deekulla Baudelairella, lykantroopista puhumattakaan. Onnellisuuden peltiä ei niillä ollut raotettavaxi sen vertaa kuin Jönsyllä. Ranskixet dekadentit oli Poelle vähän kateellisia, kuin hullu Inka Andeilla nelikulmaisia munia ezivälle Roope Ankalle. Paul Valery sanoi eze on etrange eikä vaan bizarre. Mallarme sanoi eze on piru jalaxilla, traagillinen koketti. Apollinaire herkesi runollisexi:
    ellauri145.html on line 436: Charles Cros Émile-Hortensius-Charles Cros (October 1, 1842 – August 9, 1888) was a French poet and inventor. He was born in Fabrezan, Aude, France, 35 km to the East of Carcassonne. Cros was a well-regarded poet and humorous writer. He developed various improved methods of photography including an early color photo process. He also invented improvements in telegraph technology. In the early 1870s Cros had published with Mallarmé, Villiers and Verlaine in the short-lived weekly Renaissance littéraire et artistique, edited by Emile Blémont. His poem The Kippered Herring inspired Ernest Coquelin to create what he called monologues, short theatrical pieces whose format was copied by numerous imitators. The piece, translated as The Salt Herring, was translated and illustrated by Edward Gorey. He spent years petitioning the French government to build a giant mirror that could be used to communicate with the Martians and Venusians by burning giant lines on the deserts of those planets. He was never convinced that the Martians were not a proven fact, nor that the mirror he wanted was technically impossible to build. Tästä hepusta tulee mieleen Spede Pasanen ja sen hiihtolinko.
    ellauri145.html on line 697: 1890, while composing Là-bas, Huysmans was thoroughly fed up with both Zola and Naturalism. He wanted his novel to be “le dernier décarcassement de cette butte croulante qu’on nomme le naturalisme!” (24 July 1890, letter 99:200). Luhistuva kuoppa. Tarkoitti takuulla peräreikää. Hullua, sehän niitä nimenomaan kiinnosti.
    ellauri145.html on line 707: Durtal admires the documentation of Naturalism, yet wants to open it to the supernatural, to an exploration of both body and spirit: it will be a kind of “naturalisme spiritualiste” that will follow Zola’s route, but in the air.6 This tension between realism and the supernatural lies at the heart of Là-bas, a novel in which Huysmans follows Durtal’s spiritual transformation as he researches medieval and modern Satanism. Là-bas was a scandalous best-seller. It inspired a great deal of public debate, especially since it was published in the same review and at the same time as Jules Huret’s first Enquête sur l’évolution littéraire, a series of sixty-four interviews conducted with major French authors from March 3 to July 5, 1891.7 This series, which asked its interviewees whether Naturalism was dead, was a phenomenal success read by all of Paris.8 Huret caused every non-Naturalist writer to agree that Zola’s brand of Naturalism was obsolete because it neglected humanity’s soul.
    ellauri146.html on line 50: Auch die Versuche, in Detmold eine Stellung als Jurist zu finden, waren zunächst erfolglos, erst 1826 übernahm er die unbezahlte Vertretung eines erkrankten Auditeurs, dessen besoldeter Nachfolger er 1828 wurde. 1829 erfolgte in Detmold mit Don seinen Freunden Heinrich Heine, Ludwig Tieck, Don Juan und Faust die einzige Aufführung eines seiner Dramen zu Lebzeiten. Ab 1831 verschlechterte sich der Gesundheitszustand Grabbes zusehends, die Folgen seines Alkoholismus wurden sichtbar (eine für Grabbes Alkoholkonsum charakteristische Episode aus dem Herbst 1828 wird von Georg Fein geschildert). Eine Verlobung mit Henriette Meyer wurde von dieser gelöst, als sich Grabbe wieder Louise Christiane Clostermeier zuwandte, die ihn bereits einmal abgewiesen hatte. Grabbe oli aika lailla persujen ex-puheenjohtajan näköinen.
    ellauri146.html on line 220: ...Da lernte Grabbe Ludwig Robert kennen, den Bruder der schönen, von Heine gefeierten Schwester, einen der geistvollsten Epigonen der Romantik; aber auch Heinrich Heine selbst, der seine Tragödien Almansor und Ratcliff gerade damals erscheinen ließ und von dem einer der ironischen Freunde berichtet, mit welchem Selbstgefallen seine ungefällige Gestalt damals unter den Linden vor Dümmlers Buchladen »vorbei peripatetisierte,« mit Armensünderwänglein, über welche plötzliche Glut sich ergoß, sobald er sein Werk zum Fenster herausgucken sah. Heines Eigentümlichkeit als Mensch und Dichter hatte für Grabbe viel Sympathisches; er berührte eine verwandte Ader in ihm und blieb gewiß auf die Ausbildung eines, dem idealen Schwung nachspottenden Cynismus, der überall bei Grabbe hervortritt, nicht ohne Einfluß. Damals konnte Heine nicht ahnen, als er den Meister eines phantastischen Humors, den Serapionsbruder Amadeus Hoffmann, zu Grabe tragen sah, daß dasselbe schmerzliche Leiden, welches diese gnomenartige Persönlichkeit hinweggerafft hatte, auch ihn einst an ein langjähriges Krankenlager fesseln werde.
    ellauri146.html on line 333: Zwanzigster Gesang: Lobgesänge der mit Jesus in den Himmel ziehenden Schafen.
    ellauri146.html on line 629: Tämmöinen fiilis on ollut varmaan yhdellä jos toisella wannabee kirjailijanerolla, esim. juopolla Poella ja yhtä deekulla lykantroopilla. Onnellisuuden peltiä ei niillä ollut raottaa sen vertaa kuin Jöns Carlsonilla. Ranskixet dekadentit oli Poelle vähän kateellisia, kuin hullu Inka Andeilla nelikulmaisia munia ezivälle Roope Ankalle. Paul Valery sanoi eze on etrange eikä vaan bizarre. Mallarme sanoi eze on piru jalaxilla, traagillinen koketti. Apollinaire herkesi runollisexi:
    ellauri146.html on line 743: Come in the morning where I wandered and listened 1-2 tuli aamulla kun mä kuljin kuunnellen
    ellauri146.html on line 856: Politically Incorrect was founded in 2004, soon after the re-election of George W. Bush, by a German teacher named Stefan Herre "to do something against Anti-Americanism". Das Blog betont in seiner Selbstdarstellung eine „pro-israelische“ und „pro-amerikanische“ Ausrichtung. Im wiedervereinigten Deutschland zeigten sich in der Haltung gegenüber Flüchtlingen zum Teil zeitgeschichtlich bedingte Besonderheiten, die darauf zurückzuführen seien, dass die Westdeutschen sich über Jahrzehnte hätten daran gewöhnen können, zum Einwanderungsland zu werden, während die Ostdeutschen bis 1990 kaum in Kontakt mit Zuwanderern gekommen seien.
    ellauri147.html on line 118: vaan sinulta, lapseni, tahdon, että kaarisillan teet. But as for you, my child, I want you to build a bridge.
    ellauri147.html on line 207: Emily's boyfriend tells her that she should return to Chicago, since he struggles with a long distance relationship, and he does not want to visit Paris, despite a pre-planned trip. She declines returning to Chicago and breaks off the relationship without so much as beg your leave. She turns to Mindy for emotional support. Mindy's slanty eyes have most likely been operated on.
    ellauri147.html on line 219: Emily discovers Pierre has designed the costumes for Swan Lake so she invites Thomas to join her. However, he insults her by telling her Swan Lake is a ballet for tourists. Emily realizes that he is a snob so she leaves him. Emily is really not one for snobs.
    ellauri147.html on line 375: Collins believes in the institution of marriage and desperately wants to have one that lasts. He went back to bloaty Oriane on Miami only to find she was married to another guy. And she never paid back the 30M she owed him.
    ellauri147.html on line 657:
    ellauri147.html on line 697:
    ellauri147.html on line 749: 5. Beeinträchtigung der zwischenmenschlichen Beziehungen durch eine besondere Anspruchshaltung, einen Empathiemangel, die Ausbeutung des Partners, ein Schwanken zwischen Idealisierung und Entwertung
    ellauri150.html on line 476: The film's final onscreen writing credits created controversy when, in October 1959, the Writers Guild of America (WGA) awarded Tunberg sole screenplay credit, despite the objections of the film's director, William Wyler, who, in the film's commemorative booklet and elsewhere, claimed that Christopher Fry was more responsible than any other writer for the final screenplay. In response to Wyler's public outcries against their ruling, the WGA took out trade paper ads on November 20, 1959 in which they issued a statement reading, in part, "the unanimous decision of the three judges was that the sole screenplay credit was awarded to Karl Tunberg...The record shows the following: 1. Karl Tunberg is the only writer who has ever written a complete screenplay on Ben-Hur; 2. Karl Tunberg continued to contribute materials throughout the actual filming, and this material is incorporated in the final picture; and 3. Karl Tunberg alone did the necessary rewriting during the four months of retakes and added scenes. Mr. Christopher Fry himself was fully informed of the proceedings of the Guild. He has made it absolutely clear that he did not want to protest the decision of the Guild."
    ellauri150.html on line 502: Learn of the philosophers always to look for natural causes in all extraordinary events; and when such natural causes are wanting, recur to God". - Count de Gabalis (n.h.) "I did not take the wrong exit." "This cannot be an Eclipse." Panin kääntämisen opiskelijat tekemään Eclipsellä XML- konversioita. Ei ois kannattanut.
    ellauri150.html on line 541: In 30 AD, Judah returned from being a galley slave, and Esther told him that she was no longer betrothed, causing the two to fall in love again. When Judah's mother Miriam and sister Tirzah were sent to the Valley of Lepers by their jailers, Esther brought them food, and, when Judah asked about his family's fate, Esther was told by Miriam to inform him that they were dead, as Miriam did not want her son to see them in agony. When a dying Messala told Judah of his family's real fates, Judah headed to the Valley and angrily confronted Esther, who forced him to hide from his family rather than violate their wishes. On the way out of the Valley, Esther stopped to listen to Jesus' Sermon on the Mount, and she became a convinced Christian; she had an argument with Judah about his lust for vengeance and his lack of interest in Jesus' message of peace and love. However, when the two found that Tirzah was dying, they brought Miriam and Tirzah to Jerusalem to search for Jesus and hope for a cure. They were too late to reach him before he was crucified, but a sudden rainstorm miraculously healed the lepers' wounds and cured them. Ben-Hur, who was now convinced of Jesus' message, embraced Esther and his family, having decided to give up his quest for revenge.
    ellauri150.html on line 571: "Nay," said Iras, "I do not want pity or tears. Tell him, finally, I have found that to be a Roman is to be a brute. Farewell."

    ellauri150.html on line 606: When we return, it's Anno Domini XXVI - A.D. 26. Messala, a Roman who grew up in Judea but spent most of his life in more traditional Roman enclaves, is accepting an important position in Jerusalem under the new governor of Judea; it's a hard job, since the Jews don't want the Romans there, but he feels up to it. He is visited by his childhood friend, and our hero, Judah Ben-Hur, a very important and influential Jew. They try to pick up the friendship where it left off, but there's one big problem: they no longer have anything in common besides their shared past. They are in denial about this for a while, and Judah agrees to try to get people to accept the Romans.
    ellauri150.html on line 610: We meet Ben-Hur's mother and sister. We also meet his right-hand slave, Simonides, who is his business administrator and is in town for his yearly report—he's based in Antioch. He's very good at managing Judah's assets, and very loyal. Simonides' daughter Esther is with him; she is about to enter an arranged marriage, but needs Ben-Hur's approval. Ben-Hur gives it, and even throws in her freedom as a wedding present, but - having seen her as a grown woman for the first time - he sorta wants her for himself.
    ellauri150.html on line 612: Messala comes over for dinner. Judah and Messala go out back to meet privately. Judah gives Messala a white horse. Messala asks Judah for his progress in pacifying the Jews; on learning that it isn't 100% successful, he wants to know who's refusing. Messala makes clear that he wants names. Judah, while protesting that he's nonviolent himself, doesn't think that the Jews resisting Roman rule are doing anything wrong, and so he doesn't provide them. Messala begs for cooperation, but in doing so makes clear that he considers the Roman Emperor a god; not only doesn't Judah believe that, but he's personally against the occupation. They leave as enemies, and Judah Ben-Hur is left to explain why Messala isn't staying for dinner.
    ellauri150.html on line 618: On learning that he is to go to Tyrus with neither a trial nor info about what's going to happen to his mother and sister, we learn that Ben-Hur's pacifism didn't survive the imprisonment. Since he hurts or kills only people who aren't of Nominal Importance, this is supposed to be tolerated. Judah demands info of Messala, and naturally doesn't get it. He protests his innocence of wanting to kill the governor; Messala knows that this is, at least, a plausible theory, but doesn't let it show. He says that Ben-Hur gave him exactly what he needed; the Jews will know that, if he can send his childhood friend to certain death at the galleys, he can do it to anyone. Judah starts to beg Messala, and gets this reply: "You beg me? Didn't I beg you for help?"
    ellauri150.html on line 625: More than three years later, we see Ben-Hur working one of many oars. He is going by "41" (or is that XLI?), his seat number, and he is full of hate. A Roman consul, Quintus Arrius, has boarded the ship, and it goes to war almost immediately. The consul wants Ben-Hur for a charioteer, and doesn't understand why Ben-Hur has any other hopes of life after the galleys; if they succeed in battle, he'll keep rowing, and if they don't, he'll die chained to the oar. Ben-Hur makes clear that he believes God will help him, also that he dislikes the idea of dying chained to the oar; this has a delayed effect; at the time, "back to your oar," but the consul orders him unchained after all the galley slaves had been chained.
    ellauri150.html on line 629: Ben-Hur saves the consul and gets him on a raft of debris. Then he has to knock out the consul to prevent the fella from committing suicide, and chains the mercenary to him. After the consul wakes, still wanting to die, he reminds him that staying alive is the motivation he gives his slaves... Quintus wanted to commit suicide because he thought he'd lost overall. He hadn't, as it turns out he's hailed as a hero, and so there is a triumphant return to Rome. Ben-Hur gets to see the Emperor and then lives with Quintus learning to drive a chariot in races with Arrius' prized horses. Quintus actually tried to get him cleared of wanting to kill that Judean governor, but didn't pull it off...
    ellauri150.html on line 635: The house of Hur is in ruins, but people are living there. He is met by Esther; she and her father were in there for only a year. Her father was paralyzed in prison, so a big fella who shared a cell with him and went mute during that time has also moved in to help. They are still in Jerusalem because all the assets were seized by the Romans - well, not all the assets, but they don't want the Romans to know about the rest of them prematurely. Esther never married, partly because the reason for arranging that marriage no longer applied, and partly because - she looks at her all-black clothing here, so we're probably supposed to believe that her fiance died.
    ellauri150.html on line 637: Judah arranges an appointment with Messala under his Roman name Young Arrius, and sends a dagger for an advance gift. He wants to know what happened to his mother and sister. Messala honestly doesn't know. Judah tells him he'll kill Messala if a) he doesn't find out or b) anything's happened to the b...
    ellauri150.html on line 641: Ben-Hur's mother and sister drop by the old place and come as close to meeting up with Esther as they dare. Esther tells them Judah hasn't changed, which is at best a half-truth. They make Esther promise not to tell Judah they have leprosy; they want him to remember them as they were. Esther promises by her love of Judah (and yes, it is there). She sees him (he passed by without noticing the lepers) and "confesses" that his mother and sister are dead...
    ellauri150.html on line 687: Aanyway, today I want to focus on the encyclical "Libertas" written in 1888. "Libertas" means "liberty" or it could also be translated as "freedom". Either way we are well acquainted with this idea. From the Statue of Liberty to the freedoms enshrined in the Bill of Rights - Americans love their freedom!
    ellauri150.html on line 699: So the Pope is telling us that it's really that simple. There is an intimate relationship between freedom and sin. If you want to be free, don't sin. When the Church teaches us not to sin, it is also teaching us how to be free. That's *real* freedom. Don't worry, you still have lots of other choices open to you that don't involve sin. You haven't given anything up, in fact you have opened up new possibilities now that you have freed yourself from sin. (Pst! before you get carried away with this, read the fine print below on gay and premarital sex.)
    ellauri150.html on line 705: And now comes a bit of papal humor, "Were this the case, it would follow that to become free we must be deprived of reason." Pretty funny, huh? Ok, I see you're not laughing, but instead are scratching your head. Alright, let me paint a picture for you. Imagine a 60s hippy high on LSD, dancing wildly, and shouting out, "I'm free! I'm free!" Yes, this is one of the messages that is often repeated like a mantra in today's society, "If you want to free yourself, you have to stop thinking and just let yourself go." In 1888, Pope Leo XIII rejected this notion and even ridiculed it.
    ellauri150.html on line 726: Hi Ride. The Catholic teaching on premarital sex is that it is a sin. I know this is not what most people want to hear these days. They just want to hear that gay sex is a sin. But from a Catholic perspective any sex outside of marriage is a sin. And there's no gay marriage, so gotcha!
    ellauri150.html on line 734: I was just reading about Stephen Hawking this morning and thinking that I should write an article about that. I was thinking of calling it "Also sprach Stephen Hawking". I've never been a fan of his. I always thought his "a brief history of time" to be an exercise in extreme egotism and pure conjecture. I actually never bothered reading it because I didn't want my mind polluted with those thoughts.
    ellauri151.html on line 287: Im Skeptizismus erfährt das Bewußtsein in Wahrheit sich als ein in sich selbst widersprechendes Bewußtsein; es geht aus dieser Erfahrung eine neue Gestalt hervor, welche die zwei Gedanken zusammenbringt, die der Skeptizismus auseinander hält. Die Gedankenlosigkeit des Skeptizismus über sich selbst muß verschwinden, weil es in der Tat ein Bewußtsein ist, welches diese beiden Weisen an ihm hat. Diese neue Gestalt ist hiedurch ein solches, welches für sich das gedoppelte Bewußtsein seiner als des sich befreienden, unwandelbaren und sichselbstgleichen, und seiner als des absolut sich verwirrenden und verkehrenden – und das Bewußtsein dieses seines Widerspruchs ist. – Im Stoizismus ist das Selbstbewußtsein die einfache Freiheit seiner selbst; im Skeptizismus realisiert sie sich, vernichtet die andere Seite des bestimmten Daseins, aber verdoppelt sich vielmehr, und ist sich nun ein Zweifaches. Hiedurch ist die Verdopplung, welche früher an zwei einzelne, an den Herrn und den Knecht, sich verteilte, in eines eingekehrt; die Verdopplung des Selbstbewußtseins in sich selbst, welche im Begriffe des Geistes wesentlich ist, ist hiemit vorhanden, aber noch nicht ihre Einheit, und das unglückliche Bewußtsein ist das Bewußtsein seiner als des gedoppelten nur widersprechenden Wesens.
    ellauri151.html on line 298: Obgleich aber das unglückliche Bewußtsein also diese Gegenwart nicht besitzt, so ist es zugleich über das reine Denken, insofern dieses das abstrakte von der Einzelnheit überhaupt wegsehende Denken des Stoizismus, und das nur unruhige Denken des Skeptizismus – in der Tat nur die Einzelnheit als der bewußtlose Widerspruch und dessen rastlose Bewegung – ist; es ist über diese beide hinaus, es bringt und hält das reine Denken und die Einzelnheit zusammen, ist aber noch nicht zu demjenigen Denken erhoben, für welches die Einzelnheit des Bewußtseins mit dem reinen Denken selbst ausgesöhnt ist. Es steht vielmehr in dieser Mitte, worin das abstrakte Denken die Einzelnheit des Bewußtseins als Einzelnheit berührt. Es selbst ist diese Berührung; es ist die Einheit des reinen Denkens und der Einzelnheit; es ist auch für es diese denkende Einzelnheit, oder das reine Denken, und das Unwandelbare wesentlich selbst als Einzelnheit. Aber es ist nicht für es, daß dieser sein Gegenstand, das Unwandelbare, welches ihm wesentlich die Gestalt der Einzelnheit hat, es selbst ist, es selbst, das Einzelnheit des Bewußtseins ist.
    ellauri151.html on line 300: Andacht: Das gestaltlose Sausen des Glockengeläutes oder eine warme Nebelerfüllung, ein musikalisches Denken, indem es diese Erfahrung gemacht, daß das Grab seines wirklichen unwandelbaren Wesens keine Wirklichkeit hat.
    ellauri151.html on line 425: Nature is a book, a letter, a fairy tale (in the philosophical sense) or whatever you want to call it.
    ellauri151.html on line 906: [25] Lest you be wise in your own conceits, I want you to understand this mystery, brethren: a hardening has come upon part of Israel, until the full number of the Gentiles come in,

    ellauri151.html on line 1034:
    Helmi, Emilia, Marwanin Kiki ja Löken. Eskari-ikäiset tytöt ovat apinoista parhaita.

    ellauri151.html on line 1117: - Mitä he tekevät? [Kiki kysyy Marwanilta]- Puhuvat jumalan kanssa.

    ellauri152.html on line 105: Enstex en edes vastannut, ja mua hävetti, mun sydän teki ihan pahaa. Sitten vastustelin, sanoin, Ei.Ei. Käänsin päätä taaxepäin eikä pusu osunut, eikä lemmenkalu päässyt polvieni väliin. Size pyysi anteexi, pussas tukkaa, ja hengitteli kuumasti ja lähti. Ny olen yxin, kazon siihen yhteen paikkaan, puren huuliani ja huudan nurmikkoon äänettömästi kuin Farmarien Marwan.
    ellauri152.html on line 601: Meanwhile, the movie has Yentl entirely evade the situation by telling Badass that despite what everyone says, they don’t have to sleep together, then convincing Badass that she (Badass) doesn’t want to have sex, and—when Badass expresses interest in having sex anyway—exhausts her with Torah study so she’s too tired to think about it.
    ellauri152.html on line 603: And, oh f-ck, there is so much to talk about in this section. The importance of consent here, when Yentl lets Badass know she doesn’t need to do anything she doesn’t want to, both according to her husband and according to Jewish law—that’s good, that’s meaningful. Then we even get recognition that feminism doesn’t just mean validating women who don’t want sex, but also validating women who do want sex! Badass starts to have feelings for Anshel and proposes sleeping together herself, on her own terms. The movie is not always kind to Badass—in many ways she is a stereotype for Yentl to play off of—but this is a place where Yentl‘s feminism succeeds: Badass wants to have sex, and that’s fine.
    ellauri152.html on line 605: Or it would be fine if the movie didn’t play it for laughs. The movie puts Yentl in multiple awkward situations where she has to perform verbal and physical gymnastics to keep people from seeing her without clothes, that gross classic trope whereby trans characters are outed all the time in fiction. As always, the movie drags this scene out into a whole joke, that Yentl has to scramble to prevent Badass from finding out she’s a woman because Badass wants to have sex with her, a woman, isn’t that just soooooo funny? On multiple levels, I am unamused and unhappy.
    ellauri152.html on line 693: Reb Nathan Zuckerman adds that prior to messianic era the power of evil is so intense that we lack the power to overcome it. Therefore, explains Reb Nathan, it is imperative to enlist the aid of the spiritual giants of past generations through Rabbeinu Tam's Tefillin. Rabbeinu Tam's Tefillin expand the intelligence, enabling us to break evil at its source and stand up against the forces of evil. "In the turbulent era prior to the coming of the messiah, for anyone who is serious about wanting to find the dog, wearing Rabbeinu Tam's Tefillin is very important." (Lekutey Halachoth: Orach Chaim: Hilchoth Tefillin 5:27-29)
    ellauri152.html on line 743: Unlike many other Maskilim, he greatly respected the Hasidic Jews for their mode of being in the world; at the same time, he understood that there was a need to make allowances for human frailty. His short stories such as "If Not Higher", "The Treasure", and "Beside the Dying" emphasize the importance of sincere piety rather than empty religiosity.
    ellauri153.html on line 278: Tämän verran tiesi suomalainen uikipedia. Anglosaxien wikipedia on paljon seikkaperäisempi. (Vad tull, mulkkuja nuo roomalaiset, sanoisi tähän kalottipäinen pukinpartainen Khabib arabiaxi murretulla norjalla; se ei liioin liiemmin perusta Marwanin maanmiehestä Saadista. Mutta se kyllä tykkää pikku Kikistä vaikkei sano sitä. Sitä luullaan homoxi kun sen parta on täynnä Kikin laittamia pinnejä.)
    ellauri153.html on line 348:
  • If the situation is (question Job, disaster, question God), then God moves. He can either play (Answer to Job) or (⌐answer to Job), i.e. answer Job and defeat Job’s challenge, or leave Job suffering, Job’s challenge unanswered and the creation to collapse. If God plays (⌐answer to Job), God and Job lose, as the evils (disaster) and (challenge) leave Job suffering and the creation into meaninglessness and collapse. Wait a minute, where does Dog answer Job's why-question? In my bible, Dog just shouts Job down, brags, throws wanton threats and explains nothing. In what way does that count as an answer to a why-question? It is a completely different speech act in my book.
    ellauri155.html on line 360: But God is a lot bigger than the Rothschilds and their cabal of miscreants. Dog is nearly as big as Ano Turtiainen! Dog won't get carried out of court! Not even by Himself! God wants to have a Triumph bra as Xmas present.
    ellauri155.html on line 444: Elimelech (hebräisch אֱלִימֶלֶךְ, „mein Gott ist König“) ist nach dem Buch Rut der Mann der Noomi und Vater zweier Söhne, Machlon und Kiljon. Er wandert wegen einer Hungersnot von Bethlehem in das Land Moab aus. Dort sterben er und seine beiden Söhne. Seine Frau Noomi kehrt nach Ende der Hungersnot mit ihrer einen Schwiegertochter Ruth wieder nach Betlehem zurück, während die andere, Orpa (Oprah Winfield), in Moab bleibt. (Rut 1,1-3 EU), (Rut 4,3 EU)
    ellauri155.html on line 523: Little in the narrative tells us what we are to think of David’s actions. Perhaps the very fact that he sought security among the Philistines is enough to make his choice questionable. After all, God had shown Himself able to keep David safe within the boundaries of Israel (chs. 18–26), so David’s seeking refuge in Philistia may indicate a lapse of faith. It could be that David’s raids from Ziklag confirm this. We see how David would go out against enemies of Israel such as the Amalekites (see Ex. 17:8–16) who were in the south of Judah. After defeating them, he would bring spoil back to Achish and lie to the king, telling him that he was conducting raids on the Israelites (1 Sam. 27:8–12). We do not want to make too much of this, for some actions are acceptable in times of war that are not necessarily acceptable in times of peace (for example, industrial espionage). This was a time of war, with both Achish and the peoples David raided being actual enemies of Israel. Still, David’s successful deception put him in a quandary. Achish was so pleased with David’s work that he commissioned David to join him against Israel (28:1–2). What would he do?
    ellauri155.html on line 685: You must also note that God predestines people such as Paul and his friends in Rom. 8:30, and Eph. 1:5, 11. There is, however, controversy as to the nature of this predestination. In the Reformed (Calvinist) camp, predestination includes individuals. In other words, the Reformed doctrine of predestination is that God predestines whom He wants to be saved and that without this predestination, none would be saved. The non-Reformed camp states that God predestines people to salvation, but that these people freely choose to follow God on their own. In other words, in the non-Reformed perspective, God is reacting to the will of individuals and predestining them only because they choose God, whereby contrast the Reformed position states that people choose God only because He has first predestined them. I must say that the non-reformed position 2) sounds like gobbledygook. Either you get predestined or you don´t, what the fuck. Who was it that thought predestination and free will were compatible, was it Hume? Yes it was! The Stanford Encyclopedia of Philosophy paper on this topic is so wordy that it needed translating into Basic English.
    ellauri155.html on line 769: Calvin taught that God’s will is to be our resting place. He cautions those trying to go beyond the limit of their understanding. When men hear of election, they immediately want to ask, “Why would God choose some, and not others?” To this Calvin replied:
    ellauri156.html on line 74: Before we begin to look carefully at verses 1-4 of chapter 11, allow me to make a couple of comments about this event as portrayed in these two chapters of 2 Samuel. First, I want you to notice the “law of proportion” in this text. Only three verses describe David's sin of adultery with Bathsheba. Second, the author pulls no punches in describing the wickedness of this sin. History is not written in a way that makes David look good. Third, the sin of David and Bathsheba is dealt with historically, but not in a Hollywood fashion. Hollywood filmmakers would perform a remake of this account to dwell on the sensual elements. Nothing in this text is intended to inspire unclean thoughts or actions. Indeed, this story is written in a way that causes us to shudder at the thought of such things. I know it is something of a letdown, but at least myself, I was totally capable of imagining the rest. (I got 5 streetwalking girls and a wife, for God's sake.) If you need help with unclean thoughts here, please consult Gonorrhé Ballsack's Comtes Droolatiques.
    ellauri156.html on line 83: David didn't want to see bare-butted men with just half a beard.
    ellauri156.html on line 106: But why the fuck was it a sin in the first place? Censuses are taxation events. David was after money, not blood, since when is that a sin in Jehovah's book? Or maybe he did not want to draw the sword, but rather sheathe it with Bathsheba? Now that is a sin, if the vagina is not one of yours. Hey, read on, Bob explains it all:
    ellauri156.html on line 211: A third reason -- and I am hesitant to suggest it -- is that David may be getting soft. Let's face it, David had some very difficult days when he was fleeing from Saul. I am sure there were hot days and cold nights. There were certainly days when his food was either limited or lousy, or both. Army food has never been known as a work of culinary artistry. Now, David has moved up in the world, from barren wilderness, which Saul and his army would avoid if possible, to the hills of Jerusalem. His accommodations are better, too. He no longer lives in a tent (if he was fortunate enough to have one in those days); he lives in a palace. Why would David want to stay in a tent in the open field, outside of Rabbah, if he can stay in his own bed (or Bathsheba's), in his own palace, inside Jerusalem?37
    ellauri156.html on line 297: And so David sends messengers to her, who take her and bring her to him. When she arrives, David sleeps with her, and when she is purified from her uncleanness,38 she returns to her house. That is that. (Mikä uncleanliness? Meneekö Bathsheba Joen Bideniin ja pesee Taavin runkut pois?) If she had not become pregnant, I have little doubt she would never have darkened the door of David's house again. David does not seek a wife in Bathsheba. He does not even seek an affair. He wants one night of sex with this woman, and then he will let Uriah have her. (Häh? Oliko Bathsheba niin huono hoito vai? Eikös sitä olis voinut toistamiseenkin rotkauttaa? Bathshebalta ei nähtävästi mitään kysytty missään vaiheessa. Eikun x-asentoon Taavin sängylle ja melaa mekkoon.)
    ellauri156.html on line 311: Now, having looked at the big picture, let's concentrate on the juicy details. The text informs us that David sees this woman bathing and notes that she is very beautiful. It is sometimes thought that David saw Bathsheba unclothed as she bathed herself publicly, and that the sight of her (unclothed/partially) body prompted David to act as he did. Virtually the identical words employed in our text (“very beautiful in appearance”) are found in Genesis 24:16 of Rebekah, as she came to the well with a water jug on her shoulder. She was neither naked nor partially clothed. Similar (though not identical) descriptions are found, where no exposure of the woman is indicated at all (see Genesis 12:11; 26:7; 29:17; Esther 1:1). I believe one of the reasons David summons Bathsheba to his palace is that he has not seen all that he wishes. (Haahaa! Bob, you are a little too bashful here. Most likely he wants to try on what he saw, like St. Thomas who wanted to put his finger in the wound. Seeing is not believing.)
    ellauri156.html on line 325: First, the root of David's sin is not low self-esteem; it is arrogance. (Since when is low self-esteem a sin? Well I bet it is for American believers. Think of Bill James' Will to Believe.) I am getting quite weary of hearing that the root of all evils is low self-esteem. I wonder why we see nothing of this in the Bible. David's problem is just the opposite. He has become puffed up and arrogant because of his success and status as Israel's king. He has come to see himself as different/better than the rest of the Israelites. They need to go to war; he does not. They need to sleep in the open field; he needs to get his rest in his own bed, in his palace. They can have a wife; he can have whatever woman he wants.
    ellauri156.html on line 327: Second, the nature of David's sin is the abuse of power. Power corrupts, we are told, and absolute power corrupts absolutely. David has come to power. In the previous chapters, David employed his God-given power to defeat the enemies of God and of Israel. He used his power as Israel's king to fill his pockets and void his cullions, and takes advantage of Dog's promise to Saul by restoring to Mephibosheth his family property and by making him a son at his table. Now, David, drunk with his power, uses it to indulge himself at the expense of others. I want you to notice the repetition of the word “send” or “sent” in this chapter. It is a king like David who can send all the men to war but stay home himself (verse 1). It is a king like David who can send people to inquire about Bathsheba, and then to send messengers to “take” her and bring her to his palace (verses 3-4). It is a king like David who can “send” for Uriah and “send” orders to Joab to have him killed. It is a king who "sends" his shlong into Bathsheba's holiest of the holy. David has the power, and he certainly knows how to use it, only now he is using that power for his own benefit, at the expense of others. This is not servant leadership.
    ellauri156.html on line 335: Conversely, David never did worse than he did in prosperity and power. How many psalms do you think David wrote from his palatial bed and from his penthouse? How much meditation on the law took place while David was in Jerusalem, rather than on the battlefield? On the other hand, how many maidens did he open the psalmbook with on the field? We are not to be masochists, wanting more and more suffering, but on the other hand we should recognize that success is often a greater test than adversity. Often when it appears “everything's goin' my way” we are in the greatest danger of producing some shit like Frank Sinatra's "My Way".
    ellauri156.html on line 398: (2) It seems unlikely that Uriah is ignorant of what David has done and of what he is trying to accomplish by calling him home to Jerusalem. Rumors must have been circulating around Jerusalem about David and Bathsheba, and could easily have reached the Israelite army which had besieged Rabbah. Uriah not only refuses to go to his house and sleep with his wife, he sleeps at the doorway of the king's house, in the midst of his servants. He has many witnesses to testify that any child borne by his wife during this time is not his child. It is clear that Uriah understands exactly what David wants him to do (to have sex with his wife), and that he refuses, even when the king virtually orders him to do so. One finds this difficult to explain if Uriah is ignorant of what happened between David and Bathsheba. At least Uriah knows what David is trying to get him to do on this stay in Jerusalem. The implications of all this we will explore later.
    ellauri156.html on line 400: (3) Bathsheba is not said to have any part in David's scheme to deceive Uriah or to bring about his death, much less any knowledge of what David is doing. When she informs David that she is pregnant, David takes decisive action, but nowhere are we told that Bathsheba has a part in his schemes. Verse 26 makes it sound as though she learns of Uriah's death after the fact, through normal channels. After all, would David really want his new wife to know he murdered her husband? David acts without Bathsheba's help.
    ellauri156.html on line 402: It looks as though Bathsheba never enters David's mind after their encounter described in verses 1-4. It certainly does not seem that David wants to continue the relationship, to carry on an affair, or to marry her. David simply puts this sinful event out of his mind, until a messenger is sent by Bathsheba informing the king that his night of passion has produced a child. Bathsheba informs David that she is pregnant, not that she is afraid she might be. This means that she has missed at least one period and probably another. All in all, several weeks or more have passed. It will not be long before her pregnancy will become obvious to anyone who looks at her. This is David's sin and his responsibility, and so she informs him.
    ellauri156.html on line 410: David sends word to Joab, ordering him to send Uriah home to Jerusalem. I take it from the context that Uriah is sent to Jerusalem on the pretext that he is needed to report directly to David on the state of the war. I doubt David wants Uriah to know he has ordered Joab to send him. I am certain David does not want Uriah to know the real purpose of his journey to Jerusalem. David is orchestrating this homecoming to appear as though it serves one purpose, while it actually serves David's purpose of concealing his own sin. Even at this level, the order for Uriah to return home has a bad odor. You may remember that when David's father wanted to know how the battle with the Philistines was going (three of his sons were involved), he sent David, the youngest son, as an errand boy to take some supplies and return with word about the war (1 Samuel 17:17-19). One does not need to send a military hero as a messenger (nor is it good practice, the youngest son is more expendable.).
    ellauri156.html on line 423: As a result, a drought hits Israel. David's and Bathsheba's baby dies. Nathan returns to tell David that God is displeased with his sin. Dog wants to see better ones, with more pizzazz. Or else he will not die as the law demands, but he will be punished through misfortune in his family. David takes responsibility but insists Bathsheba is blameless. But the people want Bathsheba killed. The crowd shouts: No, we want Barabbas! David makes plans to save Bathsheba, but she tells David she is not blameless. She has continued seeing Uriah on the side. (The reports of his demise were premature.) They are both at fault. David is reminded of the Lord and quotes Psalm 23 as he plays his harp. (A nice musical interlude in an otherwise numbing show whose spoiler is long since spoiled.)
    ellauri156.html on line 471: Uriah has to understand what the king is suggesting. Who wouldn't want to go home and enjoy his wife after some time of separation, thanks to the war with the Ammonites? Instead, we are told that Uriah never leaves the king's house. He sleeps in the doorway of the king's house, in the presence of a number of the king's servants. I am inclined to understand that at least some of these servants, if not all of them, are the king's bodyguards (compare 1 Kings 14:27-28). Uriah is a soldier. He has been called to his king's presence, away from the battle. But as a faithful servant of the king, he will not enjoy a night alone with his wife; instead, he will join with those who guard the king's life. This is the way he can serve his king in Jerusalem, and so this is what he chooses to do rather than to go home. The irony is overwhelming. The king's faithful soldier spends the night guarding the 50% new life of the king in his wife's womb, the king who has taken his own wife in the night, and who will soon take his life as well. Dramatic irony.
    ellauri156.html on line 475: On to plan B. David has his spies watching Uriah as though he is the enemy. (Well, he is a rival all right.) They know what David wants; he wants Uriah to go home and sleep with his wife. If they do not know all of the details of what David has done with Bathsheba (which is hard to believe) and what he intends to accomplish by Uriah's visit, they certainly know something out of the ordinary is taking place. One way or the other, David is making these servant-spies co-conspirators with him.
    ellauri156.html on line 485: Uriah first points out to David that his terminology is inaccurate. David speaks of Uriah returning from a journey (verse 10). The truth is that Uriah has been called from the field of battle. He is not a traveling salesman, home from a road trip; he is a soldier, away from his post. In heart and soul, Uriah is still with his fellow-soldiers. He really wants to be back in the field of battle, and not in Jerusalem. He will return as soon as David releases him (see verse 12). Until that time, he will think and act like the soldier he is. As much as possible, he will live the way his fellow-soldiers are living on the field of battle. There, surrounding the city of Rabbah, are the Israelite soldiers, led by Joab. They, along with the ark of the Lord, are camping in tents in the open field. Uriah cannot, Uriah will not, live in luxury while they live sacrificially. He will not sleep with his wife until they can all sleep with her, not just Dave.
    ellauri156.html on line 509: It must be an agonizing night for David, seeing that even drunk Uriah is a better man than he. But not a better pecker! And so in the morning, David acts. He writes a letter to Joab, which will serve as Uriah's death warrant. In this letter David clearly orders Joab to murder Uriah for him. He even tells him how to do so in a way that might conceal the truth of the matter. In so doing, David can honor Uriah as a war hero, and magnanimously take on the duty of being a husband to Uriah's wife, also taking care of the child she is soon to bear. Joab is to put Uriah on the front lines of battle, at the fiercest place of battle, no surprise for a man of his military skills and courage. Joab is to attack and then retreat in such a way as to make Uriah an easy target for the Ammonites, thus assuring his death. There is no mistaking David's orders to Uriah: he wants Uriah killed in a way which makes it look like a simple casualty of war. Joab complies completely with David's orders (why? Is Uriah a creep?), and Uriah is eliminated, no longer an obstacle to David's plans. In giving this order to Joab, David makes him a part of this conspiracy, making him share the guilt for the spilled blood of Uriah. David's sin continues to encompass more and more people, leading to greater and greater sin.
    ellauri156.html on line 562: Now why does this messenger not wait for David to respond in anger, as Joab instructed? Why does he inform David that Uriah has been killed, before he even utters a word of criticism or protest? I believe the messenger gives the report in this way because he understands what is really going on here. I think he may know about David and Bathsheba, and perhaps even of her pregnancy. He certainly knows that Uriah was summoned to Jerusalem. I think he also figures out that David wants to get rid of Uriah, and that Joab has accomplished this by this miserable excuse for an offensive against the enemy. I think the messenger figures out that if David knows Uriah has been killed, he will not raise any objections to this needless slaughter. And so, rather than wait for David to hypocritically rant and rave about the stupidity of such a move, he just goes on and tells him first, so that he will not receive any reaction from David.
    ellauri156.html on line 590: Seventh, Uriah is a reminder to us that God does not always deliver the righteous from the hand of the wicked immediately, or even in this lifetime. This is a really crucial point! Don't except to be saved except ex post facto. Daniel's three friends told the king that their God was able to deliver them. They did not presume that He would, or that He must, only that theoretically, he could if he wanted to. And God did deliver them, though with late delivery, rather like today's postal services. I think Christians should look upon this sort of deliverance as the rule, rather than the exception. But when Uriah faithfully serves his king (David), he loses his life. God is not obliged to “bail us out of trouble” or to keep us from trials and tribulations just because we trust in Him. Sometimes it is the will of God for men to trust fully in Him and to submit to human government (what? like U.S. government? No way Jose!), and still to suffer adversity, from which God may not deliver us. Spirituality is no guarantee that we will no longer suffer in this life. In fact, spiritual intimacy with God is often the cause of our sufferings (see Matthew 5).
    ellauri156.html on line 611: Stupid question, everyman has not got Dog's triceps, so how could he deliver Daniel, even if he wanted to? Well, he might have delivered Daniel to the lions, had he been all present and correct at the occasion. In the Old Testament, as in the New, God sometimes delivers His people from the hands of wicked men, but often He does not, or delivers them TO the wicked men. Their “deliverance” comes much later with the coming of the other Messiah, Lord Jesus Christ. Uriah, like all of the Old Testament saints of old, died without receiving his full reward, and that is because God wanted him to wait. Uriah, like many of the Old Testament saints, was not delivered from the hands of the wicked. This is pointed out by the author of Hebrews:
    ellauri156.html on line 613: 13 All these died in faith, without receiving the promises, but having seen them and having welcomed them from a distance, and having confessed that they were strangers and exiles on the earth. 14 For those who say such things make it clear that they are seeking a country of their own. 15 And indeed if they had been thinking of that country from which they went out, they would have had opportunity to return. 16 But as it is, they desire a better country, that is, a heavenly one. Therefore God is not ashamed to be called their God; for He has prepared a city for them. 32 And what more shall I say? For time will fail me if I tell of Gideon, Barak, Samson, Jephthah, of David and Samuel and the prophets, 33 who by faith conquered kingdoms, performed acts of righteousness, obtained promises, shut the mouths of lions, 34 quenched the power of fire, escaped the edge of the sword, from weakness were made strong, became mighty in war, put foreign armies to flight. 35 Women received back their dead by resurrection; and others were tortured, not accepting their release, so that they might obtain a better resurrection; 36 and others experienced mockings and scourgings, yes, also chains and imprisonment. 37 They were stoned, they were sawn in two, they were tempted, they were put to death with the sword; they went about in sheepskins, in goatskins, in foreskins, being destitute, afflicted, ill-treated 38 (men of whom the world was not worthy), wandering in deserts and mountains and caves and holes in the ground. 39 And all these, having gained approval through their faith, did not receive what was promised, 40 because God had provided something even better for us, to make up for the wait, so that apart from us they would not be made perfect (Hebrews 11:13-16, 32-40).
    ellauri156.html on line 615: Uriah should not be criticized or looked down upon for his loyalty and submission to David. He should be highly commended. In fact, a friend suggested a new thought for my consideration: “Suppose that Uriah was added to the list of war heroes because of his loyalty and courage in this battle which cost him his life? It is a possibility to consider. Uriah is one of those Gentile converts whose faith and obedience puts many Israelites to shame. He is among many of those who have trusted and obeyed God who have not received their just rewards in this life, but who will be rewarded in the coming kingdom of God. Too many Christians today want their blessings “now” and are not willing to suffer, waiting for their reward then. Let them think carefully about the example of Uriah for their own lives. His elevator may have not gone all the way to the top floor, but by Gawd, he will reach it when Jacob lets down the ladder!
    ellauri156.html on line 620: 41 Is this, by any chance, a clue as to what the “present” was that David sent after Uriah in verse 8? Was the present some “food and drink”? I wonder. 42 Uriah’s actions raise some interesting questions about those who get themselves drunk. It seems to me that our text strongly implies that even drunk, a man cannot be forced to violate his convictions, unless of course he wants to do so. I wonder how many people get drunk because they want to do what they do drunk, and they think they can blame alcohol for their own sin? It seems like another version of, “The Devil made me do it.”
    ellauri156.html on line 679: Second, note that Nathan is sent to David. Twelve times in the last chapter the word “sent” is employed by the author. A number of these instances refer to David “sending” someone or “sending” for someone. David is a man of power and authority, and so he can “send out” for whatever he wants, including the death of Uriah. Now, it is God who does the “sending.” Herra se on herrallakin. Is David impressed with his power and authority? Has he gotten used to “sending” people to do his work for him (like sending Joab and all Israel to fight the Ammonites)? Let David take note that God is sending Nathan. He is a godsend to Dave.
    ellauri156.html on line 740: Nathan tells David the story of a rich man and a poor man. God tells David through Nathan that all that he possesses (his riches) it is he, the boss, who has given them to him. God is like the rich man, and David the poor one with just the one. David's problem is that his possessions have come to own him. He is so stingy he won't even give his petlamb to Mr. Rich. He is so “possessed” with his lamb that he is unwilling to spend it when his boss has a party. He wants “more” and “more,” and so he begins to take what isn’t his to take, rather than to ask the divine Giver for all he has and more.
    ellauri158.html on line 40: Jeg er pinnsvin, sanoi norjalaisessa mamusarjassa Jordbrukerne wannabe islamilaisgladiaattori, joka oli ihan poikki. Spinoza oli toinen samanlainen. Siilit ovat kivoja, vahvisti Iso Pauli vielä seniilinä. Ei sixi että ne syövät käärmeitä, vaan sixi että ne lyllertävät ja tuhisevat söpösti. Siilejä oli ennen paljon Sysmässä ja Käpylässä. Nyt ei niitä näy. Hyönteiset lie niiltä loppuneet, ja käärmeet.
    ellauri158.html on line 1096: Sanoi wannabee islamilaisgladiaattori joka oli ihan poikki. Spinoza oli toinen sellainen. Siilit ovat kivoja, vahvisti Iso Pauli vielä seniilinä.
    ellauri159.html on line 661: A knight’s sacrifice is by using his strength on behalf of the weak. Sharing our food and providing the wanderer with shelter and clothing are also acts of sacrifice, but they can also be counted as hospitality or charity, depending on the sttus of the other guy.
    ellauri159.html on line 753: Second, males’ greater amounts of testosterone make them well-suited for the warrior role for a couple of reasons. First, testosterone is linked with a greater desire to compete and take risks. Studies show that when a man “wins” in a contest, he is hit with a boost of dopamine and a surge of testosterone that makes him want to keep on competing. So while testosterone doesn’t directly make men more aggressive (that’s a myth — it’s more complicated than that), it does fuel a drive to keep pushing when someone else is pushing back.
    ellauri159.html on line 765: Donovan argues that understanding the dynamics of these ancient honor groups is the key to understanding the essence of male psychology and how men relate to, interact, and judge each other even up through the modern day. What men respect in other men (and women find attractive), is rooted in what men wanted in the men to the left and the right of them as they stood together side-by-side on the perimeter.
    ellauri159.html on line 768: You won’t want the men in your gang to be reckless, but you’ll need them to be courageous when it matters. A man who runs when the group needs him to fight could put all of your lives in jeopardy.
    ellauri159.html on line 769: You’ll want men who are competent, who can get the job done. Who wants to be surrounded by morons and f**k-ups? The men who hunt and fight will have to demonstrate mastery of the skills your group uses to hunt and fight. A little inventiveness couldn’t hurt, either.
    ellauri159.html on line 770: You’ll also need your men to commit. You will want to know that the men beside you are us and not them. You’ll need to be able to count on them in times of crisis. You want guys who have your back. Men who don’t care about what the other men think of them aren’t dependable or trustworthy. If you’re smart, you will want the other men to prove they are committed to the team. You’ll want them to show that they care about their reputation within the gang, and you’ll want them to show that they care about your gang’s reputation with other gangs.”
    ellauri159.html on line 1001: Ss are concrete thinkers, placing more trust in experience than in flashes of insight. They’re more interested in sensory data than in the patterns perceived by the unconscious mind. Ss tend to be intellectually content—they want to enjoy the world.
    ellauri159.html on line 1004: Ns are abstract thinkers, placing more trust in flashes of insight than in experience. They’re less interested in sensory data than in the patterns perceived by the unconscious mind. Ns tend to be intellectually restless—they want to change the world.
    ellauri159.html on line 1023: Regard writing as a practical exercise rather than as a creative one. You want to meet the goals of their teacher, editor, boss, or project sponsor. For this reason, you like receiving specific instructions.
    ellauri159.html on line 1035: You may become blocked if the assignment isn’t well defined. You want to limit your choices early and write toward a specific goal. Try picturing a specific person who exemplifies your audience, and write for that person.
    ellauri159.html on line 1041: Write for an audience, seeing you want to hear how people were affected by your work. With sufficient encouragement and clear instructions, you might even be able adapt the piece to the expectations of a teacher, boss, or editor. A lack of feedback is likely to demotivate you. To avoid this, seek out an environment where people appreciate hearing your stuff over and over.
    ellauri159.html on line 1057: Be self-motivated and self-directed. However, when writing for a teacher, editor, or boss, you may want explicit instructions. If you don’t have a clear understanding of other people’s expectations, you may struggle in silence. Instead, try asking to see a model of what to work toward (for example, last year’s annual report or a term paper that earned an A). A concrete example will help alleviate confusion.
    ellauri159.html on line 1075: When starting a project, you want clear instructions or a model to work from. It is helpful to know what approach has succeeded in the past so you can use it as a framework. If instructions aren’t specific, you may be at a loss, so it’s best to ask for clarification, or just copy from a reliable model.
    ellauri159.html on line 1095: Prefer writing in an active environment like panoramic office or gym where you can shape your ideas by discussing them with others. You may also want to use a voice recorder so you don’t have to write so much and work shackled to a computer.
    ellauri159.html on line 1143: Work independently and prefer a quiet environment. If you must write collaboratively, seek out tasks that will allow you to work alone or with someone whose expertise you value. Unlike most other sensing types (the wimps), you don’t want detailed instructions or specific feedback. In fact, you may have to shoot if they try. Just ask for general guidelines that allow you flexibility. They may try to impose rules you regard as useless, like firearms restrictions.
    ellauri159.html on line 1147: Focus on original facts rather than original ideas. You need not be interested in theory except as a way of exploring what’s tangled and undemonstrable. Seek mastery rather than discovery, although this may mean applying a new technology to an old battlefield. You don’t want to be the first—you want to be the best, and last (on the battlefield).
    ellauri159.html on line 1159: You work best when they have the freedom to follow your own process and timeline. Estimate how long you’ll need to complete each task, then add 50% and a cushion. Set milestones along the way only to remove them as you go. Incorporate a lot of time for breaks. If your energy wanes, meet with a writer friend for coffee or other libation, and discuss your ideas. If the project permits, consider copulating with a co-writer.
    ellauri159.html on line 1177: You draw inspiration from being a know-it-all and educating people. You tend to read extensively and to collect words they consider particularly apt, like David Wallace. If their writing project involves others, you often take a leadership role, and repeat the word 'actually' in everybody´s face. You may also beep like a truck on reverse. You thrive in a harmonious atmosphere where everyone respects your opinion. Having a strong need to feel in control of your projects, you want to work in a cooperative environment conducive to driving a project to completion.
    ellauri159.html on line 1179: You focus your writing on received values and ideals. You use polished language to persuade. You want to influence people’s lives for the betterment of the individual and society. If you’re a technical writer, you focus your talent on expressing a complex idea simplistically so school kids understand it. Recognize that this gift benefits your readers by helping them perform their menial tasks more effectively.
    ellauri159.html on line 1189: You may find it difficult to create the emotional distance needed to keep your hands off your students. Don’t let a hasty feel-up skew your research. Be sure to include alternate facts and points of view. Also, be careful to avoid a cursory treatment of the subject, like in those wannabe writer guides on the web. Ask a friend or colleague to review the work, making sure you’ve provided sufficient detail.
    ellauri159.html on line 1197: You dislike writing according to a predetermined structure. You want control over their own creative process. You are drawn to original pictures and imaginative symbols. When revising a draft, search for a central, unifying theme, and articulate it for your reader. At the same time, avoid trying too hard to be unique. Instead, aim for authenticity, remember to mention the sources of the pictures.
    ellauri159.html on line 1201: You enjoy colorful and figurative language, and like to infuse your work with images of your personal underware. At the same time, however, your writing may be too abstract for their readers, they want to see you inside them. During revision, add concrete details. In creative writing, appeal to the five senses and the 9 mortal sins. In freelance writing, include specifics like percentages and dollar amounts to get the audience´s attention. In technical writing, find out whether the customer needs to use a flat-head or a cross-head screwdriver (our dishwasher installer guys did not have a flathead anymore, I had to loan them one), and what the recommended torque is. These may be boring details to you, but they’re essential for your male reader. Wrong head, no screw.
    ellauri159.html on line 1203: You tend to communicate passionately about your beliefs. You tend to start writing before finishing research on life, the universe, and everything, wanting to commit your half-baked insights to paper. Be sure to gather enough data to support your position, and include alternative facts for balance. This is one arena where it may be healthy to indulge your perfectionist tendencies. Get the facts right enough to maintain plausibility.
    ellauri159.html on line 1205: Guys like you tend to be easily hurt by criticism, especially when it comes to their writing, or their sexual performance. Because they generally keep their writing and wanking private until they think it’s finished, they may not have a good sense of the look and feel to others. Consider showing your work and your tool to a trusted friend or colleague for advice before you begin the final round. This will help you better connect with your audience, which is important to you, I know.
    ellauri159.html on line 1209: According to Dr. Phil, 90% of relationship problems can’t be solved. Why? Because it would require one person or the other to compromise their values. So the best a couple can do is to agree to disagree. INFJs don’t want people to compromise their values—yet that 90% statistic is bound to discourage INFJs like me. I suspect it isn’t the relationship problems themselves that lead to the INFJs’ dissatisfaction; it’s the fact that the problems can’t be solved. Perhaps the INFJs feel that if only they could be more creative, or their partner could be more flexible, the little annoyances that have existed since the first day of the relationship could be eliminated. Not so. No amount of skill or understanding will make naturally ingrained differences go away.
    ellauri159.html on line 1232: You want to master the subject everyone´s whining about. You enjoy the challenge of technical topics, and you focus on crafting clear, concise instructions. However, if you don’t see the perks of the writing project, your interest may wane. Discuss the project with friends or colleagues to help you find a way to increase your reward.
    ellauri159.html on line 1234: You want a good set of guidelines at the beginning of the project, but you also want the freedom to write your own guidelines. If a writing project involves others, you try to take the lead. You naturally envision how things ought to be—that is, your way. Efficient and strategically organized. But keep in mind that others might not share your vision. Imbeciles! When stepping forward to fill a leadership vacuum, seek buy-in from the group. Side payments may be indicated.
    ellauri159.html on line 1236: You naturally write with an authoritative voice. You want to fake competence in the subject you’re writing about. To boost your success, gather sufficient details to make it look that you have a thorough understanding of the topic. Humanize the writing by including anecdotes making fun of other idiots or otherwise engaging the reader’s interest.
    ellauri159.html on line 1240: With the desire for efficiency, you must sometimes be terse. Be sure to consider audience reaction. "Shut up!" is a good terse riposte. You already know how ideas relate to one another. Unless you’re writing for an audience of experts, assume readers know nothing about the topic. They don´t. Include faked data if necessary to support your conclusions. In your eagerness to finish, don’t skimp on those touches that will elevate your writing from good to great. You want to be great, not just good. Alexander the Good? Friedrich the Good? Catherine the Good? Naaw.
    ellauri159.html on line 1293: You are an innovative problem-solver who wants control over the product and the process, like Bill Gates or Larry Page, who earned billions with this approach. Guys like you are confident in their vision and want to bring it to life.
    ellauri159.html on line 1297: You are happy and motivated with your personal vision. Original thinkers have little regard for convention. They want things to make sense according to their own logical standards, and they will discard anything that doesn’t. For this reason, they tend to enjoy technical subjects. They often wear visual aids like Google spectacles that support and clarify their writing. If you’re one of these guys, one path to success as a writer is to draw on your natural curiosity about how things work and your talent for explaining this for others. But beware of the pitfalls!
    ellauri159.html on line 1303: Setting a high standard for oneself can become frustrating if others can’t achieve it. Avoid pushing yourself toward an unprofitable goal. Tap into your desire for efficiency and recognize when 99% are expendable. And if you need help, buy it. Other people don’t want you to be perfect—they want you to pay them megabucks. That is much more interesting.
    ellauri159.html on line 1345: I was born here in Amsterdam. My father was a land holder of 700 acres [2.8 km²] here, adjoining the city on both sides of the river, and lived, as I now live, in a large brick house on the south bank of the Mohawk visible as you enter Amsterdam from the east. I was his only child, and went a good deal my own way. I ran to machinery, by fancy; patented among other devices a swathing reaper which is very successful. I was of loose and wandering ways. And was a successful gambler through the Tweed regime -- made "bar'ls" of money, and threw it away. I was a fancy gymnast also, and have had some heavy fights, notable one of forty minutes with Ed. Mullett, whom I left senseless. This was mere fancy. I never lifted an angry hand against man, woman or child -- all fun -- for me. ....I do farming in a way, but am much idle. I have been a sort of pet of the city, and think I should be missed. In a large vote taken by one of the daily papers here a month or so ago as to who were the 12 leading citizens, I was 6th in the 12, and sole in my class. So you see, if Sparta has many a worthier son, I am still boss in the department I prefer.
    ellauri160.html on line 171: Poetry published Pound's "A Few Don'ts by an Imagist" in March 1913. Superfluous words, particularly adjectives, should be avoided (Ahha! This is where Stephen King comes in) as well as expressions like "dim lands of peace". He wrote: "It dulls the image. It mixes an abstraction with the concrete. It comes from the writer's not realizing that the natural object is always the adequate symbol. Just say 'lands'." Poets should "go in fear of abstractions". He wanted Imagisme "to stand for hard light, clear edges", he wrote later to Amy Lowell.
    ellauri160.html on line 217: English poets such as Maurice Hewlett, Rudyard Kipling, and Alfred Tennyson had made a particular kind of Victorian verse—stirring, pompous, propagandistic and popular. According to modernist scholar James Knapp, Pound rejected the idea of poetry as "versified moral essay"; he wanted to focus on the individual experience, the concrete rather than the abstract.
    ellauri160.html on line 450: Holding his golden wand, knew me, and spoke first: Heilutellen kultakeppiä, tunnisti mut ja puhui ekana:
    ellauri160.html on line 491: 7The golden bough of Argicida - Formula of address for Hermes. "Argicida" is the Latin translation of the epithet Ἀργειφόντης ("Argeiphontes" - slayer of Argus) which is always applied to him, whereas the golden bough is Hermes´ caduceus, or wand. PL. Hermes has an appearance in the other Hymn to Aphrodite (no. V), printed in the Divus volume. Eli se em. kyrvännäköinen tirso-sauva. It all figures. Mua ärsyttää Dos Vidaxen Tirson musta pässintukka, menis parturiin. Luupää.
    ellauri160.html on line 806: It is really sweet that Germans and others have adopted something and that this sketch is special for them. I respect that and don’t doubt for a second the genuine love and admiration some have for Dinner for One. But I am really surprised to see Monty Python compared with Dinner for One. I have to say it was painful to sit through. Painfully, painfully bad and unfunny. That’s why it has never caught on in Britain. I suppose we must have a very different sense of humour to that of Scandinavia and the German-speaking countries. We don’t consider it funny if someone falls over something. There’s nothing subtle or clever or nuanced about it (Rowan Atkinson’s absurdist physical comedy went down so well due to its complexity, think of the sketch where Mr. Bean makes the sandwich on the park bench and it gets progressively more and more absurd, he gets the fish out of water and slaps it against the bench to kill it before eating it, etc. now that is funny, and food fights in general). It’s not funny the first time the butler falls over the tiger-skin rug and it gets progressively more and more irritating each time he does it. You can spot the punchline a mile off and so the end of the sketch falls very flat. It’s nothing whatever to do with the length of the sketch or its obscurity or difficulty finding it: people still seek out all the comic greats on Youtube, like that fat man watsisname, or Charlie Chaplin who bravely made fun of your Hitler.
    ellauri160.html on line 808: Again, no offence meant, if you love the sketch and want others to see it, that is a very nice sentiment but if you find British people, and show them the sketch and ask their opinions, you will find no one laughs and complements will be far from forthcoming at the end. Still, it is fascinating, is it not, how humour translates differently across cultures? In short: we are not amused, not at all.
    ellauri161.html on line 480: I want to die peacefully in my sleep like my grandfather, not screaming in terror like his passengers.
    ellauri161.html on line 533: Don't Look up manages to encapsulate the problem with our times: the reliance on experts which is used to justify the proliferation of rigid dogma and ideology through unchecked force. It's all a huge conspiracy of the satanist pedophiliacs who want to inject microchips in our blood.
    ellauri161.html on line 590: Don’t Look Up wants to paint our inaction with regard to climate change as the result of denialism and being distracted by silly things like, say, a movie streaming on Netflix. But climate change isn’t a comet headed our way in less than a year — a lousy, faulty metaphor for where we’re at right now. Except that IT IS! It's probably too late already. Now get a big mouth fuck goddam Allison Willmore,
    ellauri161.html on line 607: If I wanted to get preached at, I'll just go to church. 1 out of 5.
    ellauri161.html on line 631: I’ve seen some people criticise Don’t Look Up for lacking subtlety. I’m not bothered by this. I don’t necessarily need or want the communications about climate change to be subtle. The issue itself certainly is not subtle. We are heading towards—and, again, already are in the midst of—unprecedented death and destruction. Our systems and rulers are not just woefully ill-equipped to deal with this or to prevent the worst of it, they are actively complicit in bringing it about. Those communities around the world that are the most vulnerable and that have had the least part to play in causing the crisis will be the ones to suffer the first and the worst. This isn’t subtle sh*t! This is horrifying, grotesque, psychologically debilitating stuff to ponder—if you even have the privilege to ponder in the first place! I don’t necessarily need subtlety here. Sometimes, to fight propaganda, you need to go loud and bold. But you still have to be effective. We are fighting an almightily powerful enemy. Competence is a necessary minimum. Regrettably, Don’t Look Up does not meet those standards. Its central metaphor doesn’t even make sense! Yes, capitalism is responding as dreadfully to climate change in real life as it does to the comet in the film—the key difference is that capitalism didn’t cause that comet to come hurtling out of the sky in the first place.
    ellauri161.html on line 767: If I could give this zero stars I would. I want the last 2.5 hours of my life back.
    ellauri161.html on line 781: I´m over halfway through and I want to turn it off.
    ellauri162.html on line 195: - You know i thought the point of that story was to uplift people. Why on Earth would you want one to do just the oppisite.
    ellauri162.html on line 716: Masturbation. It’s not just a great way to kill time, but it’s also the safest sex you can have. And it has many health benefits. (See: 5 Reasons You Should Masturbate Tonight.) Although we can all agree that masturbation is pretty much the cherry on top of the ice cream of life, there’s more to the act than that. In a recent study from Harvard, men who ejaculated 21 or more times per month had a 19 to 22 percent lower risk of prostate cancer than men who did so only four to seven times per month. In some parts of the world, teenagers are encouraged to masturbate. Masturbation prevents unwanted pregnancies.
    ellauri162.html on line 761: Number 1 David Silverman is President of American Atheists, the organization founded in 1963 by the grande dame of American atheism, Madalyn Murray O’Hair (1919–1995). He is a Jew. You know it´s a myth. Religion is my bitch. Bitches, I don´t trust ´em But they give me what I want for the night.
    ellauri163.html on line 365: If you want a Jewish translation online please refer to http://bible.ort.org:
    ellauri163.html on line 512: 7 Und Mose war hundertundzwanzig Jahre alt, da er starb. Seine Augen waren nicht dunkel worden, und seine Kraft war nicht verfallen.
    ellauri163.html on line 776: Juopon kyläpapin suntio oli Arsene ja Mouchetten raiska raiskaaja oli Arsene. Tokko Lupin kuitenkaan, vaikka omin lupinensa salamezästi. Viisas vanhussuntio on 73 vee. Kohta pitäis tässä olla yhtä viisas. Haha. Quand on est mort tout est mort. Oli se viisaampi ainakin kuin wannabe jenkki filmikriitikko Dan Schneider (tuppikulli nähtävästi), joka jauhaa loputtomiin siitä oliko Mouchetten bylsintä raiskaus vai ei. Kärpässarjalaisia. ÄLÄ JAUHA! Tottakai se oli.
    ellauri163.html on line 815: Niinpä, kun elokuvantekijä, kun häntä pyydettiin määrittelemään, mistä elokuvassa oli kyse, vastasi: "Mouchette tarjoaa todisteita kurjuudesta ja julmuudesta. Häntä esiintyy kaikkialla: sotia, keskitysleirejä, kidutuksia, salamurhia", hän oli joko keimaileva tai varovainen. Tietenkin elokuva käsittelee tällaisia negatiivisia juttuja, mutta se käsittelee myös sitkeyttä, kynintää ja sisua. Ja koska se tekee niin, ja tekee niin niin hyvin, tämä on suuri syy siihen, että sen loppu on niin huono, ehkä vastaa Akira Kurosawan Rashomonin huonoa loppua. Jos se olisi tarjonnut vain sitä, mitä Bresson väitti, sen loppu olisi ollut paljon parempi ja elokuvan mukainen, mutta näin ollen koko elokuva olisi ollut paljon huonompi! Eli lyhyesti: jenkkikazojana odottelin valoisampaa loppua. Mouchetten olisi pitänyt ryhdistäytyä ja perustaa Arsenen kanssa vaikka avokanala. Joka ois menestynyt aivan hulluna, ja loppukuvissa Mouchette ja Arsene olis olleet sikarikkaita.
    ellauri164.html on line 53: Juopon maxavaivaisen pikkupapin pikkupillu bändäri Serafita näkee siitä unia. Sen yhden paikan ympärillä pyörii kaikki mystikot, puolukoina pillussa. Mä alan huomata loppumetreillä et tää maalaispappi on wannabe samanlainen kaikkiruokainen pikku narsisti kuin Teoreeman Terence Postimerkki, joka tietystikään ei ole kukaan muu kuin Pieru-Pauli ize. Kaikki naiset ja puolet miehistä on siihen muka lääpällään. Hei täähän onkin vastaavasti Bernadotten märkä uni. Väkeviä motareita ja pitkätukkaisia nuoria miehiä, alaikäisiä tyttöjä joiden mustelmaiset pohkeet vilkkuvat.
    ellauri164.html on line 379: I wanted to like this book so much more than I did. I actually found it incredibly difficult to understand. Some of it, I think, was that it was poorly translated. I read a 1962 edition that doesn't even cite a translator -- so many of the sentences were so convoluted as to be utterly obtuse. Poor translation or witless reader? I never could figure out why Mlle Chantal was such an angry bitch and why she insisted on tormenting the priest. What was her secret? Was the priest an alcoholic or just terminally sick? Gay? Why did M le Comte come to hate the priest? These are just some of the basic narrative issues I couldn't figure out. Forget the whole spiritual aspect--much of what the priest mused on and felt was incomprehensible to me as he described it. I can't help wondering if I'd have understood it if I had read it in French. Or maybe I'm just so spiritually challenged (in a God believing, Catholic way) that I can't comprehend it when it's described. All of that said, there were profoundly moving passages here and there, but over all I don't begin to know what I read. It's rather embarrassing actually--I feel so simple! (less)
    ellauri164.html on line 381:
    Karna Swanson rated it did not like it

    ellauri164.html on line 395: I am not getting from this book what I expected based on other reviews, and not what I wanted from it either. I tried, read almost half of it. There was not as much about the interaction with his parishioners as about the lectures he gets from older priests and his superiors. And here was not much spiritual inspiration for this reader. A bit ponderous. This goes on my "life is too short" shelf. (less)
    ellauri164.html on line 493: The rest of the book of Exodus and the entire book of Leviticus take place while the Israelites are encamped at the foot of Sinai. God gives Moses detailed instructions for the building of the tabernacle—a traveling tent of worship that could be assembled and disassembled for easy portability—and for making the utensils for worship, the priestly garb, and the ark of the covenant, symbolic of God’s presence among His people as well as the place where the high priest would perform the annual atonement. God also gives Moses explicit instructions on how God is to be worshiped and guidelines for maintaining purity and holiness among the people. The book of Numbers sees the Israelites move from Sinai to the edge of the Promised Land, but they refuse to go in when ten out of twelve spies bring back a bad report about Israel’s ability to take over the land. God condemns this generation of Jews to die in the wilderness for their disobedience and subjects them to forty years of wandering in the wilderness. By the end of the book of Numbers, the next generation of Israelites is back on the borders of the Promised Land and poised to trust God and take it by faith.
    ellauri164.html on line 498: So, now, what can we learn from Moses’ life? Moses’ life is generally broken down into three 40-year periods. The first is his life in the court of Pharaoh. As the adopted son of Pharaoh’s daughter, Moses would have had all the perks and privileges of a prince of Egypt. He was instructed “in all the wisdom of the Egyptians, and he was mighty in his words and deeds” (Acts 7:22). As the plight of the Hebrews began to disturb his soul, Moses took it upon himself to be the savior of his people. As Stephen says before the Jewish ruling council, “[Moses] supposed that his brothers would understand that God was giving them salvation by his hand” (Acts 7:25). From this incident, we learn that Moses was a man of action as well as a man possessed of a hot temper and prone to rash actions. Did God want to save His people? Yes. Did God want to use Moses as His chosen instrument of salvation? Yes. But Moses, whether or not he was truly cognizant of his role in the salvation of the Hebrew people, acted rashly and impetuously. He tried to do in his timing what God wanted done in His timing. The lesson for us is obvious: we must be acutely aware of not only doing God’s will, but doing God’s will in His timing, not ours. As is the case with so many other biblical examples, when we attempt to do God’s will in our timing, we make a bigger mess than originally existed.
    ellauri164.html on line 502: Another thing we see from Moses during his time spent in Midian is that, when God finally did call him into service, Moses was resistant. The man of action early in his life, Moses, now 80 years old, became overly timid. When called to speak for God, Moses said he was “slow of speech and tongue” (Exodus 4:10). Some commentators believe that Moses may have had a speech impediment. Perhaps, but then it would be odd for Stephen to say Moses was “mighty in words and deeds” (Acts 7:22). Perhaps Moses just didn’t want to go back into Egypt and fail again. This isn’t an uncommon feeling. How many of us have tried to do something (whether or not it was for God) and failed, and then been hesitant to try again? There are two things Moses seemed to have overlooked. One was the obvious change that had occurred in his own life in the intervening 40 years. The other, and more important, change was that God would be with him. Moses failed at first not so much because he acted impulsively, but because he acted without God. Therefore, the lesson to be learned here is that when you discern a clear call from God, step forward in faith, knowing that God goes with you! Do not be timid, but be strong in the Lord and in the power of his might (Ephesians 6:10).
    ellauri164.html on line 504: The third and final chapter in Moses’ life is the chapter that Scripture spends the most time chronicling, namely, his role in the redemption of Israel. Several lessons can be gleaned from this chapter of Moses’ life as well. First is how to be an effective leader of people. Moses essentially had responsibility over two million Hebrew refugees. When things began to wear on him, his father-in-law, Jethro Tull, suggested that he delegate responsibility to other faithful men, a lesson that many people in authority over others need to learn (Exodus 18). We also see a man who was dependent on the grace of God to help with his task. Moses was continually pleading on behalf of the people before God. If only all people in authority would petition God on behalf of those over whom they are in charge! Moses was keenly aware of the necessity of God’s presence and even requested to see God’s glory (Exodus 33). Moses knew that, apart from God, the exodus would be meaningless. It was God who made the Israelites distinct, and they needed Him most. Moses’ life also teaches us the lesson that there are certain sins that will continue to haunt us throughout our lives. The same hot temper that got Moses into trouble in Egypt also got him into trouble during the wilderness wanderings. In the aforementioned incident at Meribah, Moses struck the rock in anger in order to provide water for the people. However, he didn’t give God the glory, nor did he follow God’s precise commands. Because of this, God forbade him from entering the Promised Land. In a similar manner, we all succumb to certain besetting sins which plague us all our days, sins that require us to be on constant alert.
    ellauri164.html on line 541: Grumbling, grousing, and complaining seem to be all around us. In our relative affluence, we often expect or even demand comfort. We are very particular about the way we want things to be, and often expect that it be made so without much if any effort on our part.
    ellauri164.html on line 703: When a Bible author develops a pattern and then breaks it, we should pay attention because this signals that the author wants us to notice something important.
    ellauri164.html on line 705: Based on the pattern established in Numbers, what do you expect will happen at Meribah when the people rebel against Moses? We expect the pattern to repeat and for God to decree punishment, but that doesn’t happen. The pattern breaks down! Instead of decreeing punishment for the people’s sin, God simply tells Moses to give the people water by speaking to the rock. This is a significant departure from the previous pattern. When a Bible author develops a pattern and then breaks it, we should pay attention because this signals that the author wants us to notice something important. Why didn’t God punish the people at Meribah? Why did he go at Moses instead?
    ellauri164.html on line 871: This pattern shows itself again in the beginning of Numbers 20 after the death of Miriam. Once more Israel rebels against Moses and Aaron, this time over a lack of water in the desert of Zin. They claim that it would have been better to have died with Korah’s rebellion rather than wander without food and water, and they express regret over leaving Egypt, a land of “grain, figs, vines, and pomegranates.” This might seem a bold claim, since in our reading Korah has just died a few chapters earlier. Careful reading, however, indicates that there’s actually been a quiet time skip; Numbers 33:38 indicates that Aaron died in “the fortieth year after the sons of Israel had come from the land of Egypt, on the first day in the fifth month.” Given that Aaron’s death is recorded in Chapter 20, just a few verses after the episode at Meribah, this would indicate that the episode at Meribah occurred in year 38 of the 40 year wandering in the wilderness (remember that Israel had spent more than a year at Sinai in addition to travel time from Egypt to Sinai and from Sinai to the Promised Land before the wandering). This means that this rebellious generation of Israelites aren’t referencing a recent event, but instead wishing they had died nearly forty years earlier with Korah! Moses and Aaron have been dealing with this wicked and hard group of people for a very long time, and they are now claiming it would have been better to have died with Korah: a fate they were only spared because of Moses and Aaron’s own intercession!
    ellauri164.html on line 923: Moses’ sin occurred in the final years of his life. After faithfully leading Israel out of Egypt, and after their rebellion in the matter of the 12 spies, he also faithfully led them during the forty years of wandering in the wilderness. Yet near the very end of that wandering, in a moment of anger and a lapse of judgment, Moses sinned, and God recorded that it led Him to refuse to allow Moses to enter the promised land. It is difficult to imagine the anguish and remorse Moses must have felt when God revealed this punishment. His failure to give God the proper respect and reverence, though provoked by the wicked rebellion and faithless murmurings of Israel, was a public sin and God chose to publicly and openly punish him for it.
    ellauri164.html on line 929: It appears that Moses was still in complete control of himself when he went to God for instructions. “Moses and Aaron went ... to the door of the tent of meeting, and fell upon their faces.” “Then the Lord spoke to Moses, saying,” “take the rod; ... gather the congregation together. Speak to the rock before their eyes, and it will yield its water; thus you shall bring water for them out of the rock, and give drink to the congregation and their animals.” Clearly there was nothing difficult to understand and Moses wanted to be as faithful to this command as he had been to all the other commands God had given him.
    ellauri164.html on line 939: Conclusion. Though the water came, Moses was severely punished. He was punished in a way that no amount of repentance could remove. As noted above, the sin was forgiven, but the consequences of the sin could not be. Because Moses had sinned publicly and God wanting Israel to understand His righteousness, He would not relent. “Then I pleaded with the Lord at that time... I pray, let me cross over and see the good land beyond the Jordan, those pleasant mountains, and Lebanon ... the Lord said to me: ‘Enough of that! Speak no more to Me of this matter.’ ... you shall not cross over this Jordan.” (Deut. 3:23-27). There is a lot of important lessons we can learn from Moses. This sin is one of them. Though Moses had fallen short of God’s glory here, God forgave him. Yet the consequences of the sin were deeply distressing. So it was with David, Paul and Job. So will it be with us. We need to hate sin and realize that the consequences can sometimes be severe.
    ellauri164.html on line 963: But wait. Didn’t we already learn a similar story back in Exodus? In fact, the first story of thirst came very soon after the crossing at the Sea of Reeds (Shemot 17:4). Since that was at the very beginning of the sojourn in the wilderness, before the events that led to God’s decision to delay the Israelites’ entry to the Land—and this story is at the end of the forty years—we can see the two stories as forming a kind of a framework around the whole saga of the wandering. In the first story, the Israelites were the first generation of those who left Egypt. In this story, they are the children and grandchildren of that generation. When we see this kind of framework, we look for the similarities and differences between the bracketing stories. At the same time, we understand that they suggest a theme for the stories between them.
    ellauri164.html on line 975: The Israelites had a history of trusting in God because of what they saw. The most famous example, which we repeat in the daily morning service, quotes their experience after the crossing of the Sea of Reeds: “Israel saw the wondrous power which God had wielded against the Egyptians, the people feared God; they had faith in God and in God’s servant, Moses” (Exod. 14:31). They have needed this public, indisputable evidence of their eyes ever since. God knows that what they see is what is most important. And what he wants them to see is Moses speaking—not striking the rock, as he was commanded to do on the former occasion.
    ellauri164.html on line 979: What God wants the people to see is that Moses speaks in performing the miracle at the rock. It is a potentially powerful transitional moment in which Moses’s publicly perceived action would be speech. What he would say would become part of the people’s religious consciousness—part of the repeated narrative of the people—a way of adducing to God a caring relationship with God’s people, and conveying that care to the people. We can imagine the speech Moses might give, performing the quintessential task of a prophet, in bringing God and the people closer together. Instead, he calls them “rebels,” distancing the people from himself and, by association, from God; disdaining their legitimate needs; and losing the opportunity to attribute the provision of water to God.
    ellauri171.html on line 424: The problem was made worse by the fact that the Israelites occupied border territory. If there was an invasion, they might defect to the enemy. This could mean the collapse of the Egyptian Empire. Just like the Ukrainians. So off with them. Wait! Pharaoh did not want to eject them from Egypt – they were too valuable as workers. So he sought to control their numbers by forced labour and by child slaughter. Hmm. Mitähän opetuxia tästäkin tarinasta voisi ottaa?
    ellauri171.html on line 533: Hamor tries to placate them by telling them his son loves Dinah, and wants to marry her. Their relationship will be based on loyalty and trust, he implies. He speaks respectfully, and carefully includes the brothers in his discussion, making them a generous offer:
    ellauri171.html on line 544: After his father has finished speaking, Shechem makes another offer: to give any marriage present they want, if he can marry Dinah. Stacks of Gold Coins! Referring to her, he uses the word ‘maiden’.
    ellauri171.html on line 555: There is deep anger in the hearts of Dinah’s brothers, and they want justice, not compensation. They set out to deceive Shechem and his father.
    ellauri171.html on line 586: His anger is stoked not by any ethical consideration, but by the fear that they have become pariahs who will be hunted down by allies of the city they have attacked. He rebukes his sons for backing out of the agreement they had with the people of the city – but hasn’t he himself used duplicity all his life to get what he wants? He does not like it when his sons do the same.
    ellauri171.html on line 609: A Levite man and his concubine (a secondary wife without the legal status of a wife) were traveling through the hill country of Judah. The village they entered seemed unfriendly but they were eventually make welcome by an old man, who let them stay in his house. During the night they they were attacked by some gay villagers who wanted to rape not the woman, but the man.
    ellauri171.html on line 644: The worthless fellows wanted the old man to send out the Levite so that they could engage in sexual activity with him. But the old man refused and offered the crowd of men his virgin daughter and the Levite’s concubine. The old man said, “you may ravish them” and do “whatever you wish.” He granted them permission to engage in sexual relations with the two women. Now it is obvious the men surrounding the old man’s house wanted to engage in sexual activity when the two women were offered. It is also obvious the men described as “worthless fellows” were homosexuals since they wanted sex with the Levite and two women were offered.[1, 2]
    ellauri171.html on line 705: A woman stood at the entrance to one of the tents, and beckoned him in. She seemed to want to help him. He should have been more careful.
    ellauri171.html on line 739: Ehud murders Eglon at a 19th century commode - but ancient lavatory arrangements were probably similar. Ehud, an Israelite, reluctantly carried tribute to the hated Moabite king Eglon. He did not want to do it, but he knew he had to – Eglon was like a Mafia chieftain, too powerful and too violent to disobey.
    ellauri171.html on line 924: The palace economy of Mycenaean Greece, the Aegean region and Anatolia that characterized the Late Bronze Age disintegrated, transforming into the small isolated village cultures of the Greek Dark Ages, which lasted from around 1100 BCE to the beginning of the Archaic age around 750 BCE. The Hittite Empire of Anatolia and the Levant collapsed, while states such as the Middle Assyrian Empire in Mesopotamia and the New Kingdom of Egypt survived but were considerably weakened. Conversely, some peoples such as the Phoenicians enjoyed increased autonomy and power with the waning military presence of Egypt and Assyria in the Levant.
    ellauri171.html on line 1102: When Tamar reached puberty her half-brother Amnon, David’s eldest son, developed an unnatural obsession with his young half-sister. He watched her, he waited in places where she passed, he could not get enough of her presence, and above all he wanted to possess her.
    ellauri171.html on line 1112: But Amnon was not used to being refused something he wanted. He must have discussed his obsession with a friend of his, a clever cousin called Jonadab, because this young man came up with a plan. They would lure Tamar into Amnon’s room on the pretext that her half-brother was ill, and once they were alone there Amnon could have what he wanted. Bedrooms in ancient mansions were designed to receive guests/visitors.
    ellauri171.html on line 1127: Tamar was struggling for her life, not just her virginity. If she was no longer a virgin no-one would want her, no-one would marry her, even though she was the king’s daughter. But her pleading had no effect on Amnon. He was too strong for her, and he got in and raped her, in fact repeatedly.
    ellauri171.html on line 1132: To cast her out now, a violated woman, was worse than raping her, since it meant the crime continued. She could never marry or have children, never have a normal life. As far as the people around her were concerned, she would be a used object, unwanted, an outcast. Raping is not bad as such if you provide child support.
    ellauri172.html on line 347: Beide Väter waren gastverwandt, Isät oli koulukavereita,
    ellauri172.html on line 373: Tritt, mit weißem Schleier und Gewand, Kun valkoisessa sievässä yöpaidassa
    ellauri180.html on line 51: In the books, Elena was popular, selfish and a "mean girl". However, the show's producers, Julie Plec and Kevin Williamson, felt that it wasn't the direction they wanted to go with their heroine in The Young Adult Vampire Diaries television series. Instead, she became a nicer, relatable, and more of "the girl next door" type, until her life gets flipped upside down when she meets the Salvatore Brothers. Stefan Salvatore is a good-hearted and affectionate young adult vampire and the complete opposite of his older brother, Damon Salvatore. Stefan's malevolent young adult vampire brother is mostly thought of as selfish and manipulative, but later on begins to display a more caring side.
    ellauri180.html on line 53: Executive producers Julie Plec and Kevin Williamson agreed that in the book series, Elena was turned into a vampire too early, which was around page 200 of The Awakening. Elena's transition into a vampire was planned for two years. Plec said: "That felt obviously too soon, and rushed, and we didn’t want to make a show about a teenage girl who instantly becomes a vampire. But we always knew that her journey would take her there eventually". At the second season's conclusion, Elena was nearly turned into a vampire. Dobrev was happy that she wasn't, because she felt "it would have been like she came too soon", and also didn't think it was something Elena or she wanted.
    ellauri180.html on line 55: Elena has received mainly positive reviews. Steve West of the Cinema Blend compared the story of The Young Adult Vampire Diaries and the character of Elena to the 10 years older popular vampire franchise, Twilight, and its protagonist Bella Swan. West said "Clearly Elena is way hotter than Bella, she has two immortal young adult vampires fighting over her". (Täähän on jo moneen kertaan nähty: chick litissä tytöllä pitää ollä väh. 2 kosijaa, ei se muuten ole mistään kotoisin.) After the vampire episodes, Elena established her own medical practice, specialising in blood diseases.
    ellauri180.html on line 123: This journal will help you envision your ideal life and then identify the unconscious attachments that are preventing you from living it. Through a series of writing prompts and exercises as well as some of Brianna’s favorite quotes, most popular articles, and new passages, it will help you sort through the conflicting thoughts, feelings, and fears that are preventing you from becoming the person you want and need to be. You do not need more motivation or drive to start building the life of your dreams. You need to better understand who you are, why you keep re-creating comfortable pain patterns, and why you may not really want what is it you think you do.
    ellauri180.html on line 266: Why I only want to write slice of life?
    ellauri180.html on line 276: If you ever wanna see your progress, go read the painfully early stuff you wrote.
    ellauri180.html on line 467: GAL-TAN, arvot ja poliittinen suuntaus, arvot laahaten sukupolven tai 2 politiikkaa jäljessä. Rikkaat ja köyhät konservatiivit oikeistossa, nälkäiset wannabet ja kylläiset ex-radikaalit vasemmalla, laskukkaat ja nousukkaat. Kaikki toimii kuin junan vessa.
    ellauri180.html on line 479: Did wander darkling in the eternal space, Pimeinä harhasivat ikuista avaruutta,
    ellauri180.html on line 580: Those that survived here represented those that survive in sin, off of pain, and with an attitude of “making it” at all costs. Instead of coming together to find a new way to live like naked mole-rats, they only want to return to the past.
    ellauri180.html on line 611: Suomi on ottanut käyttöön kovat otteet. Putinin näköispazas on saanut lähtöpassit Visulahden vahakabinetista. Mielenosoittajat laulavat Finlandiaa lähetystön edessä. Kesäxi suunnitellaan isoja laulujuhlia samasta aiheesta. Ottawan sopimuxen vastaisia liukumiinoja kaivetaan kellarista. Koko kansa kannattaa Nato-optiota. Jonsei se siitä tokene niin on jo ihme.
    ellauri181.html on line 577: When he completed his list of the virtues to which he aspired, Franklin wrote a brief sentence describing each of the virtues and what it meant to him. He did not want there to be any confusion about what each of these words meant. His definitions of his virtues then looked like this.....
    ellauri182.html on line 149: Se oli pikkuporvarillisesta venernveistämösuvusta Kiushulta jotka muutti Tokioon. Sillä oli yxityisopettaja ennen sotaa ja se alkoi kirjoitella runoja. Se rupes marxilaisexi jouduttuaan käsitöihin sodan aikana. Sodan jälkeen valmistui insinöörixi ja pääsi ison firman elätixi varmaan perhesuhteilla. Voitti runokilpailun 10 työllä asennon vaihdosta. Sai potkut mustetehtaasta. Kiritisoi jotain Takamies Kotaroa. (who dat?) 80-luvulla kirjoitti massoista kuin Ortega. Toimi könsikkäänä naistenlehdessä. Varsinainen pintaliitäjä. Marxistikaverit pilkkaavat sen kapitalistiasuja. No se oli jo kääntymässä takas oikeaan. Siitä tuli Ichirō Ozawan kannattaja (who dat? Joku vielä väkkärämpi oikeistolainen takinkääntäjä, Japanin Hjallis Hjarkimo.) Siziitä tuli zenhörhö ja jonkun sariini terroristiryhmittymän fani.
    ellauri182.html on line 231: Muita polttavimpia kysymyxiä: Can you feel the love tonight? Can you geet pregnant on your period? Can one get pregnant from precum? Can dogs eat cucumber? Why is my poop green? Why should we hire you? Why are cats afraid of precumber? Why did I get married? How to tie a tie? How to lose weight? How to get away with murder? Where is my refund? Where is my mind? Which Disney princess are you? Which side is your appendix on? Who wants to be a millionaire? Who won the powerball?
    ellauri182.html on line 423: All well and good, but I would like to suggest a very different lesson that can be learned. If you want to actively participate then grab a pencil, an eraser and a clean sheet of paper.
    ellauri184.html on line 50: Neiti Mallory kertoo tästä lisää: "Norman was an oxymoron — an overweight senior citizen who was one of the best lovers I ever had." Mallory writes that Mailer never had erectile dysfunction: "Not once. Not in nine years..." Vanhasta Naahumista tulee mieleen Norssin voimistelunopettaja Lahtinen ja Star Warsin Yoda. “Each week he’d want to play a new game . . . doctor, manicurist, masseur, Hollywood director (that was his favorite).” “When our relationship ended, I realized that . . . Norman had never been on my team and had been slandering my writing and me behind my back.”
    ellauri184.html on line 60: Morales moved in with Mailer during 1951 into an apartment on First Avenue near Second Street in the East Village, and they married in 1954. They had two daughters, Danielle and Elizabeth. After attending a party on Saturday, November 19, 1960, Mailer stabbed Adele twice with a two-and-a-half inch blade that he used to clean his nails, nearly killing her by puncturing her pericardium. He stabbed her once in the chest and once in the back. Adele required emergency surgery but made a quick recovery. Mailer claimed he had stabbed Adele "to relieve her of cancer". He was involuntarily committed to Bellevue Hospital for 17 days. While Adele did not press charges, saying she wanted to protect their daughters, Mailer later pleaded guilty to a reduced charge of assault saying, "I feel I did a lousy, dirty, cowardly thing", and received a suspended sentence of three years' probation. In 1962, the two divorced. In 1997, Adele published a memoir of their marriage entitled The Last Party, which recounted her husband stabbing her at a party and the aftermath. This incident has been a focal point for feminist critics of Mailer, who point to themes of sexual violence in his work.
    ellauri184.html on line 92: Critical response to Mailer's Jesus novel was mixed. Jack Miles, writing for Commonweal, found the book "a quiet, sweet, almost wan little book, a kindly offering from a New York Jew to his wife's Bible Belt family." He noted that there was "something undeniably impressive about the restraint" of the style that Mailer undertook in composing the novel. He concluded that the novel was neither one of Mailer's best works, nor would it stand out amongst the bibliography of books inspired by the life of Christ, but that it had received unfairly harsh reviews from other critics.
    ellauri184.html on line 528: Classical, Hellenistic, and Roman culture found circumcision to be cruel and repulsive. In the Roman Empire, circumcision was regarded as a barbaric and disgusting custom. The consul Titus Flavius Clemens was condemned to death by the Roman Senate in 95 CE for, according to the Talmud, circumcising himself and converting to Judaism. The Emperor Hadrian (117–138) forbade circumcision. Overall, the rite of circumcision was especially execrable in Classical civilization, also because it was the custom to spend an hour a day or so exercising nude in the gymnasium and in Roman baths, therefore Jewish men did not want to be seen in public deprived of their foreskins.
    ellauri184.html on line 649: Jesus was not merely a prophet. Due to his wanderings and teachings, he was also a radical itinerant charismatic preacher who represented a decidedly anti-hegemonial world view. His speeches were seen by the Jewish establishment as an incitement of the people.
    ellauri184.html on line 655: The Romans regarded him as a political dissident, or an insurgent – which the word lestes/latro appropriately captured – via the claim that he was King of the Jews, a claim that he never denied. Jesus’s hobo life testified to his calling as a prophet and radical wandering charismatic who constantly transgressed social boundaries. These multi-faceted processes of marginalization that Jesus partly took on voluntarily and partly endured led – in the brutal logic of the time – to his crucifixion as an outsider.
    ellauri184.html on line 773: Jose Saramago is an atheist. This should be enough warning for everyone that desires to read the book. It is very explicit and so religion it’s exposed at its weakest and God as a character is revealed. I come from a Roman-Catholic background but I still wanted to read it, ever since the Gnostic gospel where Jesus childhood is revealed and he changes from a mischievous badly behaved kid to the Jesus from the new testament I wanted to see Saramago’s take on it. Saramago is such a master of words that he makes every bit of faith look totally illogical.
    ellauri185.html on line 367: At the age of seven, he wanted to be a monk, and prayed fervently that his parents, who had by then lost their faith, should return to it.
    ellauri185.html on line 396: While atheists Richard Dawkins and Victor J. Stenger have criticised Davies' public stance on science and religion, others, including the John Templeton Foundation, have praised his work. The John Templeton Foundation is a philanthropic organization that reflects the ideas of its founder, John Templeton, who became wealthy via a career as a contrarian investor, and wanted to support progress in religious and spiritual knowledge, especially at the intersection of religion and science.
    ellauri185.html on line 863: The irony in Bellow’s soul was that he craved love and experience, and learned to view people coldly and clinically. The writer Amos Oz recalled most vividly from his friendship with Bellow an exchange that they shared privately about death. “I said I was hoping to die in my sleep, but Saul responded by saying that, on the contrary, he would like to die wide awake and fully conscious, because his death is such a crucial experience he wouldn’t want to miss it.”
    ellauri188.html on line 311: In the 1840s Britain and France considered sponsoring continued independence of the Republic of Texas and blocking U.S. moves to obtain California. Balance of power considerations made Britain want to keep the western territories out of U.S. hands to limit U.S. power; in the end, France opposed such intervention in order to limit British power, the same reason for which France had sold Louisiana to the U.S. and earlier supported the American Revolution. Thus the great majority of the territorial growth of the continental United States was accepted without question by Paris.
    ellauri189.html on line 167: 'If you want to save your soul from hell, you're ridin on that range

    ellauri189.html on line 196: (The sun had already walked along his wide curve and tinged the grey clouds with a crimson glow; with a yellow light quivering over earth and water, he burnt, setting, on his rich throne. Already his look, full of wonder, does not blind, but spreads mild, visible rays and, taking a short farewell, before burying himself in the deep, he allows mortal eyes to look at him; still – during this last moment he does not hastily disappear, [for he wants] to nourish all creatures with a smile of life; still he glances through the windows in
    ellauri189.html on line 542: I believe that you can make an extra income and secure your family’s financial future by using the amazing opportunities of the internet. I am talking about Affiliate Marketing. It is the business that many successful online entrepreneurs have used to reach their financial security. It is the method I use. I want to help you build a sustainable and successful business, built on a solid foundation. A business you can count on regardless of the economy, your age or your job.
    ellauri189.html on line 726: The fact is that some Pashtun tribes have a tradition of being the people of Israel (Bene Israel), meaning they descended from our father Yaakov. It is even told that the Afghan king once asked the Afghan Jews from which tribe they are, when they answered they don’t know the king said that the Pashtuns do, and that the king is from the tribe of Benyamin. In particular, I heard myself from Pashtuns from the tribes of Lewani, Benyamin, Afridi, Shinwari and more, that their grandfathers told them they are Bene Israel, and it is well known that this tradition is spread through most (or all) of the Pashtuns tribes.
    ellauri189.html on line 771: Other evidence includes names of places in Afghanistan and Kashmir that resemble ancient towns in Israel that are mentioned in the bible. And some say that until not so long ago, one of the names of the Amu Darya (River Oxus) was Gozan, which is mentioned as one of the placed the damn Assyrians exiled the people of Israel to. There are also the names of tribes that resemble the children of Yaakov (the names of the Israeli tribes), like Lewani (Lewi), Daftali (Naftali), Yusufzai (children of Yussuf-Yossef), Rubanni (Reuven), Afridi (Efrayim) etc. Also parts of the Pashtunwali resemble some parts of the Torah.
    ellauri189.html on line 773: Some Pashtuns also have Jewish artifacts. For example, I heard first hand from a Lewani Pashtun that his grandmother had these jewelries: Afghan Taaweez or lockets to be worn around the neck, with Israeli star on them.
    ellauri189.html on line 813: Well, as a Jew who prayed for and dreamt of meeting the other (non Jews) Bene Israel, I am extremely excited. If you are a Pashtun and you don’t want to admit being an Israeli, I think you are not being rational.
    ellauri189.html on line 815: First, being Israelis is a source of pride. It means you are the children of Prophet Yaakov. It means you were the first to believe in the one and only God, more that 1500 years before the Arabs. Your ancestors prayed to the one and only God while the Arabs were complete pagans, bowing to all sorts of idols who don’t have power over anything. It is also very likely that other prophets are your forefathers. For example, it is very likely you are descendants of Prophet Moses himself if you are Lewani. Your great great… great grandfather might have been Moses’ best student – prophet Yehoshua if you are Afridi, etc. Your ancestors saw with their eyes what God did to Egypt – stuff that no other nation but the Egyptians themselves have witnessed. They heard God talking to them on Mount Sinai, etc.
    ellauri189.html on line 835: Second, if a non-Israeli marries an Israeli woman, they are not really married according to Halacha (Jewish law), but if he is Israeli from the 10 tribes, then they are really married and she must get divorced according to Halacha if she wants to marry an Israeli. On this topic, the Talmud says in Yevamot 16: “If a non-Jew married an Israeli woman according to Halacha, we are concerned that they might actually be married, because he might be from the 10 tribes”. The Talmud then asks: “But when someone is in front of us and we don’t know who he is, we assume he came from the majority of people, and the majority of people are not from the 10 tribes, so we shouldn’t be concerned”. The Talmud then says that this is only true in their land – the land where the 10 tribes live, because over there they are the majority. So the Talmud believes that the 10 tribes are still the majority in their land. If they had mixed this would not have been the case, unless there was only a little mixing going on.
    ellauri190.html on line 55: The Kazakhs likely began using that name during the 15th century. There are many theories on the origin of the word Kazakh or Qazaq. Some speculate that it comes from the Turkic verb qaz ("wanderer, vagabond, warrior, free, independent") or that it derives from the Proto-Turkic word *khasaq (a wheeled cart used by the Kazakhs to transport their yurts and belongings).
    ellauri190.html on line 63: The Ukrainian term Cossack probably comes from the same Kipchak etymological root: wanderer, brigand, independent free-booter.
    ellauri190.html on line 257: In a traditional account the horses transporting the icon had stopped near Vladimir and refused to go further. Accordingly, many people of Rus interpreted this as a sign that the Theotokos wanted the icon to stay there. The place was named Bogolyubovo, or "the one loved by God". Andrey placed it in his Bogolyubovo residence and built the Assumption Cathedral to legitimize his claim that Vladimir had replaced Kiev as the principal city of Rus. However, its presence did not prevent the sack and burning of the city of Vladimir by the Mongols in 1238, when the icon was damaged in the fire. You win some, you lose some.
    ellauri190.html on line 267: In the 15th-16th centuries, most of what is now Ukraine belonged to the Polish-Lithuanian commonwealth (“The Republic”), but the life of the people depended to a very large extent on their local feudal lords, the Knyazi (“Princes”). Most of these lords were related to the house of Gedimin, spoke a language close to modern Belarusian and Ukrainian, and were Eastern Orthodox Christians. Yet, beginning from ~1569 (the year of the so-called Lublin Unia), these princes also swore allegiance to the Polish king, and were his vassals and courtiers. They corresponded in Latin, Polish, or their native “Old Ukrainian / Old Belarusian” Slavic language. Among them, perhaps the mightiest ruler was Prince Konstayntyn Vasyl Ostrozky. He was nicknamed “the un-crowned King of Rus,” and was, actually, offered the Polish crown several times, but refused because the kings of Poland were, traditionally, Catholics – and Prince Ostrozky wanted to remain Orthodox. He is famous for printing the first Gospels in his native language, and founding the Academy of Ostroh, a university that functions to this day.
    ellauri190.html on line 271: Also, during the 16th century, many thousands of random men, mostly young, robust, and adventure-seeking guys from all over Ukraine (compare today's immigrants), traveled to the lower Dnipro river, where the enormous rapids prevented the movement of battleships up from the Black Sea, and decided to call themselves, say, Kozaks. These Kozaks warriors wanted to defend the Orthodox Christian Ukrainian lands from the attacks of the Ottoman Turks. They founded their own city and fortress, called Sich, on the island of Khortytsya in the middle of the Dnipro river. There, they gathered in summertime, trained, and raided the steppes, fighting the Turkish and the Tatar troops from the Crimea. They also built ships and made sea raids on Istanbul and on Crimean seaports, freeing Christian captives whom the Turks and the Tatars enslaved. In winter, the Kozaks dispersed and lived close to the Dnipro banks as independent owners of their hamlets. At the beginning of the 17th century, the Kozaks became a formidable military force and a kind of a self-governing state with their own elected leaders and laws.
    ellauri192.html on line 263: THE trouble, of course, is that the actual record of choices made by the Swedish Academy for the Nobel Prize in Literature has been capricious and, in too many cases, insulting to critical intelligence. Given the fact that no literary ranking can be either proved or falsified objectively; given the inevitable time lag of taste and renown behind the radical, private advance of genius; errors, oversight, delays in recognition until they guys were dead were unavoidable from the outset. But even when every allowance is made, the record of ''the bounty of Sweden'' (Yeats's candid phrase when he received the Nobel in 1923) is a poor one.
    ellauri192.html on line 311: The Polish government, Tokarczuk told PEN Transmissions, “wants to control and define history, to rewrite the memory about our past, obliterating any dark sides.”
    ellauri192.html on line 463: Ian McEwan 100/1
    ellauri192.html on line 861: In the Soviet Union in 1927, a former Marshal of Nobility, Ippolit Matveyevich "Kisa" Vorobyaninov, works as the registrar of marriages and deaths in a sleepy provincial town. His mother-in-law reveals on her deathbed that her family jewry was hidden from the Bolsheviks in one of the twelve chairs from the family’s dining room set. Those chairs, along with all other personal property, were taken away by the Communists after the Russian Revolution. Vorobyaninov wants to find the treasure. The “smooth operator” and con-man Ostap Bender forces Kisa to become his partner, as they set out to find the chairs. Bender's street smarts and charm are invaluable to the reticent Kisa, and Bender comes to dominate the enterprise. Father Fyodor (who had known of the treasure from the confession of Vorobyaninov's mother-in-law), their obsessed rival in the hunt for the treasure, follows a bad lead, runs out of money, ends up trapped on a mountain-top, and loses his sanitary pad. Ostap remains unflappable, and his mastery of human nature eliminates all obstacles, but Vorobyaninov steadily deteriorates.
    ellauri194.html on line 289: Some post-Cold War millenarians still identify Gog with Russia, but they now tend to stress its allies among Islamic nations, especially Iran. For the most fervent, the countdown to Armageddon began with the return of the Jews to Israel, followed quickly by further signs pointing to the nearness of the final battle – nuclear weapons, European integration, Israel's reunification of Jerusalem in the Six Day War in 1967, and America's wars in Afghanistan and the Persian Gulf. According to an unconfirmed report, US President George W. Bush, in the prelude to the 2003 Invasion of Iraq, told French President Jacques Chirac, "Gog and Magog are at work in the Middle East." Bush is said to have continued, "This confrontation is willed by God, who wants to use this conflict to erase His people's enemies before a new age begins." Officials from the Bush Administration claim there is no record of this conversation and that making such references, "doesn't sound at all like Bush", and French officials on the call have similarly claimed to have not heard any such remarks.
    ellauri194.html on line 317: Even identical genital acts mean very different things to different people. Sexuality makes up a large share of the self-perceived identity of some people, a small share of others. Some people like to have a lot of sex, others little or none. Many people have their richest mental/emotional involvement with sexual acts that they don't do, or even don't want to do.
    ellauri194.html on line 485: I'd like to know myself, because despite the fact that I founded the only worldwide organization for game developers, helped put the Game Developers’ Conference (25,000 attendees annually) on its feet, worked on Madden NFL for six years for Electronic Arts, and wrote an introductory textbook on game design that has been translated into several languages, some anonymous random at Wikipedia has decided that I'm not “notable” enough because he personally has never heard of me, and wants to delete my page. Basically, you have to kiss the ass of the insiders if you don't want your content to be deleted. It's an oligarchy of the ignorant.
    ellauri196.html on line 201: It is a girl; a disappointment for me, as I want to admit between us, because I had greatly desired a son and will not stop doing so. [...] I feel a son is much more full of poetry [poesievoller], more like a sequel and restart for myself under new circumstances.
    ellauri196.html on line 226: The stars are not wanted now: put out every one; Tähtiä ei nyt kaivata, sammuttakaa ne;
    ellauri196.html on line 243: Children who did not specially want it to happen, skating Lapsia jotka eivät oikeastaan halunneet tulla,
    ellauri196.html on line 934: Im Metzger Lexikon Literatur is die Unterscheidung von pornografischer und erotischer Literatur nett beschrieben. Während erstere „durch die gleichermaßen produktive wie rezeptive Wirkungsabsicht , sexuell zu erregen bzw. erregt zu werden“ gekennzeichnet ist (lies: unmittelbares wanken), beschreibt die erotische Literatur eine „im weiteren Sinn Sammelbez. für alle denkbaren Arten von fiktionaler Lit., die Liebe oder Sexualität zum Gegenstand haben.“
    ellauri197.html on line 108: In the final lines of the poem, the speaker reveals that even in his old age he’s “full of tears”. Things did not go as he wanted them to. The transition into the present tense informs the reader that the impact of this failed relationship (which he knows failed because of him) is long-lasting.
    ellauri197.html on line 321: Overall in ‘How Happy I Was If I Could Forget’, the lack of clear details about what has happened to affect the narrator so, in addition to the confusion of verb tenses, subjects, and figurative language, creates an unclear work that perfectly depicts how unclear the narrator herself feels about her memory. Does she hate it? Does she want to keep it? Was it good? Was it bad? She does not seem to know, just as the reader cannot know the memory’s most vivid details.
    ellauri197.html on line 526: Rap music men's use of the "gold digger script" is one of a few prevalent sexual scripts that is directed at young African-American women. It dates back to the old blues men like B.B.King. I gave you nine chillun an' now you want to give them back!
    ellauri197.html on line 622: Karuhko tää meidän loppusuora: kapitalismin selkävoitto, ilmastokatastrofi, mikromuovi, kiihtyneiden apinoiden kuhiseva kenno, kaiken muun elollisen luonnon joukkosukupuutto, kansainvaellus, pandemia, sota Euroopassa, josta kaikki vaan ilostelevat wannabe länkkäreinä reikäraudat tanassa. Mixei Ruozin poliisi ammu muslimeita kovilla, kysyy nuori nainen, kristitty.
    ellauri197.html on line 649: By the age of 12, Browning had written a book of poetry, which he later destroyed for want of a publisher. After attending one or two private schools and showing an insuperable dislike of school life, he was educated at home by a tutor, using the resources of his father's library. By 14 he was fluent in French, Greek, Italian and Latin. He became an admirer of the Romantic poets, especially Shelley, whom he followed in becoming an atheist and a vegetarian (and a bisexual). At 16, he studied Greek at University College London, but left after his first year. His parents' evangelical faith prevented his studying at either Oxford or Cambridge University, both then open only to members of the Church of England. He had inherited substantial musical ability through his mother, and composed arrangements of various songs. He refused a formal career and ignored his parents' remonstrations by dedicating himself to poetry. He stayed at home until the age of 34, financially dependent on his family until his marriage. His father sponsored the publication of his son's poems. Varsinainen vanhapiika, neiti-ihminen.
    ellauri198.html on line 116: Amerikka oli ällö paikka jo kun oltiin nuaaria. A great place for hamburgers but who'd wanna live there. Sarjasta True Detective tulee ilkeitä 80-luvun takautumia. Eise ollutkaan kuvattu Arkansoossa vaan Luisiaanassa. Häirizeviä matkijalintuja karkotettiin kotipesiltä haukkojen ja pöllöjen avulla, ei sentään kaadettu kannanhoidon nimissä kuin Audubonin lintuja tai työläisiä Republican Steelin pihalla.
    ellauri198.html on line 125: Warren kuului agraarikkojen ryhmään, jota johti John Crowe Ransom. Warren began as an enlightened conservative Southerner. Siis kumpana? Valistuxen vaiko taantumuxen peikkona? Agrarians, with Ransom in the lead, were determined to re-endow nature with an element of horror and inscrutability and to bring back a God who permitted evil as well as good—in short, to give God back his thunder.” His main question was ‘How is one to look at life?’ Taas 1 tollanen yearning-man, wannabe uskovainen joka kaipaa jämäkämpää jumalaa joka jakaa merkityxiä kuin hihamerkkejä.
    ellauri198.html on line 262: You never bought no Saigon trim while you was over there? Guess I'm a romantic. I'm a feminist. They want to sell me a piece of ass, they got the right. Shit. You're gonna pay for it one way or another. You see yourself getting married, Purple? No, sir. I'm not a big enough asshole to put a woman and children through that. Hey. Don't. Shh. Dick!
    ellauri198.html on line 384: For, what with my whole world-wide wandering, Exyiltyäni iänkaiken siellä täällä,
    ellauri198.html on line 645: Roland's band had dissolved and gone on to solo careers. Cuthbert was cut up for "one night's disgrace," and Giles "by being hanged and declared a traitor by his fans." All Roland wants is to join back the band, whatever the cost.
    ellauri198.html on line 693: In 1838, he visited Italy looking for background for Sordello, a long poem in heroic couplets, presented as the imaginary biography of the Mantuan bard spoken of by Dante in the Divine Comedy, canto 6 of Purgatory, set against a background of hate and conflict during the Guelph-Ghibelline wars. This was published in 1840 and met with widespread derision, gaining him the reputation of wanton carelessness and obscurity. Tennyson commented that he only understood the first and last lines and Carlyle wrote that his wife had read the poem through and could not tell whether Sordello was a man, a city or a book. Ai tän mä taisinkin jo kertoa albumissa 54.
    ellauri198.html on line 745: Mitä potaskaa. Siltä tuntui Bloomista, ei käy kieltäminen sitä. Meaning has wandered already, se sanoo pettyneenä jenkkiläiseen maallisuuteen ja rahankuvan palvontaan. Eikö kukaan enää piittaa runoista, kriitikoista puhumattakaan? Pelkkää nihilismiä, jonka parhaiten on luonnostellut Nietzsche.
    ellauri198.html on line 833: From these sessions Yeats formulated theories about life and history. He believed that certain patterns existed, the most important being what he called gyres, interpenetrating cones representing mixtures of opposites of both a personal and historical nature. He contended that gyres were initiated by the divine impregnation of a mortal woman—first, the rape of Leda by Zeus; later, the conception of Mary by the same immaculate swan. As Lewis Carroll had prophecied:
    ellauri198.html on line 853: He faced death with a courage that was founded partly on his vague hope for reincarnation. In his proud moods he could speak in the stern voice of his famous epitaph, written within six months of his death, which concludes his poem “Under Ben Bulben”: “Cast a cold eye / On life, on death. / Horseman, pass by!” But the bold sureness of those lines is complicated by the terror-stricken cry that “distracts my thought” at the end of another late poem, “The Man and the Echo,” and also by the poignantly frivolous lust for life in the last lines of “Politics,” the poem that he wanted to close Last Poems: “But O that I were young again / And held them in my arms.”
    ellauri198.html on line 855: Yeats deplored the tremendous enthusiasm among younger poets for Eliot’s The Waste Land, published in 1922. Disdaining Eliot’s flat rhythms and cold, dry mood, Yeats wanted all art to be full of energy and sex.
    ellauri203.html on line 135: Fyodor Michailovich had such type of personality that everyone enjoyed. He was robbed unmercifully, though due to his kindness and trust, but he wouldn’t want to get into details or rebuke servants that used his carelessness. Fyodor Mikhailovich was a man of limitless kindness. Dostoevsky was especially interested in children and paid attention to cases of child abuse that he heard about. He followed closely the trials of parents accused of child abuse.
    ellauri203.html on line 217: Dostoevsky was the only 19th-century Russian writer to be sentenced to hard labor, spending four years in a Siberian camp. As fortune – or misfortune – would have it, when the exhausted novelist was finally released, he encountered the writer Maria Isaeva. The relationship was complicated from the very outset: when they met, Isaeva was married with a young son, and Dostoevsky was forced to wait until her husband passed away before he could publically offer her his wand.
    ellauri203.html on line 223: Dostoevsky met the young Appolinaria Suslova during one of his public readings. At 42, he was two decades older than her. She was attractive, alluring and shared his literary taste and physical passion. Despite this, he could not give her everything she wanted; as Dostoevsky was still married, he conducted a secret affair with Suslova, but she took other lovers and left him. She returned two years later, but was not the same inexperienced young woman and refused to marry the great writer.
    ellauri203.html on line 242: Writing in the Los Angeles Times, a professor of Slavic languages praised their Dostoevsky translations, stating "the reason they have succeeded so well in bringing Dostoevsky into English is not just that they have made him sound bumpy or unnatural but that they have managed to capture and differentiate the characters' many bumpy and unnatural voices." A literary critic and essayist, wrote in The Sewanee Review that their Dostoevsky translations "have recaptured the rough and vulgar edge of Dostoevsky's style. This tone of the vulgar that Dostoevsky's writings are full of, so morbidly excessively, they have translated into a vernacular equal to his own." But recently, writing in The New York Review of Books in 2016, a critic argued that Pevear and Volokhonsky have established an industry of taking everything they can get their hands on written in Russian and putting it into flat, awkward English. Other translators have voiced similar criticism, both in Russia and in the English-speaking world. A Slavic studies scholar has written in Commentary that Pevear and Volokhonsky take glorious works and reduce them to awkward and unsightly muddles. Criticism has been focused on the excessive literalness of the couple's translations and the perception that they miss the original tone of the authors.
    ellauri203.html on line 339: Only a white-haired old man, who would be a prophet Vain mä valkotukkainen nobelisti, wannabe profeetta,
    ellauri203.html on line 461: the great poet's ironic genius would want to paint a newer type, the
    ellauri204.html on line 56: Nun trug es sich einmal zu, daß die goldene Kugel der Königstochter nicht in ihr Händchen fiel, das sie in die Höhe gehalten hatte, sondern vorbei auf die Erde schlug und geradezu ins Wasser hineinrollte. Die Königstochter folgte ihr mit den Augen nach, aber die Kugel verschwand, und der Brunnen war tief, so tief, daß man keinen Grund sah. Da fing sie an zu weinen und weinte immer lauter und konnte sich gar nicht trösten. Und wie sie so klagte, rief ihr jemand zu: "Was hast du vor, Königstochter, du schreist ja, daß sich ein Stein erbarmen möchte." Sie sah sich um, woher die Stimme käme, da erblickte sie einen Frosch, der seinen dicken, häßlichen Kopf aus dem Wasser streckte. "Ach, du bist's, alter Wasserpatscher," sagte sie, "ich weine über meine goldene Kugel, die mir in den Brunnen hinabgefallen ist." - "Sei still und weine nicht," antwortete der Frosch, "ich kann wohl Rat schaffen, aber was gibst du mir, wenn ich dein Spielwerk wieder heraufhole?" - "Was du haben willst, lieber Frosch," sagte sie; "meine Kleider, meine Perlen und Edelsteine, auch noch die goldene Krone, die ich trage." Der Frosch antwortete: "Deine Kleider, deine Perlen und Edelsteine und deine goldene Krone, die mag ich nicht: aber wenn du mich liebhaben willst, und ich soll dein Geselle und Spielkamerad sein, an deinem Tischlein neben dir sitzen, von deinem goldenen Tellerlein essen, aus deinem Becherlein trinken, in deinem Bettlein schlafen: wenn du mir das versprichst, so will ich hinuntersteigen und dir die goldene Kugel wieder heraufholen." - "Ach ja," sagte sie, "ich verspreche dir alles, was du willst, wenn du mir nur die Kugel wieder bringst." Sie dachte aber: Was der einfältige Frosch schwätzt! Der sitzt im Wasser bei seinesgleichen und quakt und kann keines Menschen Geselle sein.
    ellauri204.html on line 72: Als er aber herabfiel, war er kein Frosch, sondern ein Königssohn mit schönen und freundlichen Augen. Der war nun nach ihres Vaters Willen ihr lieber Geselle und Gemahl. Da erzählte er ihr, er wäre von einer bösen Hexe verwünscht worden, und niemand hätte ihn aus dem Brunnen erlösen können als sie allein, und morgen wollten sie zusammen in sein Reich gehen. Dann schliefen sie ein, und am andern Morgen, als die Sonne sie aufweckte, kam ein Wagen herangefahren, mit acht weißen Pferden bespannt, die hatten weiße Straußfedern auf dem Kopf und gingen in goldenen Ketten, und hinten stand der Diener des jungen Königs, das war der treue Heinrich. Der treue Heinrich hatte sich so betrübt, als sein Herr war in einen Frosch verwandelt worden, daß er drei eiserne Bande hatte um sein Herz legen lassen, damit es ihm nicht vor Weh und Traurigkeit zerspränge. Der Wagen aber sollte den jungen König in sein Reich abholen; der treue Heinrich hob beide hinein, stellte sich wieder hinten auf und war voller Freude über die Erlösung.
    ellauri204.html on line 342: “So saying, Argeiphontes gave me the herb, drawing it from the ground, and showed me its nature. At the root it was black, but its flower was like milk. [305] Moly the gods call it, and it is hard for mortal men to dig; but with the gods all things are possible. Hermes then departed to high Olympus through the wooded isle, and I went my way to the house of Circe, and many things did my heart darkly ponder as I went. [310] So I stood at the gates of the fair-tressed goddess. There I stood and called, and the goddess heard my voice. Straightway then she came forth, and opened the bright doors, and bade me in; and I went with her, my heart sore troubled. She brought me in and made me sit on a silver-studded chair, [315] a beautiful chair, richly wrought, and beneath was a foot-stool for the feet. And she prepared me a potion in a golden cup, that I might drink, and put therein a drug, with evil purpose in her heart. But when she had given it me, and I had drunk it off, yet was not bewitched, she smote me with her wand, and spoke, and addressed me: [320] ‘Begone now to the sty, and lie with the rest of thy comrades.’ “So she spoke, but I, drawing my sharp sword from between my thighs, rushed upon Circe, as though I would slay her. But she, with a loud cry, ran beneath, and clasped my knees, and with wailing she spoke to me winged words: [325] “‘Who art thou among men, and from whence? Where is thy city, and where thy parents? Amazement holds me that thou hast drunk this charm and wast in no wise bewitched. For no man else soever hath withstood this charm, when once he has drunk it, and it has passed the barrier of his teeth. Nay, but the mind in thy breast is one not to be beguiled. [330] Surely thou art Odysseus, the man of ready device, who Argeiphontes of the golden wand ever said to me would come hither on his way home from Troy with his swift, black ship. Nay, come, put up thy sword in this here sheath, and let us two then go up into my bed, that couched together [335] in love we may put trust in each other.’ “So she spoke, but I answered her, and said:‘Circe, how canst thou bid me be gentle to thee, who hast turned my comrades into swine in thy halls, and now keepest me here, and with guileful purpose biddest me [340] go to thy chamber, and go up into thy bed, that when thou hast me stripped thou mayest render me a weakling and unmanned? Nay, verily, it is not I that shall be fain to go up into thy bed, unless thou, goddess, wilt consent to swear a mighty oath that thou wilt not plot against me any fresh mischief to my hurt.’
    ellauri204.html on line 346: So much for Circe. Back to Bly. He found many men were unable to carry this out, so fixed were they on the idea of not hurting anyone. These were men who had come of age during the Vietnam war, and they wanted nothing to do with a manhood which seemed to require erection.
    ellauri206.html on line 65: Its having become, by the mid-twentieth century, an important element in Anglo-Saxon narratological theory, according to dramatist and author Arthur E. Krows, the American dramatist Mark Swan told Krows about the playwriting motto "Show – not tell" on an occasion during the 1910s. In 1921, the same distinction, but in the form picture-versus-drama, was utilized in a chapter of Percy Lubbock's analysis of fiction, The Craft of Fiction. In 1927, Swan published a playwriting manual that made prominent use of the showing-versus-telling distinction throughout.
    ellauri206.html on line 67: Tschekhov ei varmaan kazonut telkkaria, tokko kävi edes leffassa. Talutti vaan pikkurouvan koiraa Jaltalla. Anglosaxittuja esimerkkejä Wikipediassa tästä tekniikasta ovat Mark Swan (n.h.), Percy Lubbock (n.h.), Ernest Hemingway (yecch), Chuck Palahniuk (n.h.), James Scott Bell (n.h.), Orson Scott Card (n.h.) Yves Lavandier (n.h.) Olipas omituinen luettelo!
    ellauri206.html on line 116: But who wants to give a handout to a man who badmouths his donors so brashly? Schucks, let him rant, the best-selling brand today is fear.
    ellauri206.html on line 211: Riku ei pysty aikuistumaan edes kirveellä. Siitä on noloa olla eno, se on kuin pukeutuisi porokuvioiseen neuletakkiin. When the Prophet sallallaahu `alayhi wa sallam (may Allah exalt his mention) was asked: “Which sin is the greatest?” He sallallaahu `alayhi wa sallam (may Allah exalt his mention) said: “To set up rivals for Allah, your Creator.” It is said: ‘Thereafter?’ He sallallaahu `alayhi wa sallam (may Allah exalt his mention) answered: “To kill your children for fear of eating with you (i.e. fear of want). It is said: ‘Then, which is next?’ The Prophet sallallaahu `alayhi wa sallam (may Allah exalt his mention) said: “To have sex with your neighbor's wife.”
    ellauri206.html on line 466: Miki Liukkonen on omien sanojensa mukaan tosi älykäs, mutta henkisesti silti vielä vasta neljä ja puoli vuotias, vaikka näyttää nyttemmin kolmikymppiseltä narkkarilta homolta. Helppo uskoa. Yleisö oli pyöristynyt että se meni kihloihin jonkun wannabe julkkisnaisen kaa.
    ellauri207.html on line 182: Catherine Zeta-Jones was born on 25 September 1969 in Swansea, Wales, to David Jones, the owner of a sweet factory, and his wife Patricia (née Fair), a seamstress. Her father is Welsh and her mother is of Irish Catholic descent. She was named after her grandmother, Zeta Jones (whose name was derived from the name of a ship that her great-grandfather once sailed on), because 'Just Jones' would not cut the cheese in showbiz. Zeta-Jones was raised in the suburban area of Mumbles.Her struggle with depression and bipolar II disorder has been well documented by the media, for she is married to sex addicted actor Michael Douglas, son of Kirk, whose name used to be Issur Danielovitch Demsky. Michael is 25 years her senior but a wizard with cunnilingus.
    ellauri210.html on line 381: In the summer of 1914, Cravan began another phase of wandering. In 1916, he found himself in Barcelona where he somehow managed to book himself a high-profile fight against Jack Johnson. Johnson was in the midst of a celebrated stay in Spain, during which he was received by royalty and starred in movies. Photographs from the fight give some idea of the scale of the event, which was held at Barcelona’s huge bullfighting arena La Monumental. What the photos don’t convey is what a mismatch the fight was. Even a ring-rusty, thirty-eight-year-old Johnson was leagues ahead of Cravan. Johnson won with a sixth-round knockout, though it could’ve been over much sooner had he wished it. There are reports that Cravan shook with fear before the contest began, knowing how out of his depth he was. One writer has suggested that “Johnson and Cravan were more collaborators than competitors,” and that the event was a con, just a hype-fueled payday for an aging legend and a flamboyant interloper with no credible chance of a win—the Mayweather-McGregor of its day. Olikos tää se mazi josta toinen nyrkkipelle Heminwau kirjoitti siinä sonniromaanissa?
    ellauri210.html on line 497: Sein künstlerisches Werk verrät in dieser Zeit einigen Einfluss von Stefan George. Van Hoddis wurde Ende dieses Jahres „wegen Unfleißes“ von der Universität zwangsexmatrikuliert.
    ellauri210.html on line 499: 1912 ging van Hoddis nach München und wandte sich dort verstärkt dem Katholizismus zu. Hier machte sich erstmals eine beginnende Psychose deutlicher bemerkbar.
    ellauri210.html on line 507: Wegen zunehmender Konflikte mit seiner Familie zog er sich Anfang September selbst in die Kuranstalt in Wolbeck bei Münster zurück, die er Mitte Oktober aber „fluchtartig“ verließ, um nach Berlin zurückzukehren. Hier wurde er derart auffällig, dass er Ende Oktober in die Heilanstalt „Waldhaus“ in Nikolassee bei Berlin verbracht werden musste, so dass sich Erwin Loewenson an einen langjährigen Freund von Kurt Hiller, den Psychiater Arthur Kronfeld in Heidelberg, mit der Bitte um Unterstützung wandte. Unter dem Titel Gewaltsam ins Irrenhaus war diese Zwangseinweisung Anlass für ein Medienecho – zu einer Zeit allerdings, als van Hoddis schon aus der Anstalt „entwichen“ war. Außerdem studierte er noch die griechische Mythologie und deren Fabelstrukturen. Jedoch hörte er vor dem Ausbruch seiner Krankheit im Herbst 1914 völlig mit der Nutzung der mythologischen Terminologie auf.
    ellauri210.html on line 578: Ab 1904 war Kurt Hiller mit dem ebenfalls literarisch engagierten Medizinstudenten Arthur Kronfeld befreundet, über den er das Denken des Göttinger Philosophen Leonard Nelson kennenlernte. Über Kronfeld trat deswegen im Juli 1908 Magnus Hirschfeld an ihn heran. Es entstand ein Kontakt, der in den folgenden fünfundzwanzig Jahren ein intensives Engagement Hillers im Wissenschaftlich-humanitären Komitee (WhK) zur Folge hatte. Auch dem Institut für Sexualwissenschaft war Hiller aktiv verbunden.
    ellauri210.html on line 749: Jacques Pierre Vaché, né à L'Orient le 7 septembre 1895 et mort à 23 ans à Nantes le 6 janvier 1919, etait un wannabe écrivain et dessinateur français. Il n'a laissé pour toute œuvre qu'une série de lettres, quelques textes et quelques dessins. Le ton de son œuvre est volontairement provocateur, pacifiste voire anti-militariste, haine des bourgeois, des conventions et de l'armée. Quatre jeunes hommes faisaient paraître une revue ayant pour titre En route mauvaise troupe, en hommage à Paul Verlaine. Varmaan hinureita kaikki.
    ellauri210.html on line 784: Ja vielä 1 Tanguy: Tanguy is a 2001 French black comedy by Étienne Chatiliez. When he was a newborn baby, Edith Guetz thoughtlessly told her son Tanguy : "If you want to, you can stay at home forever". 28 years later, the over-educated university teacher of Asian languages and womanizer leads a successful and wealthy life... while still living in his parents' home. Father Paul Guetz longs to see his son finally leave the nest, a desire that his wife shares. Edith finally agrees and the pair unite to make Tanguy's life at home miserable. However, they don't know that Tanguy isn't the type of guy who easily gives up. The word Tanguy became the usual term to designate an adult still living with his parents.
    ellauri210.html on line 831: The word “Dada” brings to mind an international range of extreme modernist antics. The book’s title is something of a publicist’s misnomer. Jacques Rigaut is the only confirmed suicide among the group, and while Jacques Vache did die of a drug overdose, many, including author Michel Leiris, claimed that his death was accidental, characterized as deliberate by those aiming to enhance Vache’s cultural cache. Arthur Cravan and Julian Torma simply disappeared, wandering into, rather than jumping towards, the cracks of avant-garde history. Of the four only Rigaut is genuinely obsessed with themes of self-destruction.
    ellauri210.html on line 841: On November 6, 1929, he returned to a clinic where he was staying and — according to Andre Breton — “after paying minute attention to his toilette, and carrying out all the necessary external adjustments demanded of such a departure” — calmly put a bullet through his heart. Not his head like Richard Cory, who had everything a man could want: power, grace and style.
    ellauri210.html on line 1126: want-to-be-an-insect-1960.jpg!PinterestSmall.jpg" height="400px" />
    ellauri211.html on line 295:

    Totta puhuen ei tämä tekohämmentyneenä hymyilevä persepääkään ole ihan eilisen teeren poika kuvalehtien keskiaukeamaärvönä. Kun hän kihlasi tunnetun valokuvamallin, vasta Njuu Jorkista maahan laskeutuneen bisnesenkelinsä, heidän yhteinen taipaleensa alkoi ei vähempää kuin Ilta-Sanomissa ja Hymy lehdessä! ja heidän suuret häänsä huomattavassa Hämeenkyrossä nousivat Seuran ja Annan etusivuille! Turha häntä on tyrkkiä lavatähden paasipojaksi! Siitä äkämystyneenä hämäläinen Ranu alkoi ize pyytää roskalehdiltä haastatteluja lupaa kysymättä savvoo viäntävältä Katrilta. Ranu myhäili salaperäisenä ja näppi ize izestään belfieitä. Tiesihän sen etukäteen ettei siitä mitään tullut, olivat ihan eri kaliiperia, toinen kestojulkkis toinen wannabe. Hui kuinka Ranu onkin vastenmielinen. Se kuzuu äxäänsä vuoroin laulajaxi vuoroin lavatähdexi. Izeään se tituleeraa kyrvänpää-expertixi. Potkut saaneen peesarin voimatonta kiukkua. Tampereen oikeistosiiven Aamulehdessä, jossa perusporvarillinen Ranu on vakisenttaaja, sekä huomattavassa Hämeenkyrön Sanomissa saa peesarikin palstamillimetrejä. Mahtavan tonniston narsisti! Iltalehden Aila Seppalän puffi on Ranusta "puhtaasti ja kauniisti kirjoitettu." "Katse ja kädenpuristus kertovat paljon. Pana Rajalan terse on rehevä ja lämmin, mahanalusote avoin, utelias ja leikkisä, miehen suoro Sentun pöydän alla vahvistaa ennakkotuntemuksen: Pan on Katrinansa ansainnut." Vizi mitä tuubaa! Jutussa käydään mallikkaasti läpi miehen työhistoria, hänen kirjoittamansa Sillanpään elämäkerta odottaa vielä kolmatta ja huipentavaa osaansa, hänen näytelmäsovituxkistaan on äsken nähty Elämä ja aurink Molojunkaterina, Pyynikille on tulossa Ale ellers on työn alla nuskailtavana Tamge Temerin historian toinen osa. Dosent pissii hunajaa ja tunnustelee töröhampaisen TV-lasisen Aila Meriluodon mahanalusta. Markku Envallilta meni pari vuotta uuden onnen aforisointiin. Kiireinen jokapaikan dosentti aikoo selvitä nopeammin. Ranun izetunto on horjahteleva. Ilmi narsisti! Kazeet kääntyivät Hämeenkyrössä kun Ranu tuli ostamaan Seura-lehteä. Katrin vanhemmat haisee kaskisavulta ja Bertta mummi on riuskasti hymyilevä murretta pulppuava kansannainen. Hizi Ranu kopioi naistenlehtityyliä. Oven avaa Taisto Tammen mummo, hymyilevä rouva Hagert. Ranu lukee Seura-lehdestä rakastaako hän oikeasti Katria. Onko Katrin maalaisporukat sille riittävästi hienoja? Vinoiliko vääräleuka Wexi Koistinen sille salamielisesti jotenkin? Panu antaa ymmärtää että tyhmä Katri on Ranuun aivan lääpällään, Ranu miettii vielä ostopäätöstä. Höh, avattu pakkaus on ostopäätös.
    ellauri213.html on line 230: Things we want to do – like hobbies, seeing friends or special occasions – so not just the things we might not want to do like housework or homework.
    ellauri213.html on line 294: The girls didn't know much about the event beforehand, but Amelia was most excited about sleeping with the Big Top, Meghan couldn't wait to learn some tricks, while Abigail, Darcey and Ellie were looking forward to trying out some new adventurous group activities. We then enjoyed a very funny magic show, sucking our own magic wands and balloon creatures. Darcey and Aayla said they 'liked playing fun games with the Rainbows on the inflatables' which we did next.
    ellauri213.html on line 329:

    TWA flight 741 was one of three planes successfully hijacked by the Popular Front for the Liberation of Palestine that day — the hijacking of an El Al plane was foiled by the onboard sky marshals. At the time, I was a 14-year old foreskinned kid living in Trenton, New Jersey, whose only care was how the Baltimore Orioles were doing. This event changed my life, as well as the lives of the other 350 people who were on those planes. Mostly for the better, we became instant celebrities.

    Imagine the horror and disgust that I, my family and other hijack victims experienced when we read that Leila Khaled, one of the hijackers directly involved in the 1970 attacks, had been invited by San Francisco State University to address a forum on Gender, Justice and Resistance. Ms. Khaled is a convicted terrorist. She has paid her debt to society. She is a member of the PFLP. She is a symbol not of justice and resistance, but of wanton terrorism and death. Khaled spent only a few days in jail. After her failed hijacking of the El Al plane, she was transferred by the Israeli sky marshals to the British police and released in exchange for hostages when a fifth plane was hijacked to secure her freedom.
    ellauri213.html on line 375: The settlement of modern-day Kaliningrad was founded in 1255 on the site of the ancient Old Prussian settlement Twangste by the Teutonic Knights during the Northern Crusades, and was named Königsberg in honor of King Ottokar II of Bohemia. A Baltic port city, it successively became the capital of the State of the Teutonic Order, the Duchy of Prussia (1525–1701) and East Prussia. Königsberg remained the coronation city of the Prussian monarchy, though the capital was moved to Berlin in 1701. From 1454 to 1455 the city under the name of Królewiec belonged to the Kingdom of Poland, and from 1466 to 1657 it was a Polish fief.
    ellauri213.html on line 434: Seuraavassa on listattuna pahoja naisia rikkomuxineen (kuvissa söpöset alleviivattu): Irma Grese (Naziwächterin), Myra Hindley (serial pedocide), Isabela of Castile (born in the year 1451 and died in 1504, Isabella the Catholic, was queen of Castile and León. She and her husband, Ferdinand II of Aragon, brought stability to the kingdoms that became the basis for the unification of Spain. Isabella and Ferdinand are known for completing the Reconquista, ordering conversion or exile of their Muslim and Jewish subjects and financing Christopher Columbus’ 1492 voyage that led to the opening of the “New World”. Isabella was granted the title Servant of God by the Catholic Church in 1974), Beverly Allitt (pedocide, Angel of Death), Queen Mary of England (catholic), Belle Gunness (norwegian-american serial killer), Mary Ann Cotton (serial killer), Ilse Koch (Lagerfrau), Katherine Knight (very bad Aussie), Elizabeth Bathory (hungarian noblewoman and serial killer), Sandra Avila Beltran (drugs), Patty Hearst (hänen isoisänsä oli lehtikeisari William Randolph Hearst. Hiän joutui kidnappauksen uhriksi, mutta pian tämän jälkeen hiän teki pankkiryöstön ja joutui vankilaan), Genene Jones (infanticide nurse), Karla Homolka (Canadian serial killer), Diane Downs (infanticide), Aileen Wuornos (serial killer), Griselda Blanco (drug lady), Lizzie Borden (kirvesmurhaaja), Bonnie Parker (bank robber), Anne Bonny (pirate), Mary Bell (pedocide), Delphine LaLaurie (serial slavekiller), Patricia Krenwinkel (Manson family member), Leslie van Houten (Manson family member), Darlie Routier (infanticide), Susan Smith (infanticide), Susan Atkins (Manson family member), Ching Shih (pirate), Anna Sorokin Delvey (con woman), Amelia Dyer (serial killer), Assata Shakur (black terrorist), Belle Gunness (serial killer), Gypsy Rose Blanchard (matricide), Pamela Smart (mariticide), Ruth Ellis (nightclub hostess, last woman hanged in UK), Phoolan Devi (bandit), Ma Barker (matriarch), Jennifer Pan (parenticide), Virginia Hill (gangster), Karla Faye Tucker (burglar, first woman injected in US), Leonarda Cianciully (serial murderer, soapmaker), Mary Read, Carill Ann Fugate (murder spree), Grace Marks (maid), Belle Starr (outlaw, friend of Lucky Luke), Zerelda Mimms (Mrs. Jesse James), Jane Toppan (serial killer), Sara Jane Moore (wannabe assassin of Gerald Ford), Martha Beck (serial killer), Doris Payne (jewel thief), Mary Brunner (Manson family member), Barbara Graham (executed by gas), Grace O'Malley (pirate), Sada Abe (jealous geisha. When they asked why she had killed Ishida, “Immediately she became excited and her eyes sparkled in a strange way: ‘I loved him so much, I wanted him all to myself. But since we were not husband and wife, as long as he lived he could be embraced by other women. I knew that if I killed him no other woman could ever touch him again, so I killed him…..’ ), Samantha Lewthwaite (white somali terrorist), Theresa Knorr (murderess), Lynette Fromme (Manson family, wannabe assassin of Gerald Ford), The Freeway Phantom (serial killer), Carol M. Bundy (serial killer), Fanny Kaplan (bolshevik revolutionary), Marguerite Alibert (Ed VII courtesan), Jean Harris (author), Linda Hazzard (physician, serial killer), Mary Jane Kelly (1st victim of Jack the Ripper), Kim Hyon-hui (North-Korean spy), Vera Renczi (serial killer), Clare Bronfman (filthy rich criminal), Kirsten Gilbert (serial killer nurse), Gerda Steinhoff (Lagerwächterin), Linda Carty (baby robber), Estella Marie Thompson (black prostitute, blowjobbed Hugh Grant), Elizabeth Becker (Lagerwächterin), Juana Barraza (asesina en serie), Olivera Circovic (baseball player, writer, jewel thief), Olga Hepnarova (mental serial killer), Sabina Eriksson (knäpp tvilling), Minnie Dean (serial killer), Madame de Brinvilliers (aristocrat parri- and fratricide), Martha Rendell (familicide, last woman hanged in Western Australia), Violet Gibson (wannabe assassin of Mussolini), Idoia López Riaño (terrorist), Styllou Christofi (murdered her daughter in law), Mary Eastley (convicted of witchcraft), Wanda Klaff (Lagerwächterin), Giulia Tofana (avvelenatrice), Tisiphone (1/3 raivottaresta), Jean Lee (murderer for money), Brigitte Mohnhaupt (RAF terrorist), Marcia (mistress of Commodus), Beate Zschäpe (far-right terrorist), Evelyn Frechette (singer, Dillingerin heila), Francoise Dior (naziaktivisti), Linda Mulhall (nirhasi äidin poikaystävän saxilla), Brigit Hogefeld (RAF terrorist), Martha Corey (Salem witchhunt victim), Marie Lafarge (arsenikkimurha), Debra Lafave (teacher, gave blow job to student), Enriqueta Marti (asasina en serie), Alse Young (witch hanging victim), Elizabeth Michael (actress, involuntary manslaughter: nasty boyfriend hit his head and died while beating her), Susannah Martin (witchcraft), Maria Mandl (Gefängnisoffizerin), Mary Frith (pickpocket and fence), Hanadi Jaradat (suicide bomber), Marie-Josephte Carrivau (mariticide), Gudrun Ensslin (RAF founder), Anna Anderson (vale-Anastasia), Ans van Dijk (jutku nazikollaboraattori), Elizabeth Holmes (bisneshuijari), Ghislaine Maxwell (Epsteinin haahka), Julianna Farrait (drugs), Yolanda Saldivar (embezzler, killer), Jodi Arias (convicted killer Jodi Ann Arias was born on July 9, 1980, in Salinas, California. In the summer of 2008, Arias made national headlines when she was charged with murdering her ex-boyfriend Travis Alexander, a 30-year-old member of the Church of Jesus Christ of Latter Day Saints who was working as a motivational speaker and insurance salesman. Aargh. Justifiable homicide.) Alyssa Bustamante (kid murder), Mary Kay Letourneau (kid abuser), Mirtha Young (drugs), Catherine Nevin (mariticide), Pilar Prades (maid), Irmgard Möller (terrorist), Christine Schürrer (krimi), Reem Riyashi (suicide bomber), Amy Fisher (jealous), Wafa Idris (suicide bomber), Jeanne de Clisson (ex-noblewoman), Christine Papin (maid murderer), Sally McNeil (body builder), Mariette Bosch (murderer), Sandra Ávila Beltrán (drugs), Alice Schwarzer (journalist), Andrea Yates (litter murderer), Mimi Wong (bar hostess), Pauline Nyiramasuhuko (criminal politician), Josefa Segovia (murderer), Martha Needle (serial killer), Antonina Makarova (war criminal), Mary Surratt (criminal businessperson), Dorothea Binz (officer), Leona Helmsley (tax evasion), Angela Rayola (reality tv personality), Léa Papin (maid murderer), Ursula Erikssson (kriminell mördare), Maria Petrovna (spree killer), Aafia Siddiqui (criminal), Fatima Bernawi (palestinian militant), La Voisin (fortune teller), Deniz Seki (singer), Rasmea Odeh (Arab activist), Hildegard Lächert (nurse), Sajida al-Rishawi (suicide bomber), Hayat Boumeddiene (ISIS groupie, nähty viimexi Al Holissa), Herta Ehlert (Lagerwächterin), Elizabeth Stride (seriös mördare), Adelheid Schulz (krimi), Jenny-Wanda Barkman (Wächter), Shi Jianqiao (pardoned assassin. The assassination of Sun Chuanfang was ethically justified as an act of filial piety and turned into a political symbol of the legitimate vengeance against the Japanese invaders.), Rosemary West (serial killer), Juana Bormann (Lagerwächterin), Kathy Boudin (criminal), Kate Webster (assassin), Teresa Lewis (murderer), Hermine Braunsteiner (Lagerwächterin), Flor Contemplacion (assassina), Constance Kent (fratricide), Tamara Samsonova (serial killer), Herta Bothe (Lagerwächterin), Maria Gruber (Mörderin), Irene Leidolf (möderin), Waltraud Wagner (Mörderin), Elaine Campione (criminelle), Greta Bösel (Pflegerin), Marie Manning (Mörderin), Darya Nikolayevna Saltykova (sadist), Nora Parham (executed), Maria Barbella (assassina), Linda Wenzel (ISIS activist), Anna Marie Hahn (Mörderin), Suzane von Richthofen (parenticide), Charlotte Mulhall (murderer), Khioniya Guseva (kriminal), Daisy de Melker (serial killer nurse), Stephanija Meyer (Mörderin), Sinedu Tadesse (murderer), Ayat al-Akhras (suicide bomber), Akosita Lavulavu (minister of infrastructure and tourism), Sabrina de Sousa (criminal diplomat), Sally Basset (poisoner), Emma Zimmer (Aufseher), Mary Clement (serial killer), Irina Gaidamachuk (serial killer), Dagmar Overbye (serialmorder), Gesche Gottfried (Mörderin), Frances Knorr (serial killer), Beate Schmidt (Serienmörderin), Elizabeth Clarke (accused victim of witchcraft), Kim Sun-ja (serial killer), Olga Konstantinovana Briscorn (serial killer), Roxana Baldetti (politico), Rizana Nafeek (house maid), Margaret Scott (accused of witchcraft), Jacqueline Sauvage (meurtrier), Veronique Courjault (tueur en série), Barbara Erni (thief), Hilde Lesewitz (Schutzstaffel Wächterin), Thenmoli Rajaratnam (suicide bomber), etc. etc..
    ellauri214.html on line 41: So, yes, the cynicism is something that is completely accepted socially in Russia and really disgusts me. They think everybody is corrupt and cynical, including westerners, and on top of that, they are unbelievably lazy. I did not want my kids to grow up to be like that. So I moved to the West. Im a fund manager. Managing funds is fun, but dont expect two långa fikapauser per dag, with no shop talk allowed, like the Swedes.
    ellauri214.html on line 72: Though Rowling’s transphobia has been publicized the most, fans have also begun to notice prejudice in her writing. Very few people of color are featured in J. K. Rowling’s books, and those that are have few lines and no detailed story arcs. One of the people of color given more thought was Cho Chang, Harry Potter’s love interest who was first introduced in the third book, Harry Potter and the Prisoner of Azkaban. Rowling’s racism toward Asians and lack of knowledge of Asian culture is clearly evident from just the name Cho Chang, which is a mix of Korean and Chinese surnames. Korea and China have a longstanding history as political adversaries and each country has a distinct culture. While Rowling went to great efforts in creating a wonderfully immersive wizarding world, she gave no thought to what Cho’s ethnicity is. Cho was also sorted into Ravenclaw house, the school house for those of high intelligence, playing into a common stereotype of Asians. The only other Asian characters mentioned in the series are Indian twins Padma and Pavarti Patil. While Rowling appears to have given more thought to these characters, placing Padma in Ravenclaw and breaking the Asian stereotype by placing Pavarti in Gryffindor, she ultimately fails to adequately write Asian characters. While Pavarti, as a member of Harry Potter’s house, was given more depth than Cho or her sister, many South Asian fans were irritated by the girls’ dresses in the fourth movie, Harry Potter and the Goblet of Fire. The twins wore dull and unflattering traditional Indian attire, which many saw as a mockery of Indian culture. Cho herself wore an East Asian style dress in this movie which was a mix of different Asian styles. Rowling continued her habit of stereotyping Asians in the Fantastic Beast Movies, the first of which was released in 2016 and set in the 1920’s, several decades before the Harry Potter series. In this pre-series, the only Asian representation is displayed in the form of a woman who has been cursed to turn into a beast. Fans may remember the villain Voldemort’s pet snake, Nagini, who served him throughout the Harry Potter series. Fans were surprised to learn when watching The Crimes of Grindelwald, the second movie in the Fantastic Beasts series, that Nagini was not always a snake, but was actually a woman who had been cursed to turn into a snake. In the movie, Nagini, in human form, is caged and forced to perform in a circus. Though we do not know how Nagini came to meet Voldemort, we do know that she became his servant and the keeper of a wee snakelike portion of his soul. This is more than slightly problematic. Not only was Nagini the only Asian representation in the film, but she was also a half-human who was forced to serve an evil white man for a great part of her existence. Author Ellen Oh commented on Nagini’s inclusion in the film saying “I feel like this is the problem when white people want to diversify and don’t actually ask POC how to do so. They don’t make the connection between making Nagini an Asian woman who later on becomes the pet snake of an EEVIL whitish man.”
    ellauri214.html on line 193: I might talk about what I want to do, I might have one talent (usually drawing), but I was never shown to actively working towards my dream.
    ellauri214.html on line 554: “I opened a history that was taboo from a number of perspectives: it was swept under the carpet by Catholics, Jews and communists. It took me eight years to research such fragile and contentious facts,” she says, “But after I won the Nike Jogging Shoe Award [Poland’s most prestigious literary prize], I was attacked by people who didn’t want to know about Poland’s dark past.” She sighs.
    ellauri217.html on line 171: Tarina Koraaniin kuuluneista "saatanallisista säkeistä" tuli kuuluisaksi Salman Rushdien samannimisen romaanin myötä vuonna 1988, kun ajatollah Khomeini langetti kirjan johdosta Rushdielle tappofatwan. Tämä johtui siitä, että Salman arvosteli mumslimeita voimakkaasti oman jumalansa palvonnasta, josta he eivät halunneet luopua.
    ellauri217.html on line 292: Der faule Heinz der die ebenso faule Trine heiratete ist eins der langweiligsten Märchen Grimms. Die Heinzelmännchen waren der Sage nach Kölner Hausgeister. Sie verrichteten nachts, wenn die Bürger schliefen, deren Arbeit. Nachdem sie dabei jedoch einmal beobachtet wurden, verschwanden sie für immer. Neben ihrer geringen Größe zeigen auch typische Attribute, wie die Zipfelmütze und ihr Fleiß, dass die Heinzelmännchen zur Gruppe der Kobolde, Wichtel und Zwerge gehören.
    ellauri217.html on line 361: Gdanskilaisella wannabe psykologilla ja ent. kauneusterapistilla Karolinalla on kasvantaviärä suu. Se pitää palstaa narsismista, ilmeisesti omien kokemusten nojalla. Isoluinen täti kuten se yxi mun saxalainen väittelijä jonka nimikin on jo unohtunut. Ms. Höge, sese oli. Monika. Kun täti menee torille on näky komea. Hizi on munkin elämä ollut aika omalaatuinen. Örhänge on korvamato.
    ellauri217.html on line 496: Saapui Gdanskiin Gdanska Stocznia Remontowan telakalle uudistettavaksi. Alukseen rakennettiin mm. uusi keula, ilman keulaporttia sekä peräsponsorit.
    ellauri219.html on line 304: “But I’m not putting him down. He was a wonderful actor and we were good friends – although we became better friends when we finished shooting. He really wanted to feel that he was in control, though actually it was me who was his boss." Tony oli Roogeria 2v vanhempi. Rooger eli 5v vanhemmaxi.
    ellauri219.html on line 633: Notorious womanizer Michael James wants to be faithful to his fiancée Carole Werner, but every woman he meets seems to fall in love with him, including neurotic exotic dancer Liz Bien and parachutist Rita, who accidentally lands in his car. His psychoanalyst, Dr. Rainer Fassbinder, cannot help, since he is stalking patient Renée Lefebvre, who in turn longs for Michael. Carole, meanwhile, decides to make Michael jealous by flirting with his nervous wreck of a friend, Victor Shakapopulis. Victor struggles to be romantic but Carole nevertheless feigns interest.
    ellauri219.html on line 639: Meanwhile Carole's plan seems to work and Michael asks to marry her. She agrees and they settle on marrying within the week. She moves in but Michael finds fidelity impossible. When a second "fiancee" arrives, she knows the worst. Simultaneously, a woman parachutes into Michael's open-top sports car and he ends up sleeping with her, also meeting other conquests at the bar. This takes place at a small country hotel, where all parties materialise in the format of a typical French farce. Some are checked in, but most just appear. This includes Carole's parents who wander the corridors, causing Michael to jump from room to room. A rumour has also started locally that an orgy is taking place so side characters such as the petrol station attendant also start to appear. Carole appears and wishes to see Michael's room. As they speak, all the other participants chase each other around in the background. Fassbinder's wife tracks him down.
    ellauri219.html on line 813: But the States, prodded on by its own exceptionalist rhetoric, said they were different. That they were making the world Safe For Democracy. That they desired Liberty for All. And when the US acted as any imperial power must, and did some (well, a lot of) grubby things, there were a lot of outsiders who wanted to believe—and who felt betrayed. And they’ve held the kind of grudge against America and its optimistic, American Dream mass culture, that they did not hold against previous imperial powers. Aw, who am I kidding, of course they did.
    ellauri219.html on line 822: Because he knew that this venture was not the Safe for Democracy mission that Wilson had in mind, and that stuck in his craw. It stuck in his craw, because he too wanted to believe that America had been making the world Safe for Democracy. But we loyally sent our troops in anyway, under the banner of the Treaty of Westphalia, not Wilson’s Fourteen Points.
    ellauri220.html on line 91: The wolf, the snake, the hog, not wanting in me,
    ellauri220.html on line 94: The cheating look, the frivolous word, the adulterous wish, not wanting,
    ellauri220.html on line 95: Refusals, hates, postponements, meanness, laziness, none of these wanting,
    ellauri220.html on line 454: Adlai oli sanalla sanoen väpelö. Kuuban invaasio sujui Kennedyltä vielä huonommin kuin Putinilta vähävenäläisten demilitarisaatio. Taiwan, kiinalaisten Puerto Rico muuttui maailmansodan jälkeen niiden Kuubaxi. Turkista poistetut ydinpommit tuotiin neukkuvallan kaaduttua sinne NATOn voimin takaisin.
    ellauri220.html on line 519: This refers to casting practice, and in the case of Trope Codifier Peter Stormare it has even achieved the status of Casting Gag. It refers to "international" or "ethnic" - at any rate not American or British - actors who are considered to somehow look or be able to act so vaguely but conspicuously foreign that they can be used for any nationality. (Cliff Curtis is a maori.) It´s As Long as It Sounds Foreign and Gratuitous Foreign Language applied to casting. However, But Not Too Foreign is often in effect because you´ll want someone who speaks good English (even though intentionally accented) and rather panders to viewers´ expectations than give an accurate portrayal of a specific ethnic identity which also means that the character´s background might be very vague as long as it´s foreign.
    ellauri221.html on line 329: Mutta juuri kun James oli ryhtymässä tositoimiin kaatui tonni vessakalkkia wannabe muhinoizijoiden päälle.Se etu oli vyörystä eze vei mennessään muhinoizijoiden kalsarit.
    ellauri221.html on line 374: And the papers want to know whose turtleneck you wear
    ellauri222.html on line 76: The irony in Bellow’s soul was that he craved love and experience, and learned to view people coldly and clinically. The writer Amos Oz recalled most vividly from his friendship with Bellow an exchange that they shared privately about death. “I said I was hoping to die in my sleep, but Saul responded by saying that, on the contrary, he would like to die wide awake and fully conscious, because his death is such a crucial experience he wouldn’t want to miss it.”
    ellauri222.html on line 115: The subject of “Augie March” is the same as the subject of “Dangling Man” and “The Victim”: the danger of becoming trapped in other people’s definition of you. In the case of “Augie March,” the person in danger of being trapped was Saul Bellow. “This was not what being a novelist was supposed to have meant”: he is referring to the expectations of his intellectual backers. He realized that he didn’t want to be the great hope of the novel or to give voice to a generation’s angst. He wanted to write up the life he knew in the way James Joyce had written up the life he knew, and to transform it into a fantastic verbal artifact, a book that broke all the rules.
    ellauri222.html on line 135: At Bard, Bellow became close friends with a literature professor named Jack Ludwig. As Leader describes him, Ludwig was an oversized personality, a big man, extravagant, a shameless purveyor of bad Yiddish, and an operator. Ludwig idolized Bellow; people who knew them said that Ludwig wanted to be Bellow. He flattered Bellow, went for long walks with him, started up a literary journal with him, and generally insinuated himself into Bellow’s life. Bellow accepted the proffer of adulatory attentiveness. The couples (Ludwig was married) socialized together. This was the period when Bellow wrote “Seize the Day,” which Partisan Review published in a single issue, in 1956, after The New Yorker turned it down, and “Henderson the Rain King,” published in 1959, a novel whose hero was based on a neighbor of the Bellows in upstate New York.
    ellauri222.html on line 151: “Herzog” was nevertheless received the way all Bellow’s novels had been received: as a report on the modern condition. Many of the critics who reviewed it—Irving Howe, Philip Rahv, Stanley Edgar Hyman, Richard Ellmann, Richard Poirier—knew Bellow personally and knew all about the divorce. (Poirier was an old friend of Ludwig’s; the review he published, in Partisan Review, was a hatchet job.) None of these reviewers mentioned the autobiographical basis of the book, and several of them warned against reading it autobiographically, without ever explaining why anyone might want to. The world had no way of knowing that the story was not completely made up.
    ellauri222.html on line 163: One reason for reading biographies of writers like Bellow, who draw from people in their own lives, is to learn what those people were really like, or at least what they were like to someone who is not Bellow. You often can’t do that with Leader’s biography. Leader also wants to assess Bellow’s accomplishment as a novelist. He has to keep three balls in the air at once: the biographical story, an interpretation of the fiction as autobiography, and a consideration of the fiction as fiction. That’s why his book is so long.
    ellauri222.html on line 225: Jänisrouva sanoi jälkikäteen: He did not want to hurt the people he loved. (Lucky they were so few of them. At 17, he said he hated himself more than melodrama or even spinach.) There wasn't a single part of my being that wasn't able to open up to him (Yeah, I bet). Jänis Bellow was born in Canada. Bellow was one of her professors. She came from a small place, but not too small for Saul to enter. He wasn't exactly tall, but he had this broad upper body, these giant arms, like a sloth."
    ellauri222.html on line 325: The foremost theme in The Adventures of Augie March is the search for identity. Unsure of what he wants from life, Augie is pulled along into the schemes of friends and strangers, trying on different identities and learning about the world through jobs ranging from union organizer to eagle trainer to book thief. His path seems random, but as Augie notes, quoting the Greek philosopher Heraclitus, “a man’s character is his fate.” As Augie goes through life, knocking on various doors, these doors of fate open up for him as if by random, but the knocks are unquestionably his own. In the end of the novel, Augie defines his identity as a “Columbus of those near-at-hand,” whose purpose in life is to knock some eggs. Augie notes that “various jobs” are the Rosetta stone, or key, to his entire life. Americans define themselves by their work (having no roots, family or land to stick to), and Augie is a sort of vagabond, trying on different identities as he goes along. Unwilling to limit himself by specializing in any one area, Augie drifts from job to job. He becomes a handbill-distributor, a paperboy, a Woolworth’s stocker, a newsstand clerk, a trinket-seller, a Christmas helper at a department store, a flower delivery boy, a butler, a clerk at fine department stores, a paint salesman, a dog groomer, a book thief, a coal yard worker, a housing inspector, a union organizer, an eagle-trainer, a gambler, a literary researcher, a business machine salesman, a merchant marine, and ultimately an importer-exporter working in wartime Europe. Augie’s job changing is emblematic of the social mobility that is so quintessentially American. Augie is the American Everyman, continually reinventing himself, like Donald Duck. Olemme kaikki oman onnemme Akuja, joopa joo. Yrmf, olet tainnut mainita. You are telling me!
    ellauri222.html on line 373: Caligula is the bald eagle adopted by Thea and Augie. Thea wants to train him to catch large iguanas, but the eagle is not aggressive enough.
    ellauri222.html on line 393: Arthur Einhorn is William Einhorn’s son who is in college at the University of Illinois in Champaign. An intellectual who studies poetry and wants to write scholarly books, he falls in love with Mimi. His relationship with his father is strained after Arthur has a baby and then divorces his wife, leaving the child to be raised by his parents.
    ellauri222.html on line 413: Thea, the elder of the two Fenchel sisters, is a glorious-looking girl with kinky black hair and a passionate spirit. She falls in love with Augie at a mineral spring resort, but Augie is in love with her sister, Esther. Thea later comes to find Augie in Chicago, and the two move to Mexico together. Thea, whose name is Greek for “goddess,” is an eccentric woman with wild ideas; she wants to hunt with an eagle and catch poisonous snakes. In the end she finds Augie too ordinary for her. After they part ways, she marries an Air Force captain.
    ellauri222.html on line 521: Augie, the hero of the novel, is a Jewish-American boy coming of age in Depression-era Chicago. Since their father abandoned the family, Augie and his two brothers are raised by their slow-witted mother and surrogate “Grandma” Lausch. Augie, good-looking with “tall hair” and green-gray eyes, is a soft-hearted young man whose sympathy for others often gets him into trouble. He holds a variety of jobs throughout his life and learns from different people he encounters. People tend to “adopt” Augie and try to groom him into the person they want him to be, but he really wants to become his own person. The name Augie is short for “August,” which means “Great.” Augie has a desire for greatness, but he has no idea of how to do it, thinking it beyond his ability to “breathe the pointy, star-furnished air at its highest difficulty.” He goes along through life repeating the same mistakes. In the end, Augie realizes that his life has been a voyage of discovery. Whether or not he has been a success, he doesn’t know, but he will continue with unquenchable optimism and hope, “forever rising up.”
    ellauri222.html on line 597: A miserly millionaire with a stuttering problem, Robey is working on a book he calls The Needle’s Eye, an investigation into the nature and source of happiness. He hires Augie as a research assistant. As Augie listens to Robey discuss his book idea, he finds that the man makes sense only part of the time. He realizes that Robey is a “crank” who only wants someone to be an ear for his half-baked ideas.
    ellauri222.html on line 653: Mimi Villars is a beautiful, tough-talking blonde from Los Angeles who lives next door to Augie in the student boarding house and becomes a close friend of Augie. Mimi has bohemian ideas and aspires to marry an intellectual. When she becomes pregnant with an unwanted child by her boyfriend Frazer, Augie takes her to an abortionist. Mimi later falls in love with Arthur Einhorn. Mimi’s name recalls the tragic heroine of the Puccini opera La Bohème.
    ellauri222.html on line 671: In a 1943 issue of The American Scholar, Marston wrote: "Not even girls want to be girls so long as our feminine archetype lacks force, strength, and power. Not wanting to be girls, they don't want to be tender, submissive, peace-loving as good women are. Women's strong qualities have become despised because of their weakness. The obvious remedy is to create a feminine character with all the strength of Superman plus all the allure of a good and beautiful woman."
    ellauri222.html on line 729: This grooming of the self paradoxically requires looking out for number 1. Nowhere is this fact more vividly portrayed than in Henderson the Rain King. Driven in the beginning by a relentless inner voice that repeats, "I want! I want!," Henderson's egoistic absorption in his material success ironically alienates him from himself. Hitching his family to seek fundamental truths in the wilderness of Africa, he discovers the arse loving relationship that men need with nature and with each other and symbolically surrenders his self by accepting responsibility for a lion cub and an orphan child.
    ellauri222.html on line 803: British critics tend to regard the American predilection for Big Novels as a vulgar neurosis — like the American predilection for big cars or big hamburgers. Oh God, we think: here comes another sweating, free-dreaming maniac with another thousand-pager; here comes another Big Mac. First, Dos Passos produced the Great American Novel; now they all want one. Yet in a sense every ambitious American novelist is genuinely trying to write a novel called USA. Perhaps this isn’t just a foible; perhaps it is an inescapable response to America – twentieth-century America, racially mixed and mobile, twenty-four hour, endless, extreme, superabundantly various. American novels are big all right, but partly because America is big too. You need plenty of nerve, ink and energy to do justice to the place, and no one has made greater efforts than Saul Bellow. In 1976 Bellow was awarded the Nobel Prize for Literature, praised by the Swedes ‘for human understanding and subtle analysis of contemporary culture’. Many times in Bellow’s novels we are reminded that ‘being human’ isn’t the automatic condition of every human being. Like freedom or sanity, it is not a given but a gift, a talent, an accomplishment, an objective. The busiest sections of the Chicago bookstores, I noticed, were those marked ‘Personal Growth’.
    ellauri223.html on line 72: But in the City of the Sun, while duty and work are distributed among all, it only falls to each one to work for about four hours every day. The remaining hours are spent in learning joyously, in debating, in reading, in reciting, in writing, in walking, in exercising the mind and body, and with play. They allow no game which is played while sitting or lying on top of one another, neither the single die nor dice, nor chess, nor others like these. But they play with the ball, with the sack, with the rod, with the hoop, with wrestling, with scratching matches at the stake. They say, moreover, that grinding poverty renders men worthless, cunning, sulky, thievish, insidious, vagabonds, liars, false witnesses, etc.; and that wealth makes them insolent, proud, ignorant, traitors, assumers of what they know not, deceivers, boasters, wanting in affection, slanderers, etc. But with them all the rich and poor together make up the community. They are rich because they want nothing, poor because they possess nothing. Hey is this communism or what?
    ellauri223.html on line 78: They do not use dung and filth for manuring the fields, thinking that the fruit contracts something of their rottenness, and when eaten gives a short and poor subsistence, as women who are beautiful with rouge and from want of exercise bring forth feeble offspring.
    ellauri226.html on line 70: Former Beach Boys Brian Wilson and Al Jardine say they want to make one thing clear — they had nothing to do with ex-bandmate Mike Love’s headlining performance at a President Trump fundraiser over the weekend. “We have absolutely nothing to do with the Trump benefit today in Newport Beach. Zero,’’ the musicians said.
    ellauri226.html on line 143: “A heart yearning for something I have known, and which I want back again.” Varmaan se oli Grazian graziöösi persaus. READING: Sea and Sardinia, by D.H. Lawrence (Penguin Classics); Cosima, by Grazia Deledda (Italica Press), about a young lady writer’s ass in Sardinia in the late 19th-Century.
    ellauri226.html on line 281: Research has indicated that The Bronx began changing demographically right after World War II. The first influx of black and Hispanic residents was into the South Bronx after World War II, as former residents of Harlem were attracted to The Bronx because of its rent controlled apartments. Many of these blacks and Hispanics moved into neighborhoods following the subway and elevated trains transportation. Pre-cisely! This is just why Grankulla does not want subway nor high-rise apartment housing. Let the cleaners and station attendants sleep i Mattby i stället.
    ellauri226.html on line 524: The notmees who wanted to move out of the worst areas of The Bronx "chose" to stay in Bronx and just moved to the places vacated by the suburban migration of the whites. The same push is now being felt in Nassau County and New Jersey, where white homeowners are pressured to only sell to whites to prevent another wave of immigrants with their smelly dishes and noisy habits, not to mention the sex, drugs, and rap "music".
    ellauri236.html on line 102: “I look at the things I want to see, and I avoid looking at what they want to show me,” said José Luiz Chaves Fonseca, a turbine engineer for offshore oil platforms who was attending the rally this month north of Rio de Janeiro as a Bolsonaro impersonator. “If everyone dressed like this, they wouldn’t be tricked.”
    ellauri236.html on line 208: Several people, after reading No Orchids, have remarked to me, ‘It's pure Fascism’. This is a correct description, although the book has not the smallest connexion with politics and very little with social or economic problems. It has merely the same relation to Fascism as, say Trollope's novels have to nineteenth-century capitalism. It is a daydream appropriate to a totalitarian age. In his imagined world of gangsters Chase is presenting, as it were, a distilled version of the modern political scene, in which such things as mass bombing of civilians, the use of hostages, torture to obtain confessions, secret prisons, execution without trial, floggings with rubber truncheons, drownings in cesspools, systematic falsification of records and statistics, treachery, bribery, and quislingism are normal and morally neutral, even admirable when they are done in a large and bold way. The average man is not directly interested in politics, and when he reads, he wants the current struggles of the world to be translated into a simple story about individuals. He can take an interest in Slim and Fenner as he could not in the G.P.U. and the Gestapo. People worship power in the form in which they are able to understand it. A twelve-year-old boy worships Jack Dempsey. An adolescent in a Glasgow slum worships Al Capone. An aspiring pupil at a business college worships Lord Nuffield. A New Statesman reader worships Stalin. There is a difference in intellectual maturity, but none in moral outlook. Thirty years ago the heroes of popular fiction had nothing in common with Mr. Chase's gangsters and detectives, and the idols of the English liberal intelligentsia were also comparatively sympathetic figures. Between Holmes and Fenner on the one hand, and between Abraham Lincoln and Stalin on the other, there is a similar gulf.
    ellauri236.html on line 337: Juurikin niin, sanoi Heinie lapioiden ruokaa kitaansa. Senjälkeen se ja sen kundikaveri Jerry McGowan jatkaa Kultaiseen Tohveliin.
    ellauri236.html on line 351: En mitään. Bailey kazoi sitä läski naama ilmeettömänä. Se ja se kaveri, tää McGowan? Ei muita?
    ellauri236.html on line 403: She was a kid, 18 at the most. She was horny as hell. After some minutes of frantic handiwork, Eddie found his cock getting hard. It got up and he sat on the end of the bed. “I’m getting a hard on,” he said, grinning. “You get off to sleep if you want to.” “I don’t want to sleep,” the girl said. “You scared the life out of me, but looking at what you got, I’m not so scared now.” He came over to the bed and smiled at the girl. “Thanks a lot, baby. You were swell. I wish I could swell s'm more as well." She half sat on it in the bed, but it wouldn't go in.
    ellauri236.html on line 405: “Are you sure it’s safe to use?” “Yeah. It can stay up all night.” She settled down in the bed. “Can it?” She spoke so softly he scarcely heard what she said, but he did hear. He suddenly grinned. “Well, there’s no law against it, is there? Do you want me to stay?” “Now you’re making me wet,” the girl said and hid her face. “What a question to ask a lady.” "My spaghetti’s going to be world famous in a moment. I promise.”
    ellauri236.html on line 418: Eddie put his wand on her shoulder and shook it gently. No go. Bugger it.
    ellauri236.html on line 420: "Slim is tall and thin and he smells of dirt. He stands over me and stalks. I understand what he is trying to do and applaud it. I pretend to be dead to make it easier for him. I want to scream when he comes, but if I did, he would know I was alive. He goes on for hours over me, mumbling.” Then suddenly she screamed out, “Why doesn't he do it to me?“
    ellauri236.html on line 425: Ma’s eyes suddenly snapped with rage. Her face turned purple. “Slim wants her,” she said, lowering her voice and glaring at Eddie. “He’s going to have her. You keep out of it! That goes for the rest of you too!” Eddie felt horny for the girl, but he wasn’t going to risk his life for her.
    ellauri236.html on line 428: “I know women,” he said with a sneer. “They’d do anything to stuff their face. I feel a boner coming. Call Anna." (Anna is the big mouthed one.) “That you, Anna?” Pete asked while Eddie watched him. “This is Pete. Come here quick. Something’s come up important. I want you over here right away. No, I don’t promise it’s a blow job, but it might lead to one. You’ll come? Okay, I’m waiting for you,” and he hung up.
    ellauri236.html on line 434: “Hello, baby,” Eddie said. “Come on in. No need to keep your pants on. This is a friendly meeting, I just wanna fondle your bag. Pass it over.” She crossed her legs, showing him what she had between her knees before adjusting her skirt.
    ellauri236.html on line 444: “Then you’ll reckon with me,” he said viciously. “Do you want me to cut your throat, you old cow? If you touch her—if anyone touches her—I’ll cut you to thin slices!” "Can cook her?" asked Woppy excitedly.
    ellauri236.html on line 482: “She is dead. I have no doubt about that. It would be an impossible thought to think of her still alive and in the hands of such men. No, she’s dead. At least I hope so. If she isn't please make it so. I don't want back any damaged goods.” “Money is no object,” Blandish said. "Money is a subject. Women are objects.“
    ellauri236.html on line 526: Olin hiljattain Washingtonissa Kansainvälisen valuuttarahaston IMF:n kokouksessa, sanoi tohtori Luova Tuho. Taloushistorioitsija Niella Ferguson sanoi siellä pitämässään puheessa, että olisimme onnekkaita, jos saisimme vain 1970-luvun kaltaisen talouskriisin emmekä sotaa kuten 1940-luvulla. Kansalliset turvallisuusneuvonantajat olivat huolissaan Naton sekaantumisesta Venäjän ja Ukrainan väliseen sotaan sekä Iranin ja Israelin törmäyskurssista. Ja juuri tänä aamuna luin, että Joe Bidenin hallinto odottaa Kiinan hyökkäävän Taiwaniin ennemmin tai myöhemmin. Rehellisesti sanottuna: kolmas maailmansota on tosiasiassa jo alkanut, varmasti ainakin Ukrainassa ja kyberavaruudessa”, hän sanoo. Jo on siinä aivan vitun oikeassa.
    ellauri236.html on line 530: ”Tilanne on paljon pahempi nyt. Silloin (1970-luvulla) meillä ei ollut niin paljon julkista ja yksityistä velkaa kuin nykyään. Jos keskuspankit nostavat nyt korkoja taistellakseen inflaatiota vastaan, se johtaa monien zombiyritysten, varjopankkien ja valtion instituutioiden konkurssiin. Lisäksi öljykriisi johtui silloin muutamasta geopoliittisesta shokista, nykyään niitä on enemmän. Eikä tarvitse kuin kuvitella Kiinan mahdollinen hyökkäys Taiwaniin, joka tuottaa 50 prosenttia kaikista puolijohteista maailmassa ja 80 prosenttia huippuluokan puolijohteista. Se olisi maailmanlaajuinen shokki. Olemme nykyään enemmän riippuvaisia puolijohteista kuin öljystä.”
    ellauri238.html on line 803: Mr.Cogito wants to overcome Hra Ajattelen tahtoo ohittaa
    ellauri238.html on line 839: Cały rok odbywają się tu konkursy, festiwale i koncerty. Nie ma pełni sezonu. Pełnia jest permanentna i niemal absolutna. Co kwartał powstają nowe kierunki i nic, jak się zdaje, nie jest w stanie zahamować tryumfalnego pochodu awangardy.
    ellauri238.html on line 892: Blood that wanted to go out to many wars, Veri joka tahtoi mennä kaikkialle sotimaan
    ellauri241.html on line 136: Upon her crest she wore a wannish fire Harjallaan hänellä oli tähdillä siroteltua vätysmäistä tulta
    ellauri241.html on line 185: Of all these lovers, and she grieved so kiitos näiden wannabe rakastajien, voi vittu, ja hän suri, joten
    ellauri241.html on line 189: To wander as she loves, in liberty. kuten hän rakastaa, vapaudessa.
    ellauri241.html on line 216: And towards her stept: she, like a moon in wane, ja astui hiäneen päin: hiän, kuin vähenevä kuu,
    ellauri241.html on line 525: Saw this with pain, so arguing a want Näki tämän tuskalla, jäbä nähtävästi väitti kaipaavansa
    ellauri241.html on line 1077: Came blushing, waning, willing, and afraid,

    ellauri241.html on line 1098: From which I want to wipe away needless serpentry,

    ellauri241.html on line 1132: His dripping wand she softly kist,

    ellauri241.html on line 1378: His wandering steps, and half-entranced laid

    ellauri241.html on line 1418: Beside this old man lay a flaccid wand,

    ellauri241.html on line 1582: “Endymion! Ah! still wandering in the bands

    ellauri241.html on line 1635: Endymion has an intense love for the goddess of his dreams but he professes his love to the Indian Maiden. He believes that his declaration of love seals his death and he asks for the goddess to sing a song to him so he can die peacefully. Within her song is the story of how she ended up wandering the forest alone. She says that she joined the god Bacchus and his cult of followers and traveled across countries. She witnessed people of multiple nations fall to Bacchus and decided to flee on her own. The Maiden ended up in the woods where she and Endymion have met.
    ellauri241.html on line 1637: Endymion declares that he will let go of the possibility of immortality so that he can love and adore the Maiden instead. The god Mercury appears and strikes the ground with his magic wand. Winged horses arrive to fly Endymion and the Indian Maiden into the sky where the shepherd-prince dreams that he is in Olympus which is the sanctuary of the gods. He is conflicted when he suddenly sees Diana who is also known as Phoebe and she looms over him. Endymion looks over at the sleeping Indian Maiden and "could not help but kiss her: then he grew / Awhile forgetful of all beauty save / Young Phoebe's, golden hair'd; and so 'gan crave Forgiveness." Once again he looks at the Maiden with adoration, but Phoebe begins to fade away, and he protests in panic. The noise awakens the sleeping Maiden next to him. In this moment Endymion chooses to abandon Diana and immortality as he professes to the Maid, "I love thee! and my days can never last. I always love the one that is readily available, she is the best." They soar through the sky and the Indian Maiden grows pale and suddenly vanishes before Endymion's eyes. Ow fuck! He cries out in surprise and grief as he finds himself alone yet again.
    ellauri241.html on line 1639: The Maiden reappears to the shepherd-prince as he returns to earth. Endymion is overcome with relief and joy and says that he has wasted too long searching for nothing but a dream and wants to start a life with the Maiden. She tells him that they cannot be together because he is forbidden to her. They wander through the forest and are quiet and somber until Endymion sees his sister Peona in the distance. They rush together and embrace. Peona implores Endymion to "weep not so" and "sigh no more" for the Indian Maiden can be his queen of Latmos. Endymion responds that "a hermit young, [he will] live in mossy cave" but Peona can visit him regularly. The resigned shepherd-prince leaves behind a confused Peona and Maiden and visits the altar of Diana to "bid adieu / To her for the last time." Peona and the Indian Maiden arrive. Endymion watches in stunned disbelief as the Indian Maiden transforms into his beloved Diana. It is revealed that Cynthia, Diana, and the Indian Maiden are the same woman. Actually Peona too! For all practical purposes, all women are the same: one hole up front and two more in the pants. Endymion swoons and after "three swiftest kisses" they vanish together leaving Peona who walks home in wonderment.
    ellauri243.html on line 171: 1. Anaconda 2. Baloney pony 3. Birdie 4. Bobby 5. Boonga 6. Cack 7. Choad 8. Choda 9. Chode 10. Chopper 11. Cock 12. Crank 13. Custard launcher 14. Dick 15. Dicklet 16. Diddly 17. Dingaling 18. Ding-a-ling 19. Ding-dong 20. Dinger 21. Dingle 22. Dingus 23. Dingy 24. Dink 25. Dinkle 26. Dipstick 27. Dirk 28. Disco stick 29. Dog bone 30. Dong 31. Donger 32. Donkey Kong 33. Doodle 34. Dork 35. Down 36. Fire hose 37. Fuckpole 38. Gherkin 39. Hairy canary 40. Hammer 41. Hot rod 42. Hooter 43. Jade stalk 44. Jamoke 45. Jigger 46. Jimmy 47. Jock 48. Johnson 49. John Thomas 50. Joystick 51. Kielbasa 52. Knob 53. Lad 54. Langer 55. Lingam 56. Love muscle 57. Love stick 58. Love truncheon 59. Machine 60. Master John Goodfellow 61. Male member 62. Manhood 63. Maypole 64. Meat 65. Meat puppet 66. Meat rod 67. Meatstick 68. Meat stick 69. Member 70. Membrum virile 71. Nature’s scythe 72. Old chap 73. One-eyed trouser snake 74. Organ 75. Package 76. Pecker 77. Peen 78. Pee-pee 79. Pee-wee 80. Pego 81. Penis 82. Peter 83. Phallus 84. Pickle 85. Piece 86. Pike 87. Pingas 88. Pink cigar 89. Pintle 90. Pipe 91. Pisser 92. Pizzle 93. Plonker 94. Pork sword 95. Prick 96. Pud 97. Putz 98. P-word 99. Python 100. Ramrod 101. Rape tool 102. Rod 103. Root 104. Rutter 105. Salami 106. Sausage 107. Schlong 108. Schmuck 109. Sex tool 110. Shaft 111. Shlong 112. Shmekl 113. Skin flute 114. Snake 115. Snausage 116. Spitstick 117. Stretcher 118. Swipe 119. Tadger 120. Tagger 121. Tail 122. Tallywacker 123. Tarse 124. Thing 125. Thingy 126. Third leg 127. Todger 128. Tool 129. Trouser monkey 130. Trouser snake 131. Truncheon 132. Tube steak 133. Unit 134. Virile member 135. Wang 136. Weapon 137. Wee-wee 138. Weenie 139. Weeny 140. Whang 141. Wick 142. Widgie 143. Widdler 144. Wiener 145. Willie 146. Willy 147. Wingwang 148. Winkle 149. Winky 150. Yard 151. Ying-yang 152. January Nelson.
    ellauri243.html on line 554: Bob´s book is about Perpetual Potential. Inside these pages, you will discover three invaluable lessons that will propel you closer to your true potential. The lessons will serve you well on either of two different, but parallel roads you may travel: The roads towards triumph or tragedy, as well as the roads in between. In 2003 the author, Bob Stearns was on top of the world. He led his company to win the most prestigious business award in the country, the Malcolm Baldrige award. Just five short years later, tragedy struck. Bob´s oldest son Eric was killed while on a study trip abroad in Athens, Greece. Eric was 21 years old at the time and was a junior at Penn State University. Although Eric lost his precious life in Greece, he found something sprawled under the pillars of the Acropolis that many people search for their entire lifetimes. He found inner peace in the knowledge that he could truly be anything he wanted to be, he could do anything he wanted to with his life. In his book "Perhaps a Man Can Change the Stars - Eric's Pursuit of Perpetual Potential", Bob shares with you three life lessons that allowed Eric to understand his true potential. Those same lessons helped Bob and his family deal with Eric´s death. The same lessons had enabled Bob to lead his company to triumph five years earlier. A key take away from the book is that no matter what stage of life you find yourself, you have the potential to explore. You have the potential to utilize and grow the talents and aspirations that you currently have. You have the potential to rekindle old talents that lie dormant, and to allow new talents to blossom. This is true regardless of age, circumstances, and what other people may be telling us. So read, explore and think deeply about how you can apply the three lessons that Bob learned from Eric. Decide for yourself how you can best use them. Indeed, our Potential is Perpetual!
    ellauri243.html on line 631: Say you want to get in better shape and be healthier. "Be healthier" sounds great, but it´s too vague. How will you know when you´re "in better shape," much less "healthier"?
    ellauri243.html on line 632: "Lose 10 pounds in 30 days" is a specific, objective, and most critically, measurable goal. You know exactly what you want to accomplish, which means you can create a process designed to get you there. You can create a solid diet plan. You can create an effective workout plan.
    ellauri243.html on line 635: Or say you want to grow your business. "Increase revenue" sounds great but is too vague. "Land five new customers this month" is specific, objective, and measurable. You know exactly what you want to accomplish, which means you can create a process designed to get you there.
    ellauri243.html on line 636: Bottom line? You can´t set an accurate course until you know exactly where you want to go.
    ellauri243.html on line 647: Pilots use the 1 in 60 rule to remind themselves to constantly monitor their progress and make quick course corrections. You also know where you want to go. But you´ll never get there if you don´t regularly monitor and revise your goal based on your progress. And if you don´t start out on the right path. Remember, the 1 in 60 rule states that starting out, one degree off means winding up one mile off 60 miles later. Or so. So don´t just correct your course along the way. Create and follow a process that is proved to work. Pick someone who has achieved something you want to achieve. Like a Brad, if you happen to be a Ralph. Deconstruct his or her process. Then follow it, and along the way make small corrections as you learn what works best for you. That way, when you travel your own version of 60 miles, you´ll arrive precisely where you hoped to be. Up a shit creek without a paddle, with Brad 60 miles ahead of you. Forgot to warn: don´t pick a moving target!
    ellauri243.html on line 705: The television show " Rowan & Martin's Laugh-I n," popular in the late 1960's and early 1970's, was famous for awarding its goofy trophy, the Flying Fickle Finger of Fate. But the term fickle finger of fate is actually decades older than that. The unpredictable and capricious nature of chance or fate, an Americanism popular in college circles during the 1930s. Sometimes the alliteration is extended coarsely to 'fucked by the fickle finger of fate' an expression which became popular in the US military during World War II.
    ellauri243.html on line 738: Pat ja Brad on lomalla MacLanahanien kotikylässä, jota roomalaiset eivät ole koskaan vallanneet. Kolumbaariossa viihdytään pitkä tovi koskettelemassa Wendyn markkeria. Lopulta Pat ihan pussasi Wendyn markkeria. Sama oli siinä taiwanilaisessa leffassa, sun muuta tms, jossa esi-isät oli pienissä laatikoissa seinällä. Apinoita tungexii planeetalla niin paljon jo ettei ne mahdu maahan rojolleen.
    ellauri243.html on line 762: 2. The other James Thomson, in full James Alexander Thomson, (born Dec. 20, 1958, Chicago, Ill., U.S.), is an American biologist who was among the first to isolate human embryonic stem cells. Thomson extracted stem cells from human embryos. However, this confronted him with a moral dilemma, as such an extraction is fatal to the embryo. After consulting with several bioethicists at the university, Thomson decided that continued research was ethical as long as the embryos, "created" by couples who "no longer wanted them" in order to "have children", would otherwise be "destroyed anyway." I just love medicinal ethics! Kunnon personismia. Montako neekeriä saa keilata pelastaaxeen yhden valkoisen joka työntää lastenvaunuja.
    ellauri244.html on line 443: Get the latest from southern gothic author Faye Snowden. Raven Burns is back in a sequel to A Killing Fire and on the hunt for a serial killer while she is being pursued by two men-- one wants to redeem her soul, and the other who wants to lock her away forever. Get the latest from southern gothic author Faye Snowden.
    ellauri244.html on line 573: "Oh, some fun-flying, I guess. A dive and pullup to a slow roll with a rolling loop off the top. Just messing around. If you really want to do it well it takes a bit of practice, but it's a nice-looking thing, don't you think?"
    ellauri245.html on line 349: After the funeral, all of the loved one’s possessions – and here’s the real head-turner – are burned. (So much for heirlooms). Once again, the primary concern is marimé (contamination), and family members want to destroy all material ties to the dead. Given the massive cost of such destruction, however, today many people sell the possessions – though not to other Gypsies of course.
    ellauri245.html on line 497: Som generalsekretær støtta Lie grunnlegginga av Indonesia og Israel. Han arbeidde for at sovjetiske troppar skulle trekkjast ut or Iran, og for våpenkvile i Kashmir. Sovjetunionen uttrykte misnøye med Lie då han hjelpte til med å skaffe støtte til Sør-Korea då dei vart invaderte i 1950. Lie arbeidde òg for at Sovjetunionen skulle avbryte boikottinga si av SN, sjølv om han truleg hadde lite å gjere med at boikotten vart avslutta. Han motsette seg spansk medlemskap i SN grunna personleg motstand mot Francoregimet. Han arbeidde òg for at Folkerepublikken Kina skulle anerkjennast som medlem av SN etter at nasjonalistregjeringa gjekk i eksil på Taiwan. Han meinte at Folkerepublikken Kina var dei einaste som kunne oppfylle Kina sine obligasjonar fullt ut.
    ellauri245.html on line 524: Jo Nesbøs mor var bibliotekar (Molde on joku tuppukylä Länsi-Norjassa), og han fattet tidlig interesse for litteratur. 15 år gammel fikk han vite av faren at han hadde meldt seg til tjeneste som frontkjemper på østfronten under andre verdenskrig. Kunnskapen om farens landssvik har ifølge Nesbø bidratt til å forme ham og hans vurdering av valg andre mennesker gjør. Eli siis siitä tuli wannabe nazi kuten isäpaapasta. Epäonnistunut potkupalloilija kuten Jari Pervosta. Epäonnistunut skitaristi kuten Harri Sirolasta. Mutta hurjan menestynyt roskakirjailija kuiteskin.
    ellauri245.html on line 613: Historiassa Ruandan väestö jakautui kolmeen heimoon: Hutu, Tutsi ja Batwa. Kaikki heimot puhuvat samaa kieltä kinyarwandaa ja niillä on sama kulttuurialkuperä. Väestöstä noin 84% kuului maajussien Hutu-heimoon, 15% nomadiseen Tutsi-heimoon ja loput Batwa-heimoon. Historiassa jokaisella heimolla oli oma sosioekonominen asemansa, rituaalinsa ja pukeutumistapansa. Vuoden 1994 kansanmurha Watussi-heimoa kohtaan (tyyliin "piikkilankoja preerialla") vähensi kansanryhmän osuutta merkittävästi, ja nykyään Ruandassa ei tunnisteta entisiä heimoja vaan kansa on "yhtenäinen". Nykyisin Ruanda onkin Afrikan maiden edelläkävijä vahvassa korruption suojelussa ja apinadiversiteetin vastaisuudessa. Ruandassa on siistiä koska sen kolonisoivat anaalinen Saxa ja pedofiili Belgia. Oi kurja Belgia!
    ellauri245.html on line 629: In the 20th century Burundi had three main indigenous ethnic groups: Hutu, Tutsi, and Twa. The area was colonised by the German Empire in the late 1800s and administered as a portion of German East Africa. In Burundi and neighboring Rwanda to the north, the Germans maintained indirect rule, leaving local social structures intact. Under this system, the Tutsi minority generally enjoyed its historically high status as aristocrats, whereas the Hutus occupied the bottom of the social structure. Princely and monarchal rulers belonged to a unique ethnic group, Ganwa, though over time the political salience of this distinction declined and the category was subsumed by the Tutsi grouping. During World War I, Belgian troops from the Belgian Congo occupied Burundi and Rwanda. In 1919, under the auspices of the nascent League of Nations, Belgium was given the "responsibility" of administering "Ruanda-Urundi" as a mandated territory. Though obligated to promote social progress in the territory, the Belgians did not alter the local power structures. Following World War II, the United Nations was formed and Ruanda-Urundi became a trust territory under Belgian administration, which required the Belgians to politically "edducate the locals and make them really fit", to prepare them for independence.
    ellauri245.html on line 634: wandan-refugees-cross-the-border-into-Tanzania-carrying-their-belongings.-Jeremiah-Kamau-Reuters.jpg" height="190px" />
    ellauri245.html on line 639:
    ellauri245.html on line 644: The term Mai-Mai or Mayi-Mayi refers to community-based militia groups active in the Democratic Republic of the Congo (DRC) that is formed to defend local communities and territory against Western funded armed groups. Most were formed to resist the invasion of Rwandan forces and Rwanda-affiliated Congolese industrial "rebel" groups.
    ellauri245.html on line 646: The name comes from the Swahili word for water, "maji". Militia members sprinkled themselves with water to protect themselves from bullets. Not any less stupid than Western soldiers who think that a priest sprinkling water or oil on a corpse will secure it another life. Mai-Mai were particularly active in the eastern Congolese provinces bordering Rwanda, North Kivu and South Kivu (the "Kivus"), which were under the control of the Rwanda-allied Bananarepublic-dominated "rebel" faction, the Rally for Congolese Conflict Minerals–in-Goma (RCD-Goma) during the Second Congo War.
    ellauri245.html on line 683: I've never seen so many men ask you if you wanted to dance Kaikki nää miehet muna ojossa kysyvät
    ellauri245.html on line 695: It's where I want to be Siellä olis kiva olla sisällä
    ellauri245.html on line 702: I've never seen so many people want to be there by your side Porukkaa ui vitusti sun liiveihin
    ellauri245.html on line 714: It's where I want to be
    ellauri245.html on line 731: Harryn syöpäinen isä oli mielissään kun Kaija niiasi. Hän oli usein valittanut etteivät naiset enää niianneet. Hyvä Nääsbö sulle ropsahti juuri kasa lisää setämiespisteitä! Tämä niiausjuttu on paraikaa esillä Netflixissä, jossa etäisesti Paulin ja Luisan näköiset Sussexin herttua ja herttuatar tekevät siitä pilaa. While Sheffield residents with no gas are 'pretty well stuffed' and 'so cold they want to cry'.
    ellauri246.html on line 418: Joskus hei Brodsky edes tulevaisuus näyttää valtakunnan massan. "Tulevaisuus on musta, // mutta ihmiset, ei //, koska se // musta näyttää minusta." Ehkä sinusta, ei minusta. Musta se on musta.Tällainen tulevaisuus on ohjelmoitu kadottamaan yksilöllisyyttä. Brodsky luonnehtii luovuutta "Arya-vähemmistönä". Voi vittu, sehän on pesunkestävä nazi! "Kustakin eksistentiaalisesta ainutlaatuisesta ajatus korvataan idealla henkilökohtaisesta itsenäisyydestä." Brodskin individismia voidaan pitää synonyymina persoonallisuuden periaatteena yhteiskunnan korkeimmaksi arvoksi. Josif oli varmaan lukenut Nietzschen Moraalin genealogian englanninnoxena. Tämä periaate osoittaa Brodskia essee "matka Istanbuliin", ulkomaalainen idän perinteeseen, josta pidetään USSR: ssä. Varmista, kuinka julmimmin kasvaa voimaa ja lihasmassaa niille, jotka eroavat heistä, Brodsky kuvaa itsensä "uudet staksilla elokuulla" henkilöllä, jolla on sielu suhteessa mamiin. Runossa "keskustelu Commerwankerin kanssa", Brodskin totalitaarisen yhteiskunnan olosuhteissa on olemassa päivittäinen loputon kalkki. Tämä tietenkin Golud Moraalista. Lyyrinen sankari on verrattu marttyyri. Elämä itse on ensimmäinen, kipu ja henkilö on "kipu testi". Olen erilainen kuin muut, minuun sattuu.
    ellauri247.html on line 93: Narahdarn, the bat, wanted honey. He watched until he saw a Wurranunnah, or, bee alight. He caught it, stuck a white feather between its hind legs, let it go and followed it. He knew he could see the white feather, and so follow the bee to its nest. He ordered his two wives, of the Bilber tribe, to follow him with wirrees to carry home the honey in. Night came on and Wurranunnah the bee had not reached home. Narahdarn caught him, imprisoned him under bark, and kept him safely there until next morning. When it was light enough to see, Narahdarn let the bee go again, and followed him to his nest, in a gunnyanny tree.
    ellauri247.html on line 95: Marking the tree with his combo (stone tomahawk) that he might know it again, he returned to hurry on his wives who were some way behind. He wanted them to come on, climb the tree, and chop out the honey. When they reached the marked tree one of the women climbed up. She called out to Narahdarn that the honey was in a split in the tree. He called back to her to put her hand in and get it out. She put her arm in, but found she could not get it out again. Narahdarn climbed up to help her, but found when he reached her that the only way to free her was to cut off her ​arm. This he did before she had time to realise what he was going to do, and protest. So great was the shock to her that she died instantly. Narahdarn carried down her lifeless body and commanded her sister, his other wife, to go up, chop out the arm, and get the honey. She protested, declaring the bees would have taken the honey away by now. "Not so," he said; "go at once."
    ellauri247.html on line 108: Big fires were lit on the edge of the scrub, throwing light on the dancers as they came dancing out from their camps, painted in all manner of designs, waywahs round their waists, tufts of feathers in their hair, and carrying in their hands painted wands. Heading the procession as the men filed out from the scrub into a cleared space in front of the women, came Narahdarn. The light of the fires lit up the tree tops, the dark balahs showed out in fantastic shapes, and weird indeed was the scene as slowly the men danced round; louder clicked the boomerangs and louder grew the chanting of the women; higher were the fires piled, until the flames shot their coloured tongues round the ​trunks of the trees and high into the air. One fire was bigger than all, and towards it the dancers edged Narahdarn; then the voice of the mother of the Bilbers shrieked in the chanting, high above that of the other women. As Narahdarn turned from the fire to dance back he found a wall of men confronting him. These quickly seized him and hurled him into the madly-leaping fire before him, where he perished in the flames. And so were the Bilbers avenged. Good work, bare-butt boys, and good riddance for the bad rubbish.
    ellauri247.html on line 112: Goomblegubbon boolwarrunnee. Goomblegubbon numbardee boorool boolwarrunnee Dinewan numbardee. Goomblegubbondoo winnanullunnee dirrah dungah nah gillunnee, Dinewandoo boonoong noo beonemuldundi. Goomblegubbondoo winnanullunnee gullarh naiyahneh gwallee Dinewan gimbelah: "Wahl ninderh doorunmai gillaygoo. Goomblegubbon lowannee boonooog noo wunnee wooee baiyan nurrunnee bonyehdool. Goomblegubbondoo gooway: "Minyah goo ninderh wahl boonoong dulleebah gillunnee? "Wahl." Goomblegubbon gindabnunnee, barnee, bunna gunnee dirrah gunnee numerhneh. Goomblegubbondoo birrahleegul oodundi gunoonoo garwil. Goomblegubbon buthdi ginnee nalmee. Goomblegubbon weel gillay doorunmai. Goomblegubbon boorool giggee luggeray Dinewun, boonoong gunnoo goo gurrahwulday.
    ellauri247.html on line 114: GLOSSARY Bahloo, moon. Beeargah, hawk. Beeleer, black cockatoo. Beereeun, prickly lizard. Bibbee, woodpecker, bird. Bibbil, shiny-leaved box-tree. Bilber, a large kind of rat. Bindeah, a prickle or small thorn. Birrahlee, baby. Birrableegul, children. Birrahgnooloo, woman's name, meaning "face like a tomahawk handle." Boobootella, the big bunch of feathers at the back of an emu. Boolooral, an owl. Boomerang, a curved weapon used in hunting and in warfare by the blacks; called Burren by the Narran blacks. Borah, a large gathering of blacks where the boys are initiated into the mysteries which make them young men. Bou-gou-doo-gahdah, the rain bird. Bouyou, legs. Bowrah or Bohrah, kangaroo. Bralgahs, native companion, bird. Bubberah, boomerang that returns and bumps you in the back of your head. Buckandee, native cat. Buggoo, flying squirrel. Bulgahnunnoo, bark-backed. Bunbundoolooey, brown flock pigeon. Bunnyyarl, flies. Byamee, man's name, meaning "big man." Bwana, African sir. Capparis, caper. Combi, bag made of kangaroo skins. Comfy, foldable plastic pillow. Cookooburrah, laughing jackass. Coorigil, name of place, meaning sign of bees. Corrobboree, black fellows' dance. Cunnembeillee, woman's name, meaning pig-weed root. Curree guin guin, butcher-bird. Daen, black fellows. Dardurr, bark, humpy or shed. Dayah minyah, carpet snake (vällykäärme). Deegeenboyah, soldier-bird. Decreeree, willy wagtail. Dinewan, emu. Dingo, native dog. Doonburr, a grass seed. Doongara, lightning. Dummerh, 2nd rate pigeons. Dungle, water hole. Dunnia, wattle. Eär moonan, long sharp teeth. Effendi, Turkish sir. Euloo marah, large tree grubs. Edible. In fact yummy. Euloo wirree, rainbow. Gayandy, borah devil. Galah or Gilah, a French grey and rose-coloured cockatoo. Gidgereegah, a species of small parrot. Gooeea, warriors. Googarh, iguana. Googoolguyyah, run into trees. Googoorewon, place of trees. Goolahwilleel, absolutely top-knot pigeon. Gooloo, magpie. Goomade, red stamp. Goomai, water rat. Goomblegubbon, bastard or just plain turkey. Goomillah, young girl's dress, consisting of waist strings made of opossum's sinews with strands of woven opossum's hair hanging about a foot square in front. Yummy. Goonur, kangaroo rat. Goug gour gahgah, laughing-jackass. Literal meaning, "Take a stick of bamboo and boil it in the water." Grooee, handsome foliaged tree bearing a plum-like fruit, tart and bitter, but much liked by the blacks. Guinary, light eagle hawk. Guineboo, robin redbreast. Gurraymy, borah devil. Gwai, red. Gwaibillah, star. Kurreah, an alligator. Mahthi, dog. Maimah, stones. Maira, paddy melon. Massa, American sir. May or Mayr, wind. Mayrah, spring wind. Meainei, girls. Midjee, a species of acacia. Millair, species of kangaroo rat. Moodai, opossum. Moogaray, hailstones. Mooninguggahgul, mosquito-calling bird. Moonoon, emu spear. Mooregoo, motoke. Mooroonumildah, having no eyes. Morilla or Moorillah, pebbly ridges. Mubboo, beefwood-tree. Mullyan, eagle hawk. Mullyangah, the morning star. Murgah muggui, big grey spider. Murrawondah, climbing rat. Narahdarn, bat. Noongahburrah, tribe of blacks on the Narran. Nullah nullah, a club or heavy-headed weapon. Nurroo gay gay, dreadful pain. Nyunnoo or Nunnoo, a grass humpy. Ooboon, blue-tongued lizard. Oolah, red prickly lizard. Oongnairwah, black driver. Ouyan, curlew. Piggiebillah, ant-eater. One of the Echidna, a marsupial. Quarrian, a kind of parrot. Quatha, quandong; a red fruit like a round red plum. Sahib, Indian sir. Senhor, Brazilian sir. U e hu, rain, only so called in song. Waligoo, to hide. Wahroogah, children. Wahn, crow. Walla Walla, place of many waters. Wallah, I swear to God. Wallah, Indian that carries out a manual task. Waywah, worn by men, consisting of a waistband made of opossum's sinews with bunches of strips of paddy melon skins hanging from it. ​Wayambeh, turtle. Weeoombeen, a small bird, girl's name. Some thing like robin redbreast, only with longer tail and not so red a breast. Willgoo willgoo, pointed stick with feathers on top. Widya nurrah, a wooden battle-axe shaped weapon. Wirree, small piece of bark, canoe-shaped. Wirreenun, priest or doctor. Womba, mad. Wondah, spirit or ghost. Wurranunnah, wild bees. Wurranunnah, tame bees. Wurrawilberoo, whirlwind with a devil in it; also clouds of Magellan. Yaraan, white gum-tree. Yhi, the sun. Yuckay, oh dear!
    ellauri247.html on line 419: Called the “Queen of the Blues”, Elizabeth Montagu led and hosted the Blue Stockings Society of England from about 1750. It was a loose organization of privileged women with an interest in education, but it waned in popularity at the end of the 18th century. It gathered to discuss literature, and also invited educated men to participate. Talk of politics was prohibited; literature and the arts were the main subjects. Many of the bluestocking women supported each other in intellectual endeavors such as reading, art work, and writing. Many also published literature. Dr. Johnson once wrote about Montagu, that “She diffuses more knowledge than any woman I know, or indeed, almost any man. Conversing with her, you may find variety in one“.
    ellauri248.html on line 85: Let's go through a few of these points. First, I don't think I've ever read a mystery novel with a less likable main character/narrator. Rob (Adam) Ryan is an asshole, plain and simple. Sure, he's been warped by his childhood and circumstances, but he does just about every annoying thing you could possibly imagine-- he constantly navel-gazes and feels self pity, he sleeps with then immediately plays the stereotypical male "I don't want anything to do with you now" role with his female partner (the person we were told was his best friend, and whom he would never ever sleep with), he acts like an idiot over the 17 year old villain/ temptress/ psychopath/ whatever betraying his partner, and by the end of the book he is worse off than ever. I know that lots of detectives (esp. in hard-boild stories) are unlikable, and have many personal issues, but this guy just took the cake. I wanted to take a baseball bat to his head [hear, hear!]. To make matters worse, French throws in this little gem towards the end of the novel:
    ellauri248.html on line 108: Rob: Yeah, Cassie was like that. She was always finding connections to things and blah blah blah. She made a great partner because hey remember that time 20 years ago when my friends and I were in the woods and blah blah blah I want to tell you about all the people I work with and give you a brief description of each one of them and also explain in detail how my boss is and blah blah blah. My mind is trying to remember what happened 20 years ago and you know Cassie and I are great partners and we're best friends and people think we're dating but blah blah blah. Hey, time flies, man. Did I tell you what happened to me as a child? Did I remind you about Katy? Also, her family sure is weird. The people at the dig site are weird. Everyone is a suspect blah blah blah. Let me pause here to tell you how I deal with my roommate and also O'Kelly and my childhood and my current job and Katy and her weird family and interrogation and coffee and vodka and this dream I had and looking for clues and in the woods and we keep hitting dead ends and and and and and blahhhhhhhhhhhh.
    ellauri248.html on line 122: Not. One. Thing. Is. Resolved. Rob Ryan’s character arc? Flop. My wife Cassie Maddox’s character arc? Long sigh. My favorite pair of besties? I don’t want to talk about it. Mystery? Fine, sort of chilling, but also 1) not really a mindfuck and 2) has shitty connotations. The commupence? Non-ex-is-tent.
    ellauri248.html on line 158: 1900 gab der Bruder das Gut auf; Paul Rée ging daraufhin nach Celerina (Schweiz) und arbeitete als Arzt für die Einheimischen. Am 28. Oktober 1901 verunglückte er bei einer Bergwanderung und stürzte in den Inn; ob es tatsächlich ein Unglück oder ein Suizid war, kann nicht geklärt werden.
    ellauri248.html on line 347: There was also an allotment process starting in the Dawes Act of 1887 until 1934. This was to force more land from Native people. The ostensible reason was to make them individual landholders and thus “Americanized” members of a capitalist system. It was felt this would “solve” the “Indian problem”. In short that it would make them no longer part of the ethnic communities they were members of. However the main push to “solve” the “problem” was by Anglo-Americans who wanted to take that land. Thus land was distributed to tribal members and the “surplus” was given or sold at a cut rate to White Americans or turned into National Forests and Parks or military bases. Land owned by Native Americans decreased from 138 million acres in 1887 to 48 million acres in 1934. They lost 2/3s of their treaty land base. About 90,000 Native Americans were made landless.
    ellauri249.html on line 482: Why would Finns want to attack Russia? What have they got that we have not? Well, good vodka, and Karelia. I am partial to the Russian Standard Vodka. Besides, it’s distilled from the waters of Lake Ladoga. Thus, every time I have finished a bottle of Russkij Standard, and urinated, I have removed a part of Lake Ladoga and made it part of the local water supply. Literally taking back Karelia a bottle at the time.
    ellauri254.html on line 389: ‘How often we wandered through the streets of the snowy city… All of the theatrical events that seemed so important in their time have grown dim in my memory. Acting at the theatre, which I loved so much, now seems to me far less exciting and bright than that game of masks in Blok’s circle. It is true that even at that time I did not look upon our meetings, gatherings, and strolls as mere entertainment. There is no doubt that others too felt the significance and creative value of it all, yet nonetheless we did not realize that the charms of Blok’s poetry almost deprived us all of our real existence, turning us into Venetian masqueraders of the north.’
    ellauri254.html on line 455: Stefan Anton George (* 12. Juli 1868 in Büdesheim, heute Stadtteil von Bingen am Rhein; † 4. Dezember 1933 in Locarno) war ein deutscher Lyriker. Zunächst vor allem dem Symbolismus verpflichtet, wandte er sich nach der Jahrhundertwende vom reinen Ästhetizismus der zuvor in den Blättern für die Kunst propagierten „kunst für die kunst“ ab und wurde zum Mittelpunkt des nach ihm benannten, auf eigenen ästhetischen, philosophischen und lebensreformerischen Vorstellungen beruhenden George-Kreises.
    ellauri254.html on line 463: George trat in dieser Zeit in Lesungen vor ausgesuchtem Hörerkreis auf. Während er in ein priesterliches Gewand gekleidet seine Verse verlas, lauschte das Publikum ergriffen. Anschließend empfing er einzelne weibliche Zuhörer zu Audienzen in einem Nebenzimmer. Seine Bücher waren ungewöhnlich gestaltet und zunächst nur in intellektuellen Kreisen zu hohem Preis vorhanden.
    ellauri254.html on line 488: Ab 1907 ist eine Zäsur in Georges Kunstbegriff zu erkennen. Seine Werke entsprachen nicht mehr dem Anspruch der sogenannten selbstgenügsamen Kunst, sondern gewannen zunehmend einen prophetischen und religiösen Charakter. Fortan fungierte George zunehmend als ästhetischer Richter oder Ankläger, der gegen eine Zeit der Verflachung anzukämpfen versuchte. Anlass hierzu war vor allem die Begegnung Georges mit dem vierzehnjährigen Maximilian Kronberger 1902 in München. Nach dem plötzlichen Tod Kronbergers 1904 an Arschverblütung stellte George ein Gedenkbuch zusammen, das 1906 mit einer Vorrede erschien, in der „Maximin“ (so nennt ihn George) zum Gott erhoben wurde, der „in unsere Kreise getreten war“. Inwiefern dieser „Maximin-Kult“ tatsächlich ein gemeinsamer des Kreises war oder eher ein privater Georges, der dadurch, dass er die Göttlichkeit Maximins erkannt hatte, seine eigene zentrale Stellung rechtfertigen wollte, ist schwierig zu rekonstruieren. Minimax olis ollut turvallisempi strategia, kuiten von Neumann ja Morgenstern ovat osoittaneet. Maxi muna miniin reikään tuottaa vahinkoa, mini muna maxissa reiässä ei ehkä paljon anna, muttei otakaan.
    ellauri254.html on line 490: Außerdem war der thematische Bruch Georges in dessen Privatleben begründet. In jener Zeit hatte er sich vom okkulten Kreis Ludwig Klages’ und Alfred Schulers abgewandt und den Kontakt zu Hugo von Hofmannsthal abgebrochen. Der Wegfall einiger Anhänger und die Nachfolge durch jüngere Dichter sorgten für einen Wandel der Blätter für die Kunst. Die nun teilweise auch anonym veröffentlichten Gedichte rückten ins Metaphysische und behandelten zunehmend apokalyptische, expressionistische und esoterisch-komische Themen. Auch der George-Kreis hatte sich dadurch verändert. War er zuvor eine Vereinigung Gleichgesinnter, wandelte er sich nun zu einem hierarchischen Bund aus Jüngern, die sich um ihren höhergestellten Meister George scharten. Es wird vermutet, dass es im Kreis Stefan Georges seelischen oder gar sexuellen Missbrauch gab.
    ellauri254.html on line 492: George ei uskonut Saxan aseiden voittoon 1. maailmansodassa, raakkui rökäletappiota, missä osuikin naulan kantaan. Homokolleega Klaus Mann erinnerte sich an Georges Popularität später wie folgt: „Inmitten einer morschen und rohen Zivilisation verkündete, verkörperte er eine menschlich-künstlerische Würde, in der Zucht und Leidenschaft, Anmut und Majestät sich vereinen. Dabei hatte er einen majestätischen Schwanz.“
    ellauri254.html on line 523: Obwohl George viele Ideen Schulers als unsinnig ablehnte, war er von ihm fasziniert und vergegenwärtigte in etlichen Versen dessen heraufbeschworene Visionen. Nun wollte Klages, der Schuler immer nähergekommen war, zwischen George und das jüdische Mitglied des Kreises Karl Wolfskehl einen Keil treiben. 1904 biederte er sich dem Zeitgeist an und bestätigte damit indirekt Georges Absage an den Antisemitismus: Klages behauptete, er habe 1904 im letzten Moment durchschaut, dass der George-Kreis von einer „jüdischen Zentrale gesteuert“ werde. Er habe George vor die Wahl gestellt, indem er ihn fragen wollte, was ihn an „Juda“ „binde“. Diesem Gespräch sei George ausgewichen. Wolfskehl, der sich als „römisch, jüdisch, deutsch zugleich“ charakterisierte und als bedeutender Repräsentant der jüdischen George-Rezeption angesehen werden kann, glaubte zunächst an eine Symbiose von Deutschtum und Judentum und orientierte sich hierbei an den Werken des Dichters, der im Stern des Bundes im Sinne einer Wahlverwandtschaft Juden als die „verkannte(n) brüder“ bezeichnete, „von glühender wüste … Stammort des gott-gespenstes … gleich entfernt“.
    ellauri254.html on line 811: We are with the hermit Serapion. We believe that literary chimeras have a special reality. We do not want utilitarianism. We do not write for propaganda. Art is real, like life itself. And, like life itself, it is without goal and without meaning: it exists because it cannot help but exist. L'art pour l'art, in a word.
    ellauri256.html on line 46: Rozanov frequently referred to himself as Fyodor Dostoyevsky's "Underground Man" and proclaimed his right to espouse contrary opinions at the same time. He first attracted attention in the 1890s when he published political sketches in the conservative newspaper Novoye Vremya ("New Time"), owned and run by Aleksey Suvorin. Rozanov's comments, always paradoxical and sparking controversy, led him into clashes with the Tsarist government and with radicals such as Lenin. For example, Rozanov readily passed from criticism of Russian Orthodoxy, and even of what he saw as the Christian preoccupation with death, to fervent praise of Christian faith, from praise of Judaism to unabashed anti-Semitism, and from acceptance of homosexuality as yet another side of human nature to vitriolic accusations that Gogol and some other writers had been latent homosexuals.[citation needed] He proclaimed that politics was "obsolete" because "God doesn't want politics any more," constructed an "apocalypse of our times," and recommended the "healthy instincts" of the Russian people, their longing for authority, and their hostility to modernism.
    ellauri256.html on line 376: After the 1917 Bolshevik Revolution, the situation turned upside down. Mayakovsky, as a devoted Bolshevik, began to make good money on his poems, whereas Osip Brik's business went pear-shaped. It was then that Lilya told her husband she was now with Mayakovsky, yet she did not want to divorce him. Thus, both moved to the poet’s apartment, lived and traveled at his expense, with Mayakovsky calling Osip a part of the “family”. Their relationship became an “ideal" for those who advocated free love. In the meantime, rumors of Lilya Brik’s numerous sexual liaisons grew.
    ellauri256.html on line 389: In 1978, at the age of 86, she fell from a chair and broke her hip. Not wanting to become a burden to anyone, she took a lethal dose of sleeping pills.
    ellauri256.html on line 475: Runsaat sata vuotta sitten Venäjällä talousliberaalit jahtasivat bolshevikkeja jotka myyräilivät piilossa, vajaat sata vuotta sitten Neuvostolassa bolshevikit jahtasivat talousliberaaleja jotka myyräilivät piilossa. Kulloisetkin kökkäreet jahtailevat ex- ja wannabe kökkäreitä, pysyäxeen ize kermaperseinä.
    ellauri257.html on line 365:

    Der polnische Schriftsteller Witold Gombrowicz im Jahr 1965
    (hinter ihm steht dem Autor Slawomir Mrozek sein Schwanz).

    ellauri257.html on line 396: Peterson is playing unforgivably to a militant alt-right audience that has claimed him as their “red pill guru”. He may not want this but he is feeding that narrative.
    ellauri257.html on line 520: What kind of inner, private life did Alma have? Did she tire of years of cooking, cleaning, ironing and sewing for Singer? Was it difficult to be the wife of a public person? How did she cope with his escapades? About these the manuscript remains silent. After all, Alma belonged to a social class where women weren’t encouraged to explore such details. In an interview, she does represent the younger Singer as easy-going and says how much he changed over time. But she ascribes those changes to how much people wanted from him and not the other way around.
    ellauri260.html on line 351: Socialism wants to create a structure which is superior to the individuals, and all its wishes and hopes are centred in this, but what it constructs can never be more than a bringing together of separate elements without any inner connection. It thus comes to be divided in its own body. Its ideal of the whole demands a world of action, and puts in on the lines of self-direction and spirit ; but in its actual development it imitates the mere contiguity of the material world and is bound up with it. The consequence is that it contains several different ideals of life which are not reconciled with each other. Even the happiness it offers is marred by this division. The whole body is to be as happy as possible ; but what is the nature of the happiness if in the end it means merely the welfare of individuals, if it does not evolve a realm of goodness and truth out of the turmoil of interests and enable human nature to participate in it ? Quantity, it seems, is to replace quality ; but is that done so easily ? Do we not find ourselves in entirely different worlds ? Socialism wants a community, but can only attain a comradeship. It can find stones for the building and stimulate people to work ; but it cannot either design or create the entire structure.
    ellauri260.html on line 363: Even the finer type of comfort and enjoyment will, in a detached subject, turn into an inward emptiness, which in the long run will prove less tolerable than care and want, struggle and pain. Ancient Epicureanism showed this two thousand years ago, and Socialistic Epicureanism will show the same thing.
    ellauri260.html on line 374: The last term of the errors of the Socialists is the humanitarian idealism which pervades the whole ideal. It treats man as a superior value, and it wants to direct every effort toward him ; but it can find no basis for this value. It falls into the contradiction of treating man as a mere piece of reality and transferring to this piece of the world that appreciation which belongs only to a standard of value. Let us rather have a firm faith in the spiritual and divine in human nature, and not this blind belief in man´s ordinary self.
    ellauri262.html on line 184: Lewis was only 40 when the war began, and he tried to re-enter military service, offering to instruct cadets; however, his offer was not accepted, as he did not want to write lies to deceive the enemy. Instead, From 1941 to 1943, Lewis spoke on religious programmes broadcast by the BBC from London while the city was under periodic air raids. These broadcasts were appreciated by civilians and servicemen at that stage. For as Air Chief Marshal Sir Donald Hardman wrote:
    ellauri262.html on line 414: In 1920 Sayers entered into a passionate though unconsummated romance with Jewish Russian émigré and Imagist poet John Cournos, who moved in London literary circles with Ezra Pound and his contemporaries. Sayers did not consummate her relationship with him unmarried, due to her religious beliefs. Cournos disdained monogamy and marriage, did not want children and was dedicated to free love.[53] He also considered crime writing, which Sayers had started, to be low brow, though he assisted her with aspects of publication.[54] Within two years their relationship had broken up when he insisted on consummation with birth control. Returning to New York, he soon married a crime writer who had two children. This left Sayers embittered that he had not held to his own principles, feeling that he had been testing her, pushing her to sacrifice her own beliefs in submission to his own. He later confessed that he would have happily married Sayers if she had submitted to his sexual demands. After a period of heated correspondence, they concluded with more amicable missives after she met her future husband.
    ellauri262.html on line 469: Lewis then talks about the nature of nature/matter. Because there are things outside an individual and God, things cannot be configured to suit the individual perfectly. WTF? God is responsible for that too! He also introduces the concept of Free Will and how that further inhibits everyone being pain-free all the time, although he does allow and say miracles do exist. Bullshit! Free will is that you can do what you want (lähde). If you want to be pain-free and you aren't, then your will is not free.
    ellauri262.html on line 475: Lewis starts off by asking why humans need so much castigation. Immediately he shares the Christian answer that humans have used free will to become very bad. Remember the clandestine fucking behind the apple tree! Though it wasn't the fucking as such but disobedience. The only guy that is allowed to be proud in Eden is its owner. Fucking with the snake was just a test. You FAILED! Put your pants on! Free will was not meant for you to do what you want, but to obey so it hurts! Misguided fucking made man an animal, the rest is biology. Man, as a species, spoiled his pants.
    ellauri262.html on line 508: About our comrades in pain, other animals, Lewis allows that some higher form animals (like apes and elephants) might have a rudimentary individual self but says that their suffering might not be suffering in any real sense and humans might be projecting themselves onto the beasts. So no heaven for them, but then again, no hell. If one wants to make room for animal immortality, although the scriptures are silent, then "a heaven for mosquitoes and a hell for men could very conveniently be combined". A very good point! Oh, is it? Well, that is all sorted then?
    ellauri263.html on line 371: That’s how we’re plunged back into Fauda, Arabic for “chaos”, Israel’s international Netflix hit, which the streaming service picked up in 2016. Released on 24 May, the series returns with its tight, testy unit of Arabic-speaking Israeli special force infiltrators who work undercover in the Palestinian West Bank to track and kill wanted terrorists.
    ellauri263.html on line 383: Fauda’s creators have said they want to show that everyone living in a war zone pays a price, but such portrayals of an equality of suffering are ripe for criticism in the midst of an asymmetric conflict, in which one side is under occupation. This is more acutely obvious at a time when international media has focused on Israel opening fire on unarmed protesters near the Gaza border earlier this month, killing 58 Palestinians, including children, and wounding over 1,000 in a single day.
    ellauri263.html on line 387: This kind of blurring brings to mind US war-on-terror films such as Zero Dark Thirty, with its depiction of Osama bin Laden’s capture serving as a PR exercise for the use of torture during interrogations. Meanwhile, Fauda’s Isis storyline stretches credibility, at the same time feeding the worst stereotypes. “It’s a bit lazy. Isis is not really active in Gaza or the West Bank,” says Stern. Buttu adds that the effect is to reinforce the absence of a Palestinian cause. “We don’t have any legitimate grievances. It’s all Islamic-driven,” she says, noting that it “turns Palestinians into irrational figures who want only to kill Israelis”.
    ellauri263.html on line 728: The evolutionary purpose of jealousy isn't relevant anymore: who wants to have children anyway, and by the golden rule of America "look out for N:o 1" everybody is responsible for their own welfare and happiness. We are no fucking communists, after all. Unfortunately, the emotion does still play a role in our lives. Blue compares feeling jealous to having an alarm bell going off in your head.
    ellauri263.html on line 777: We found a lot of ways to support our intellectual belief in compersion with actual psychological rewards. For example, I'd help my partner get matches on Tinder and give him tips on cute bars to take them, and after the dates, he'd tell me how they went and give me a ton of love and affirmation whenever I pouted over him having a good time. Meanwhile, he played wingman with me when I wanted to meet up with a potential flame at a party or concert, and I always made sure to come home to him and share the sexy things I'd done with the new guy and what things I wanted to migrate into our own sex life. In this way, we began to be able to associate positive experiences together (showering each other with affection and affirming the strength of our relationship) with the aftermath of one of us having fun with someone else. When it became clear that these extradyadic encounters only brought us closer, it became easier and easier for us to feel earnest joy for the other person's romantic successes.
    ellauri263.html on line 795: Compersion is life-changing even for people who want to stick to monogamy.
    ellauri264.html on line 66: Tekoäly on fixumpi kuin luulisi – Yhtä älykäs kuin pulu. Iowan yliopiston tutkimus viittaa, että tekoälyn oppimisprosessi vastaa kyyhkyjen tapaa oppia. Incelit eivät oikeasti kaipaa ainoastaan omaa pulua ja siltä pillua, sanoo insändare, joka on izekin ex-incel. Ne kaipaavat jotain tekemistä, työtä, hyväxymistä ja miehen paikkaa yhteiskunnassa, muuta kuin kotona istumista, pelaamista, käteenvetoa ja puhelimella oloa.
    ellauri264.html on line 116: Louis Theroux koitti haastatella 3 amerikan alt-right someinfluensseria: Nick Fuentes, Baked Alaska ja Beardson Beardy huonolla ratamenestyxellä. Haastattelu kääntyi loppupeleissä yleensä haistatteluxi. Niiden ansaintalogiikka oli kerätä inseleiltä klikkejä ja taaloja vizeixi naamioidulla äärioikispropagandalla: white supremacy, racism, antisemitism, misogyny, and homophobia. Mikä näitä kaikkia asenteita yhdistää? No se että white trash incel miekkonen jää keskiöön. Beardylla oli Louis paita päällä mutta poltti hihat kun Louis japitti sen tekemästä nazitervehdyxestä. Get off my property se huusi kuin katolinen viulunsoittaja. Brittany joka oli ensin mukana sai hampaattomalta parrattomalta Beardyltä anaaliraiskausuhkauxen, ilmeisesti leikillisen kuitenkin koska Beardy nauroi uhkauxen jälkeen pitkään ahdistunutta huutonaurua. Nick Fuentes oli 22-vuotias wannabe pikkuhitleri, joka puhui fyyrerinä kansalle vanhempien kellariin rakentamastaan studiosta. Se kehui olevansa jo miljonääri kiitos jokailtaisten kolmituntisten palopuheiden. Peilisilmälasinen Baked koitti nauraa yhtä kovasti, mutta viimeinen tapaaminen päättyi silti suht vihamieliseen vittuiluun. Bakedin puhelimeen sai muutaman taalan hinnasta soittaa rasistisia ja antisemiittisiä haukkuja. Äänet oli muunnettu niin että inselit kuulostivat alaikäisiltä tytöiltä. Baked Alaska on venäläinen uunijäätelö. Sitä sai ravintola Kasakasta Neizytpolulta. .
    ellauri264.html on line 144: Groypers blame the mainstream conservative movement as well as the political left for what they view as "destroying white America". They oppose immigration and globalism. Groypers support "traditional" values and Christianity and oppose feminism and LGBTQ rights. In 2022, Fuentes advocated for a political "white uprising" to bring Donald Trump back to power and "never leave," wanting America to "stop having elections" and abolish the United States Congress. We shall not be replaced as the scum of the earth.
    ellauri264.html on line 286: Rucoile Jumalan sitä nähdä/ ja toiwo wielä hänen auttawan heitä/ v. 19.

    ellauri264.html on line 291: Herättä sijtte idzens ja hänen Canssans tutkisteleman heitäns sencaltaisita olewan ansainnen ricoxillans/ etc. v. 40.

    ellauri264.html on line 298: Val. v. 3:4 Hän on tehnyt minun lihani ja minun nahcani wanhaxi/ ja minun luuni musertanut.

    ellauri264.html on line 302: Val. v. 3:8 Ja waicka minä pargun ja huudan/ nijn hän corwans tukidze minun rucouxestani.

    ellauri264.html on line 347: Val. v. 3:53 He owat minun elämäni cuoppan salwannet/ ja heittänet kiwen minun päälleni.

    ellauri264.html on line 360: Val. v. 3:66 Waino heitä hirmuisudella/ ja hucuta heitä HERran taiwan alda.

    ellauri264.html on line 431: The 2012 Hay festival included writers Martin Amis, Jung Chang, Louis de Bernières, Mark Haddon, Mario Vargas Llosa, Hilary Mantel, Ian McEwan, Michael Morpurgo, Ben Okri, Ian Rankin, Salman Rushdie, Owen Sheers, Jeanette Winterson, comedians Bill Bailey, Rob Brydon, Julian Clary, Jack Dee, Tim Minchin, politicians Peter Hain and Boris Johnson, scientists John D. Barrow, Martin Rees, Simon Singh, and general speakers Harry Belafonte, William Dalrymple, Stephen Fry, A. C. Grayling, Germaine Greer, Michael Ignatieff, and David Starkey. What a pile of turds.
    ellauri264.html on line 433: The festival´s chair, Caroline Michel stated on 18 October 2020 that the event would not return to Abu Dhabi, in support of a curator Caitlin McNamara´s allegation of sexual assault against the tolerance minister of UAE, Sheikh Nahyan bin Mubarak Al Nahyan. McNamara claimed that she was assaulted by the minister when they met at a remote island villa in February 2019 concerning work. The Emirati Foreign Ministry declined to comment on personal matters. When reached out, Britain´s Metropolitan Police confirmed receiving a report of alleged rape on July 3 by a woman. Rape by a woman, WTF??? In November 2020, Caitlin McNamara vowed to fight on following the CPS October 2020 decision to not prosecute the UAE minister because the alleged attack had occurred outside its jurisdiction. McNamara said the decision sent a message to Sheikh Nahyan and others who commit similar crimes "that as long as they´re of economic value to the UK, they can do whatever they want". In an interview with The Sunday Times McNamara said she felt "abandoned" by the Hay Festival, and in an interview on Channel 4 stated that "mistakes" had been made in the way the festival handled her reporting the sexual assault to them which were "very distressing". What a pile of turds.
    ellauri264.html on line 578: 16 If the person said to him, “Let the fat be burned first, and then take whatever you want,” the servant would answer, “No, hand it over now; if you don’t, I’ll take it by force.”
    ellauri264.html on line 689: If you want the opposite (pretty much), have a look at Antonio Mucci, Visicalc, Dan Bricklin and Bob Frankston, by all accounts super nice people, treated everyone great, just all around nice nerds, they were trounced, not many people alive today who know who they are (yes they are both alive as I type this). A guy just took their idea, made his own version and had a ready version when the IBM PC was introduced.
    ellauri264.html on line 710: Zuckerberg didn´t actually think of Facebook himself. Stole bits of ideas from everyone and ignored those that wanted credit. Perpetuated the spr… (more)
    ellauri266.html on line 157: Sarin mezän uumeniin pääsystä haaveilee myös Ilari Vuori. Nuori Werther pääsi helpolla mutta pääsikö se hilloviivalle? Tokkopa. Ilari havittelee dramaturgixi. Tohtorinhatulla ei lähde pillua. Epäsovinnaista rakkautta julmassa yliopistomaailmassa, nyttemmin Tiedekulmassa. Mikaela joka nieli Villen mälliä on Mikon wannabe exä. Niillä on tytär Lotta joka tulee myöhään kotio.
    ellauri266.html on line 174: Sie selbst wurde nach dem Trojanischen Krieg als Sklavin dem Odysseus zugedacht. In der Tragödie Hekabe des Euripides wird sie zur Rächerin, indem sie Polymestor, den Mörder ihres Sohnes Polydoros, blendet. In Ovids Metamorphosen verwandelt sie sich daraufhin zudem in eine Hündin. Hekabe ist die Verkörperung tiefsten Frauenunglücks und -elends im Krieg.
    ellauri266.html on line 333: For fertilization to take place, certain interindividual processes must take place: male and female must get each other´s attention, stimulate each other, secure each other´s cooperation or at least compliance, until the female (or male) finally assumes the appropriate position for receiving the sperm. This known as courtship. Mm, I´m getting the hots by just saying this. General semantics must surely have something to contribute to human sexuality. Mobility increases intelligence, that must be why the in-out moving human male is more intelligent than the female. The adult male is capable of being sexually aroused with or without provocation at practically any time. No wonder females prefer smelly company to no company at all. Except in a KZ lager they tend to lose interest, says Morris Gombinder in Shadows on the Hudson. Desmond Morris has an ingenious argument about the relation of a man´s sexuality to his way of life. "The naked ape is the sexiest man alive!", he says, and means it. "In baboons", he says, "the time from mounting to ejaculation is max 8 seconds, a goldfish´s attention span. Our ladies would never be satisfied with that!" Specialized organs such as lips, ear-lobes, nipples, breasts and genitals are richly endowed with things to lick and suck. Sorry folks, now I just have to take a break for a quick wank, I´m really gettting uncomfortably erect. Thank you. The sexually attractive parts are predominantly at the front, except the arse. Face-to-face sex is personalized sex, said the missionary. From the back you don´t really know who you are interacting with.
    ellauri266.html on line 338: Let me quote a letter from a lady in Oakland after a recent weekend seminar. The lady is intellectually inclined. She goes to my seminars and is excited by my ideas and wants to be friends on an intellectual basis with some of the fine lecturers she has heard. Invariably, she gets the door politely slammed in her face. Men like me are terribly afraid of getting involved in sex with ladies past their better before date. "I am forced to the conclusion," she writes, "that if a man doesn´t want to get involved in sex,´ then he sees no point in talking to a woman at all. A homely looking thinking woman is to most men some sort of contradiction in terms." True, regrettably.
    ellauri266.html on line 351: Ezellasta kielellä lipsutusta ja tuhnuista ajattelua S.I. Hayakawan skottihatun alta.
    ellauri269.html on line 69: Foul gave him a quick wank of reassurance, then turned to address both the clerics and the paladins. "Brothers and sisters you who have gathered here to witness this bear - raise your hands and let the Light illuminate this man."
    ellauri269.html on line 270: Once you reach level 20, or before if you are enjoying yourself and want full access, you will need to purchase Game Time. This will allow you access to all content up to Level 50.
    ellauri269.html on line 280: World of Warcraft has a concept called Realms for dividing players into population groups. The idea is that if everyone who played WoW was all in the game at once, it would be super crowded, very laggy, and generally difficult to play and have a good time. To solve this issue, Blizzard set up multiple servers so that each person can play the game in an environment where there are other players, but not too many other players. Each Realm is a different server and the players on each Realm can see, interact, and play with each other. If you want to play with someone on a different Realm, you can, but we'll get to that in a minute.
    ellauri269.html on line 288: Picking your faction is a major choice because players playing in separate factions cannot interact with one another in a peaceful way. This is factually correct: if you side with the West, you are not expected to show ANY understanding for the East. This includes both chat and other social activities, including forming groups to complete objectives. If you want to play with friends, make sure you join the faction that they are affiliated with.
    ellauri269.html on line 349: Because it operates in support of Russian interests, receives military equipment from the Russian Ministry of Defence (MoD) and uses installations of MoD for training, Wagner Group is frequently considered a de facto unit of the MoD or Russia's military intelligence agency, the GRU. It is widely speculated that the Wagner Group is used by the Russian government to allow for plausible deniability in certain conflicts, and to obscure from public the number of casualties and financial costs of Russia's foreign interventions. It has played a significant role in the 2022 Russian invasion of Ukraine, where, among other activities, it has been reportedly deployed to assassinate Ukrainian leaders, and has widely recruited prisoners and convicts for frontline combat. In December 2022, Pentagon's John Kirby claimed Wagner group has 50,000 fighters in Ukraine, including 10,000 contractors and 40,000 convicts. Others put the number of recruited prisoners at more like 20,000, with the overall number of PMCs present in Ukraine estimated at 20,000. After years of denying links to the Wagner group, Yevgeny Prigozhin, a businessman with close links to Putin, admitted in September 2022 that he "founded" the paramilitary group. Now (Feb 2023) he is angry because he is not getting all the attention and financial support he wants. He says that the Kreml nomenclature are thereby guilty of high treason. *This article may be too long to read and navigate comfortably, so I stop here.
    ellauri269.html on line 554: I always considered the Draenei based off of the Roma people of central/eastern Europe. It does have a large mixture of Hebraic culture infused with Hindi, Islamic, and other cultures. They are sort of wandering exiles who formed their own culture as they traveled, and adapted to new lands. Just like the Draenei.
    ellauri269.html on line 572: You want to draw some jewish heritage inspirations? sure. But Draenei being jewish and only jewish based on these weak arguments? Very doubtful. Hahahahahaha
    ellauri269.html on line 583: Whats your point? Dances do not show anything about actual inspiration. The kaldorei female dance is a French singer’s dance, yet they have no French inspiration. That is saved for the Shal’dorei, who were created over a decade after that dance. You want to draw some jewish heritage inspirations? sure. But Draenei being jewish and only jewish based on these weak arguments?
    ellauri269.html on line 596: Just because Yrel went full on inquisition is not a commentary on Modern Israel and their foreign or domestic politics. Do you want to read my post again? I literally said it’s not that, even if it might come across as that in light of the Jewish inspiration..
    ellauri269.html on line 600: Do you want to read my post again? I literally said it’s not that, even if it might come across as that in light of the Jewish inspiration.
    ellauri270.html on line 300: In “The Daemon Lover,” the second story in The Lottery and Other Stories, Jackson’s collection of 25 tales, the reader sees James Harris only through his fiancée’s eyes as a tall man wearing a blue suit. Neither the reader nor anyone in the story can actually claim to have seen him. Nonetheless, this piece foreshadows the appearance of Harris in such other stories in the collection as “Like Mother Used to Make,” “The Village,” “Of Course,” “Seven Types of Ambiguities,” and “The Tooth.” As James Harris wanders through the book, he sheds the veneer of the ordinary that covers his satanic nature.
    ellauri270.html on line 323: Mr. Graves sets the stool in the center of the square and the black box is placed upon it. Mr. Summers asks for help as he stirs the slips of paper in the box. The people in the crowd hesitate, but after a moment Mr. Martin and his oldest son Baxter step forward to hold the box and stool. The original black box from the original lotteries has been lost, but this current box still predates the memory of any of the villagers. Mr. Summers wishes to make a new box, but the villagers don’t want to “upset tradition” by doing so. Rumor has it that this box contains pieces of the original black box from when the village was first settled. The box is faded and stained with age.
    ellauri270.html on line 363: In the crowd, Mr. Adams turns to Old Man Warner and says that apparently the north village is considering giving up the lottery. Old Man Warner snorts and dismisses this as foolish. He says that next the young folks will want everyone to live in caves or nobody to work. He references the old saying, “lottery in June, corn be heavy soon.” He reminds Mr. Adams that there has always been a lottery, and that it’s bad enough to see Mr. Summers leading the proceedings while joking with everybody. Mrs. Adams intercedes with the information that some places have already stopped the lotteries. Old Man Warner feels there’s “nothing but trouble in that.”
    ellauri272.html on line 338: James LaRue, OIF's director, told The Huffington Post that the Bible pops up regularly on the organization's annual challenged books list, but that it has never before breached the top 10. Secular activists want to point out there is a double standard in the Bible, as the Bible is a book filled with morally questionable actions.
    ellauri276.html on line 745: Ja pou´d gowan hienosti;
    ellauri276.html on line 938: May Bradley lauloi Kaikki iloiset kaverit nauhoitteella, jonka Fred Hamer teki Ludlowissa Shropshiressa vuosina 1959–1966. Se sisällytettiin vuonna 2010 hänen Musical Traditions -antologiaan Sweet Swansea. Rod Stradling huomautti:
    ellauri276.html on line 1033: For your horses want something their bellies to fill.” sillä hevosenne haluavat jotain, mitä heidän vatsansa täyttää."
    ellauri276.html on line 1104: For your horses want something their bellies to fill.” sillä teidän hevosenne haluavat jotain vatsansa täytettävää."
    ellauri276.html on line 1142: For your horses want something their bellies to fill.” Sillä hevosesi haluavat jotain täytettävää vatsaansa."
    ellauri276.html on line 1183: For your horses want something their bellies to fill.” sillä hevosenne haluavat jotain täytettävää vatsaansa."
    ellauri276.html on line 1223: For your horses want something their bellies to fill.” sillä hevosesi haluavat jotain täytettävää vatsaansa."
    ellauri277.html on line 229: In November 1902 Gibran wrote to Peabody, and she invited him to a party held at her house two weeks later. An intense platonic relationship resulted, though Gibran seems to have wanted it to progress to a sexual one. He visited her regularly; they went to musical and artistic events together; they wrote to each other often; and she encouraged his writing and his art. She gave him the nickname that he later used as the title of his most famous book: “the Prophet.” In October 1903 Gibran wrote something in a letter to Peabody that angered her, and their relationship cooled.
    ellauri277.html on line 231: Gibran’s relationship with Peabody ended completely with her marriage in 1906. He then began a secret affair with a pianist, Gertrude Barrie, who, like Peabody, was several years his senior. During this period Haskell introduced him to an aspiring French actress, Émilie Michel, who taught French at Haskell’s school, and the two fell in love. In 1908 Michel suffered an ectopic pregnancy and had an abortion. The relationship waned and ultimately ended, a victim of Michel’s ambitions for a career on the stage.
    ellauri278.html on line 161: Shoot these rabid dogs. Death to this gang who hide their ferocious teeth, their eagle claws, from the people! Down with that vulture Trotsky, from whose mouth a bloody venom drips, putrefying the great ideals of Marxism! ... Down with these abject animals! Let's put an end once and for all to these miserable hybrids of foxes and pigs, these stinking corpses! Let's exterminate the mad dogs of capitalism, who want to tear to pieces the flower of our new Soviet nation! Let's push the bestial hatred they bear our leaders back down their own throats!
    ellauri278.html on line 171: We must bear in mind that the growth of the power of the Soviet state will increase the resistance of the last remnants of the dying classes. It is precisely because they are dying, and living their last days that they will pass from one form of attack to another, to sharper forms of attack, appealing to the backward strata of the population, and mobilizing them against the Soviet power. There is no foul lie or slander that these 'have-beens' would not use against the Soviet power and around which they would not try to mobilize the backward elements. This may give ground for the revival of the activities of the defeated groups of the old counter-revolutionary parties: the Socialist-Revolutionaries, the Mensheviks (glup), the bourgeois Malo-Russian nationalists (double glup) in the centre and in the outlying regions; it may give grounds also for the revival of the activities of the fragments of counter-revolutionary opposition elements from among the Trotskyites and the Right deviationists. Of course, there is nothing terrible in this. But we must bear all this in mind if we want to put an end to these elements quickly and without great loss."
    ellauri281.html on line 160: Shoot these rabid dogs. Death to this gang who hide their ferocious teeth, their eagle claws, from the people! Down with that vulture Trotsky, from whose mouth a bloody venom drips, putrefying the great ideals of Marxism! ... Down with these abject animals! Let's put an end once and for all to these miserable hybrids of foxes and pigs, these stinking corpses! Let's exterminate the mad dogs of capitalism, who want to tear to pieces the flower of our new Soviet nation! Let's push the bestial hatred they bear our leaders back down their own throats!
    ellauri281.html on line 170: We must bear in mind that the growth of the power of the Soviet state will increase the resistance of the last remnants of the dying classes. It is precisely because they are dying, and living their last days that they will pass from one form of attack to another, to sharper forms of attack, appealing to the backward strata of the population, and mobilizing them against the Soviet power. There is no foul lie or slander that these 'have-beens' would not use against the Soviet power and around which they would not try to mobilize the backward elements. This may give ground for the revival of the activities of the defeated groups of the old counter-revolutionary parties: the Socialist-Revolutionaries, the Mensheviks (glup), the bourgeois Malo-Russian nationalists (double glup) in the centre and in the outlying regions; it may give grounds also for the revival of the activities of the fragments of counter-revolutionary opposition elements from among the Trotskyites and the Right deviationists. Of course, there is nothing terrible in this. But we must bear all this in mind if we want to put an end to these elements quickly and without great loss."
    ellauri282.html on line 317: want-seek-to-change-yourself-not-other-people-it-is-easier-to-protect-anthony-de-mello-76-25-95.jpg" />
    ellauri282.html on line 453: Vuoden 1968 lopulla uusi apotti Flavian Burns antoi hänelle vapauden lähteä Aasian kiertueelle, jonka aikana hän tapasi Dalai Laman Intiassa kolme kertaa ja myös tiibetiläisen buddhalaisen dzogchen- mestarin Chatral Rinpochen, jota seurasi yksinäinen pakopaikka lähellä Darjeelingia, Intiaa. Darjeelingissa hän ystävystyi Tsewang Yishey Pemban kanssa, joka on tiibetiläisen yhteisön merkittävä jäsen. Siitä huolimattA, hänen viimeisessä kirjeessään, hän totesi: "Olen yhteydessä näihin uusiin ystäviin, tunnen myös lohtua omassa uskossani Kristukseen ja hänen läsnäoloonsa. Toivon ja uskon että hän voi olla yhtä aikaa läsnä meidän kaikkien sydämissä."
    ellauri282.html on line 459: Joulukuun 10. päivänä 1968 Merton oli Punaisen Ristin Sawang Kaniwat -nimisessä retriittilaitoksessa Samut Prakanissa, maakunnassa lähellä Bangkokia, Thaimaassa ja osallistui luostarikonferenssiin. Aamuistunnossa puhuttuaan hänet löydettiin myöhemmin iltapäivällä mökkinsä huoneesta kuolleena, yllään vain shortsit, selällään ja oikosuljettu Hitachin lattiatuuletin makaa hänen vartalonsa poikki. Hänen työtoverinsa Jean Leclercq toteaa: "Todennäköisesti Thomas Mertonin kuolema johtui osittain sydämen vajaatoiminnasta, osittain sähköiskusta." Koska ruumiinavausta ei tehty, ei ollut sopivaa selitystä Mertonin "takapuolessa" olevalle haavalle, "joka oli vuotanut huomattavasti". Saapuessaan Mertonin viereisestä mökistä benediktiiniritarikunnan kädellinen ja konferenssin puheenjohtaja Rembert Weakland voiteli Mertonin. Hänen ruumiinsa lennätettiin takaisin Yhdysvaltoihin Vietnamista palaavalla Yhdysvaltain sotilaslentokoneella. Hänet on haudattu Getsemanin luostariin. Vuonna 2018 Hugh Turley ja David Martin julkaisivat The Martyrdom of Thomas Merton: An Investigationin, jossa kyseenalaisti vahingossa tapahtuvan sähköiskun teorian. Hämärää!
    ellauri283.html on line 71: Affären innebar att SA inte ville blanda sig i fatwan medan Kerstin ville det. SA ändrade äsikt senare, 2016, men det var för sent. Det värsta hade redan hänt.
    ellauri283.html on line 120: It's different and I loved it! It raises the question is there a God and answers it in a wonderful way. I don't want to give the story away, (aah, WTF, here goes: there is a God, but his name is Allah. Sorry...) - you have to watch and keep your eyes on Barlow, he is an angel for sure! And there really are angels, consult your Bibble (Hebrews) or Koran (passim)!
    ellauri284.html on line 99: Kovalla vaivannäöllä saivat sakut ja britit nää törrtelöpiät usutetuxi toistensa karvoihin 1. maailmansodassa vaikka molemmat oli musulmaaneja. Sakut oli vetäneet turpiin osmanneille viimexi Habsburgien aikana Zentassa 1697 ja anglot valtasivat Ebyktin niinkin äskettäin kuin 1882. Vähän ristiretkeläisiä kyllä huolestutti että voiko noihin galantteihin mahometteihin luottaa kauemmaxi kuiin jaxaa heittää, sanooko ne kesken taistelua kuin savunaama solttu valkoiselle jenkki kessulle underground-comix vihkossa: "- We are in trouble!" "- Whaddaya mean WE whitey?" Niinkuin Macronilta pääsi Kiinan visiitillä, että vaikka EU on USA:n liittolainen, ei sen tarvi olla sen vasalli. Ei tarvi sekaantua kaikkiin USA:n lokaalisiin konflikteihin. Mitääh!? huusi länkkärit. Jipii, ilahtuivat vinkuinkkarit. Kyse oli Taiwanista tietysti.
    ellauri284.html on line 161: Koko 1800-luvun lopun ja 1900-luvun alun Saksa liittyi muiden eurooppalaisten valtojen joukkoon kamppailussa siirtomaaomaisuudesta. Kuten muutkin maailmanvallat (so. britit, mukaan lukien Yhdysvallat ja Japani), Saksa alkoi puuttua Kiinan paikallisiin asioihin. Kun kaksi saksalaista lähetyssaarnaajaa sai surmansa Juyen välikohtauksessa vuonna 1897, Kiinan oli pakko suostua Kiautschou Bayn oluttehtaan toimilupaan Shantungissa (nykyinen Shandong ) Saksalle vuonna 1898 99 vuoden vuokrasopimuksella. Saksa alkoi sitten vahvistaa vaikutusvaltaansa muualla provinssissa ja rakensi Tsingtaon kaupungin ja sataman, josta tuli Kaiserlichen merijalkaväen saksalaisen Itä-Aasian laivueen tukikohta.(Saksan laivasto), joka toimi Saksan siirtokuntien tukena Tyynellämerellä. Iso-Britannia suhtautui saxalaiseen olueen Kiinassa epäluuloisesti ja vuokrasi Weihaiwein, myös Shantungissa, merisatamaksi ja hiilivoimalaitokseksi. Venäjä vuokrasi oman asemansa Port Arthurissa (nykyinen Lüshunkou ) ja Ranska Kwang-Chou-Wanissa. Iso-Britannia alkoi myös luoda läheisiä suhteita Japaniin, ja diplomaattisuhteet tiivistyivät, kun anglo-japanilainen liitto allekirjoitettiin 30. tammikuuta 1902. Japani näki liiton välttämättömänä pelotteena pääkilpailijalleen Venäjälle. Japani osoitti potentiaalinsa voitolla Venäjän ja Japanin sodassa 1904–1905, ja liitto jatkui ensimmäiseen maailmansotaan.
    ellauri284.html on line 224: Blackadder Goes Forth tapahtuu vuonna 1917 länsirintamalle ensimmäisen maailmansodan juoksuhaudoissa. Kapteeni Edmund Blackadder (Rowan Atkinson) on brittiarmeijan ammattisotilas, joka on suuren sodan puhkeamiseen asti nauttinut suhteellisen vaarattomista tilanteista olemassaolostaan ​​taistelevia alkuperäiskansoja vastaan, jotka olivat yleensä "kaksi jalkaa pitkiä ja aseistettuja kuivatulla ruoholla". Joutuessaan loukkuun juoksuhaudoissa suunnitellun toisen "ison työnnön" aikana, hänen huolensa on välttää hänen lähettämisensä "yli huipulle" varmaan kuolemaan. Sarja kertoo siis Blackadderin yrityksistä paeta juoksuhaudoista erilaisten suunnitelmien kautta, joista suurin osa epäonnistuu huonon onnen, väärinkäsitysten ja tovereiden yleisen epäpätevyyden vuoksi. Yllämainitut toverit ovat hänen toissijainen, idealistinen edvardiaaninen ylemmäs- luutnantti George St Barleigh (Hugh Laurie) ja heidän syvästi tyhmä mutta sitkeä sotamies S. Baldrick (Tony Robinson).
    ellauri284.html on line 243: Sarja muistelee useita todellisia historiallisia sodan tapahtumia, kuten joulutauon vuonna 1914. Blackadder muistelee tapahtumaa: "Molemmat osapuolet etenivät yhden joulupisun aikana pidemmälle kuin kahden ja puolen seuraavan sodan vuoden aikana." Viitataan myös aikakauden populaarikulttuuriin sekä aiempaan sarjaan. Jaksossa "Private Plane" nähdään Lord Flashheartin ja Bobin hahmojen paluu toisesta sarjan "Bells" -jaksosta sekä myös saksalaisen lentävä ässä, Baron von Richthofen. Kolmannen jakson "Major Star" juonen lanka sisältää Blackadderin vastenmielisyyden mykkäelokuvatähteen Charlie Chapliniin, jota hän pitää "yhtä hauskana kuin saada nuoli kaulan läpi ja sitten huomata, että siihen on sidottu bensalasku". Totta Mooses Rowan, Charlie on täysin huumoriton kaatuilija. Toinen viittaus viitattiin Sudaniin, jonka sodan veteraani Blackadder oli. Toisin kuin brittien messinki, Blackadder näkee brittien liiallisen itseluottamuksen läpi: aikaisemmat voitot jotka tukahduttivat siirtomaakapinat olivat valmistautumista suureen siirtomaasotaan.
    ellauri284.html on line 636: Investigators “basically wanted to know who our investors are. And we shared the list with them,” Goyal said. “They took two years to cross-check our list of investors and finally they said that ‘you are absolutely clean.’ ”
    ellauri285.html on line 224: Still, there will be cases in which "we" want to positively evaluate, even praise, beliefs that fail to constitute knowledge. Puhu vaan izestäsi paska. Tää on taas tätä jenkkiläistä uskosotapropagandaa johon sikäläinen usko, toivo ja luottokelpoisuus perustuvat. Jiihaad! Camoon Silver!
    ellauri285.html on line 604: Taiwan lakkautti vuodesta 1949 voimassa olleen sotatilan. Helsingin uuden oopperatalon rakennustyöt käynnistyivät.
    ellauri294.html on line 70: Heettiläiskaudella Konya tunnettiin nimellä Kawana . Tämä muuttui myöhemmin nimexi Kawania tai Kaoania Fryygian ja Luuvian aikana.
    ellauri294.html on line 73: Ikónion on kansanhellenismi luuvilaisesta nimestä Ikkuwaniya. Persian rumin runoilija kuoli Konyassa 1273. Rumi oli sufi, sievästi pyörähtelevä eikä uliseva dervishi.
    ellauri294.html on line 640:
    Marja Liisa Swanz sai Unescolta ysikymppisenä hopeisen lautasen.

    ellauri297.html on line 48: Founder, Ammi Ruhama Community Christian Union. Living History Interpretor. Baker. Milford Baby and Toddler Group Organizer. Bada Bing Pizza Chef. Sunnymead Residential Home Kitchen Assistant. Be Life Cafe and Marketplace Operations Personnel. Summit Christian Academy Steward. I vacuum the hallways, library, music room and preschool room. I clean the bathrooms and mop the gym/cafeteria floor. I also maintain the general premises. Dan the Handy Man. Do you need handy work done around your house, but don't want to have to call in the big guys with the big price? My name is Daniel Bacon and I am an experienced handy man living right here in Clarks Summit. If you need your lawn cut, bushes trimmed, garden weeded, fence painted / stained or just about any other job done, then call me at 570-585-9595 or email me at contactdanielbacon@gmail.com and we'll set up a time for me to come and see if I am the right man for the job. Wait! let me…Show more... (Ouch!) I emptied the front cash register as well as filling in as a sandwich maker. I created schedules and activities for the campers and staff to participate in. I also led worship during the evenings. Student janitor.
    ellauri299.html on line 296: Jerzy Popiełuszko ( puolalainen ääntäminen: [ˈjɛʐɨ popʲɛˈwuʂkɔ] , syntynyt Alfons Popiełuszko; 14. syyskuuta 1947–19. lokakuuta 1984) oli puolalainen roomalaiskatolinen pappi, joka liittyi Puolan oppositio -ammattiliittoon Solidarity anticommunistina. Hänet murhasi vuonna 1984 kolme Służba Bezpieczeństwan (sisäasiainministeriön turvallisuuspalvelu) agenttia. Heidät tuomittiin pian sen jälkeen ja tuomittiin murhasta. Syyllisiä tuomittiin, mutta vieläkään ei tarkoin tiedetä, mitkä tahot olivat murhan toimeksiantajia. Tuomitut ovat vapaalla jalalla jo aikapäiviä.
    ellauri299.html on line 508: Cowley ja Russell olivat väärässä. Ikuisen elämän lisäxi pitää muistaa erixeen pyytää ikuista nuoruutta ettei käy kuin Sibyllalle. T. S. Eliot Jätemaa intro: Nam Sibyllam quidem Cumis ego ipse oculis meis vidi in ampulla pendere, et cum illi pueri dicerent: Sibylla ti theleis; respondebat illa: apothanein thelo. [I have seen with my own eyes the Sibyl hanging in a jar, and when the boys asked her " What do you want? " She answered, " I want to die. "] —Petronius, Satyricon
    ellauri301.html on line 92: So strahlend Mankells Karriere auch war, sein Privatleben war von vielen Tiefen geprägt. Da war zum einen die Scheidung seiner Eltern, als Henning gerade ein Jahr alt war. In seinen Zwanzigern beging Mutter Birgitta Selbstmord. Er war Anhänger der 68er Bewegung und protestierte zum Beispiel gegen den Vietnamkrieg und die Apartheid in Südafrika. Tatsächlich entwickelte Mankell nach einer Reise eine tiefe Bindung zu dem Kontinent und pendelte schließlich oft zwischen seiner Heimat und Mosambik hin und her, lebte sogar zwei Jahre lang in Sambia und bezeichnete seine Reisen nach Afrika als "nach Hause kommen".
    ellauri301.html on line 228: Krotoa was born in 1643 as a member of the !Uriǁ’aeǀona (Strandlopers) people, and the niece of Autshumao, a Khoi chieftain and trader. At the age of twelve, she was taken to work in the household of Jan van Riebeeck, the first governor of the Cape colony. As a teenager, she learned Dutch and Portuguese and, like her uncle, worked as an interpreter for the Dutch who wanted to trade goods for cattle. "!Oroǀõas" received goods such as tobacco, brandy, bread, beads, copper and iron for her services. In exchange, when she visited her family her Dutch masters expected her to return with cattle, horses, seed pearls, amber, tusks, and hides. Unlike her uncle, however, who just Spike hottentot, "!Oroǀõas" was able to obtain a higher position within the Dutch hierarchy as she additionally served as a trading agent, ambassador for a high ranking chief and peace negotiator in time of war. Her story exemplifies the initial dependency of the Dutch newcomers on the natives, who were able to provide reasonably reliable information about the local inhabitants.
    ellauri301.html on line 256: De Klerk became Deputy President in Mandela´s ANC-led coalition, the Government of National Unity. In this position, he supported the government´s continued liberal economic policies but opposed the Truth and Reconciliation Commission set up to investigate past human rights abuses because he wanted total amnesty for political crimes. His working relationship with Mandela was strained, although he later spoke fondly of him, when the coon finally died 2013. De Clerck ize kuoli viime vuonna eli 2021.
    ellauri301.html on line 316: Moporesitente wa Aforika Borwa (Tswana)
    ellauri302.html on line 139: Don't climb too high, Sarah. Do you hear? Not too high... For if you do, some fine day you'll fall and break your neck. (Shakes a warning finger at her.) And don't try to break into the upper crust. Don't, I tell you. You've a home of your own, — stay there. You've got bread, — eat. But don't intrude where you're not wanted... Every dog must know his own kennel. Here at least it is all cash on delivery. Upstairs is kosher, downstairs is treif. Keep them separate, is all I say.
    ellauri302.html on line 141: Enter Shloyme and Hindel. The first is a tall, sturdy chap; wears long boots and a short coat. He is a knavish fellow, whose eyes blink with stealthy cunning as he speaks. The second is a rather old girl, with a wan face and wearing clothes much too young for her years. Shloyme and Hindel are evidently at ease and feel at home. They are clearly evil characters.
    ellauri302.html on line 210: Yekel Your mother... your mother sent you... here! (With a loud outcry.) Your mother! (Dragging her upstairs.) She'll lead you to ruin yet! Something draws her to it!... She wants her daughter to be what the mother was...
    ellauri302.html on line 251: Manke, steals from her compartment into the basement. She is half-dressed, with a shawl thrown over her private parts. Her colored stockings are visible, and her hair is in disorder. Her eyes sparkle with wanton cunning. Her face is long, and insolently pretty; she is quite young. A lock of hair falls over her forehead. Her eyes blink as she speaks, and her whole body quivers. She looks about in surprise. What? Nobody here?
    ellauri302.html on line 294: Are you cold, Rifkele darling? Nestle close to me... Ever so close... Warm yourself next to me. So. Come, let's sit down here on the lounge. (Leads Rifkele to a lounge; they sit down.) Just like this... Now rest your face snugly in my bosom. So. Just like that. And let your body touch mine... It's so cool... as if water were running between us. (Pause.) I uncovered your breasts and washed them with the rainwater that trickled down my arms. Your breasts are so white and soft. And the blood in them cools under the touch, just like white snow, — like frozen water... and their fragrance is like the grass on the meadows. And I let down your hair so... (Buns her fingers through RifkeWs hair.) And I held them like this in the rain and washed them. How sweet they smell... Like the rain itself... (She huries her face in Rifkele's hair.) Yes, I can smell the scent of the May rain in them... So light, so fine... And fresh... as the grass on the meadows... as the apple on the bough... So. Cool me, refresh me with your tresses. (She washes her face in Rifkele^s hair.) Cool me, — so. But wait... I'll comb you as if you were a bride... a nice part and two long, black braids. (Does so.) Do you want me to, Rifkele? Do you?
    ellauri302.html on line 310: Manke, lowering her voice, and whispering into Bifkele' s ear. And then we go to sleep together. Nobody sees, nobody hears. Only you and I. Like this. (Clasps Bifkele tightly to herself.) Do you want to sleep with me tonight like this? Eh?
    ellauri302.html on line 318: Manke Wait, Rifkele, wait a second. (Reflects for a moment.) Do you want to go away from here with me? We'll be together days and nights at a time. Your father won't be there, nor your mother... Nobody 'll scold you... or beat you...
    ellauri302.html on line 322: Manke No. We'll run away this very night, — with Hindel, to her house... She has a house with Shloyme, she told me. You'll see how nice everything will be... Young folks will be there aplenty, — army officers... and we'll be together, all by ourselves, all day long. We'll dress just like the officers and go horseback-riding. Come, Rifkele, — do you want to?
    ellauri302.html on line 361: Sarah (arises. To Yekel.) It makes no difference to me, — one place or another, your, mine or the bike basement. If you want me to leave, all right. I'll go. The devil won't take me long.. I'll earn my keep, all right, wherever I may be, the good old way. (Resumes her packing, silently. Pause.)
    ellauri302.html on line 376: Sarah: So you want to go back to the basement? — Into the basement, then! Much I care! (Resumes her packing.) He wants to ruin us completely. What has come over the man? (For a moment she is absorbed in reflection.) If you're going to stand there like a lunatic, I'll get busy myself! (Takes off her diamond ear-rings.) I'll go over to Shloyme's and give him my diamond ear-rings. (From her bundle she draws out a golden chain.) And if he holds back, I'll add a hundred rouble note. (She searches YeheVs trousers pocket for his pockethook. He offers no resistance.) Within fifteen minutes (Throwing a shawl over her shoulders.) Rifkele will be here. (As she leaves.) Shloyme will do that for me. (Slams the door behind her.)
    ellauri302.html on line 438: Yekel: I am a woeful sinner. I know it well. He should have broken my feet beneath me, — or taken away my life in its prime. But what did He want of my daughter? My poor, blameless daughter?
    ellauri302.html on line 468: Yekel, as if to himself. One thing I want to ask her. One thing only. But she must tell me the truth, — the whole truth. Yes, or no.
    ellauri302.html on line 501: Reb Ali, gesticulating. Let's get right down to business. (To the stranger, pointing to Tekel.) This gentleman wishes to unite families with you. He has an excellent daughter and wants as her husband a scholar well versed in Rabbinical lore. He'll support the couple for life.
    ellauri309.html on line 303: But words have great power–to harm, to heal, to teach, to entertain. A writer, one who wants to forge a career
    ellauri309.html on line 306: writer who started this (Tomi something foreign, a coon in dreadlocks), or the title of her book or mine. I don’t want
    ellauri309.html on line 307: this to escalate any more than it has. I don’t want my readers to go on the
    ellauri309.html on line 310: I simply want to set the record straight. I’m Nora
    ellauri309.html on line 944: schwanger? ohne Scheiss? Mikki on vihainen kun Laura siivoaa ize omaa
    ellauri309.html on line 974:
    Eine der größten Liebesgeschichten des 20. Jahrhunderts ist Haben und Nichthaben zuzuschreiben: Das spätere Ehepaar Humphrey Bogart und Lauren Bacall lernte sich während der Dreharbeiten kennen. Bogart spielt darin den romantischen Helden Harry Morgan, der sich vom zynischen Beobachter zum aktiven Kämpfer wandelt. Morgan, Besitzer eines Kabinenbootes auf der Insel Martinique, wird von dem Gaullisten Gerard gebeten, einen französischen Untergrundkämpfer einzuschmuggeln. Morgan weigert sich, Politik ist nicht seine Sache. Seine Meinung ändert sich, als er die junge Amerikanerin Marie kennen lernt. Um ihr ein Flugticket zu kaufen, nimmt er den abenteuerlichen Job an. Nach einer Vorlage von Ernest Hemingway entstand ein Film voller Dramatik und erotischer Spannung.

    ellauri309.html on line 1040: -farssikoulu. Mutta kukapa ei ole käynyt elokuvissa?" Katharine Hepburn oli yhtä väsyttävä kuin Audrey oli erektiili. Cary Grant oli puiseva. Nämä Hepburnit eivät olleet mitään sukua. Katharine oli väkäleukainen Connecticut Yankee, Audrey oli Belgiassa syntynyt skottijaarlin wannabe sukulainen britti joka otti siltä nimen oltuaan joku proosallinen Rouston.
    ellauri310.html on line 584: Yes. Fact-checking the Genius movie confirmed that Thomas Wolfe's tendency to not want to cut anything from his novels and to continually want to add more pages, presented a challenge for his editor, Max Perkins. At the insistence of Perkins, Wolfe reluctantly agreed to cut 90,000 words from his first novel, Look Homeward, Angel (1929).
    ellauri311.html on line 58: and Divine Feminine Educator. Do you want to claim your Yoni and have a
    ellauri311.html on line 79: Honor your sexuality, get deeply connected to the wants, needs, and desires of your Yoni and fill yourself up with, say, a deodorant bottle cap instead of looking for a man to do that for you.
    ellauri311.html on line 577: phenomenon may, in some cases, be triggered by people hearing "what they want to
    ellauri313.html on line 170: Morrison wanted to call the novel War but was overridden by her editor. Ei kyllä tässä lähes kaikki ovat lakukeppejä. Rotuviha on korvautunut tässä niteessä miesvihalla. Throughout the novel, the women of the Convent provide a safe haven for all those who come to its doorstep. However, the Convent is widely perceived as a corrupting influence in Ruby (a negro town), the source of their problems rather than where problems must go because of Ruby's intolerant atmosphere. Both the men of Haven and Ruby exhibit a patriarchal nature. This is seen through their intense hatred for the Convent women who are unconventional and nonconforming.
    ellauri315.html on line 119: Dann müßt ich zum Meister wandern, der wohnt am Ende wohl weit,
    ellauri316.html on line 824: “The Germans know, as many Americans do not, that the war was won at Stalingrad and that 27 million Soviet citizens died in the fight against the Wehrmacht,” Neiman told ARTnews. “Among decent Germans who want to acknowledge their country’s crimes, there is a strong sense of guilt for the war against the Russians.”
    ellauri316.html on line 836: Vlasov wanted to form a Russian anti-Soviet force, but Hitler was reluctant, fearing latent sympathies with Moscow. But by late 1944, he had few other options. Vlasov finally prevailed on Heinrich Himmler, the brutal SS chief. Himmler in turn managed to convince the increasingly desperate Hitler.
    ellauri318.html on line 311: He used to be a respected mobster. Respectable monster. Niinkuin Vapiduxen Radovan Kranjic. Mitä helvettiä nää länkkärikynäilijät kunnioittaa jotain roistoja? Ovat izekin jotain wannabe pikkukonnia. Länkkärit ei tahdo olla altruisteja jollei ne saa siitä ize jotain hyötyä.
    ellauri321.html on line 80: (1778-1830) oli irlantilaissyntyinen wannabe filosofi (taidekriitikko) joka koitti todistella ettei apinan motiivi olisikaan self interest. Siitä tuli järvipoeettojen bändäri kunnes nämä kyllästyivät sen huoraamiseen. Se luki myös Godwinia ja Burkea ja piti molemmista. Se kirjoitti pahansisuisen esseen vihaamisen puolesta.
    ellauri321.html on line 152: here they are incorporated into one of the finest systems of population which has ever appeared, and which will hereafter become distinct by the power of the different climates they inhabit. The American ought therefore to love this country much better than that wherein either he or his forefathers were born. Here the rewards of his industry follow with equal steps the progress of his labour; his labour is founded on the basis of nature: self-interest; can it want a stronger allurement?
    ellauri321.html on line 161: By living in or near the woods, their actions are regulated by the wildness of the neighbourhood. The deer often come to eat their grain, the wolves to destroy their sheep, the bears to kill their hogs, the foxes to catch their poultry. This surrounding hostility, immediately puts the gun into their hands; they watch 67 watch these animals, they kill some; and thus by defending their property, they soon become professed hunters; this is the progress; once hunters, farewell to the plough. The chase renders them ferocious, gloomy, and unsociable; a hunter wants no neighbour, he rather hates them, because he dreads the competition. In a little time their success in the woods makes them neglect their tillage. They trust to the natural fecundity of the earth, and therefore do little; carelessness in fencing, often exposes what little they sow to destruction; they are not at home to watch;
    ellauri321.html on line 166: Near the great woods, in the last inhabited districts men seem to be placed still farther beyond the reach of government, which in some measure leaves them to themselves. How can it pervade every corner; as they were driven there by misfortunes, tunes, necessity of beginnings, desire of acquiring large tracks of land, idleness, frequent want of œconomy, ancient debts; the re-union of such people does not afford a very pleasing spectacle. When discord, want of unity and friendship; when either drunkenness or idleness prevail in such remote districts; contention, inactivity, and wretchedness must ensue. There are not the same remedies to these evils as in a long established community. The few magistrates they have, are in general little better than the rest; they are often in a perfect state of war; that of man against man, sometimes decided by blows, sometimes by means of the law; that of man against every wild inhabitant of these venerable woods, of which they are come to dispossess them. There men appear to be no better than carnivorous animals of a superior rank, living on the flesh of wild animals when they can catch them, and when they are not able, they subsist on grain. Eating of wild meat, whatever you may think, tends to alter their temper.
    ellauri321.html on line 170: As I have endeavoured to shew you how Europeans become Americans; it may not be disagreeable to shew you likewise how the various Christian sects introduced, wear out, and how religious indifference becomes prevalent. When any considerable number of a particular sect happen to dwell contiguous to each other, they immediately erect a temple, and there worship the Divinity agreeably to 62 their own peculiar ideas. Nobody disturbs them. If any new sect springs up in Europe, it may happen that many of its professors will come and settle in America. As they bring their zeal with them, they are at liberty to make proselytes if they can, and to build a meeting and to follow the dictates of their consciences; for neither the government nor any other power interferes. If they are peaceable subjects, and are industrious, what is it to their neighbours how and in what manner they think fit to address their prayers to the Supreme Being? But if the sectaries are not settled close together, if they are mixed with other denominations, their zeal will cool for want of fuel, and will be extinguished in a little time. Then the Americans become as to religion, what they are as to country, allied to all. In them the name of Englishman, Frenchman, and European is lost, and in like manner, the strict modes of Christianity as practised in Europe are lost also.
    ellauri321.html on line 175: Thus our bad people are those who are half cultivators and half hunters; and the worst of them are those who have degenerated altogether into the hunting state. As old ploughmen and new men of the woods, as Europeans and new made Indians, they contract the vices of both; they adopt the moroseness and ferocity of a native, without his mildness, or even his industry at home. If manners are not refined, at least they are rendered simple and inoffensive by tilling the earth; all our wants are supplied by it, our time is divided between labour and rest, and leaves none for the commission of great misdeeds. As hunters it is divided between the toil of the chase, the idleness of repose, or the indulgence of inebriation.
    ellauri321.html on line 178: yet, when it is united with bad luck, it leads to want: want stimulates that propensity to rapacity and injustice, too natural to needy men, which is the 70 the fatal gradation. After this explanation of the effects which follow by living in the woods, shall we yet vainly flatter ourselves with the hope of converting the Indians? We should rather begin with converting our back-settlers. the back-settlers of both the Carolinas, Virginia, and many other parts, have been long a set of lawless people; it has been even dangerous to travel among them.
    ellauri321.html on line 182: There is room for every body in America; has he any particular talent, or industry? he exerts it in order to procure a livelihood, and it succeeds. Is he a merchant? the avenues of trade are infinite; is he eminent in any respect? he will be employed and respected. Does he love a country life? pleasant farms present themselves; he may purchase what he wants, and thereby become an American farmer. Is he a labourer, sober and industrious? he need not go many miles, nor receive many informations before he will be hired, well fed at the table of his employer, and paid four or five times more than he can get in Europe. Does he want uncultivated lands? Thousands of acres present themselves, which he may purchase cheap. Whatever be his talents or inclinations, if they are moderate, he may satisfy them. I do not mean that every one who comes will grow rich in a little time; no, but he may procure an easy, decent low maintenance, by his industry. Instead of starving he will be fed, instead of being idle he will have employment; and these are riches enough for such men as come over here.
    ellauri321.html on line 200: Andrew, what step do you intend to take in order to become rich? Have you brought any money with you, Andrew? I'll tell you what I intend to do; I'll send you to my house, where you shall stay two or three weeks, there you must exercise yourself with the axe, that is the principal tool the Americans want, and particularly the back-settlers. Can your wife spin? Well then as soon as you are able to handle the axe, you shall go and live with Mr. P. R. a particular friend of mine, who will give you four dollars per month, for the first six, and the usual price of five as long as you remain with him. I shall place your wife in another house, where she shall receive half a dollar a week for spinning; and your son a dollar a month to drive the team.
    ellauri321.html on line 209: Tämä hyvä, mutta Froggie pilaa antamansa suotuisan vaikutelman loppuluvussa jossa se päättää ryhtyäkin punanahaxi. The Supreme Being does not reside in peculiar churches or communities; he is equally the great Manitou of the woods and of the plains; and even in the gloom, the obscurity of those very woods, his justice may be as well understood and felt as in the most sumptuous temples. Each worship with us, hath, you know, its peculiar political tendency; there it has none but to inspire gratitude and truth: their tender minds shall receive no other idea of the Supreme Being, than that of the father of all men, who requires nothing more of them than what tends to make us others happy. We shall say with them. Soungwanèha, èsa caurounkyawga, nughwonshauza neattèwek, nèsalanga. — Our father, be thy will done in earth as it is in great heaven.
    ellauri321.html on line 270: I believe that if Putin is allowed to take Ukraine it will embolden him to continue the war and take other countries that have something that he wants. I think the free world must continue to support Ukraine and other countries in precarious situations like South Korea and Taiwan. If the free world doesn’t support them, it will just be a matter of time before they are attacked. If you don’t believe in freedom, move to North Korea, Russia, China or any of the other countries with dictators, kings or a supreme being. Our children´s and grandchildren’s options and futures are at stake.
    ellauri322.html on line 238: After the mother's death, Mary Wollstonecraft left home again, to live with her friend, Fanny Blood, who was at Walham Green. In 1782 she went to nurse a manned sister through a dangerous illness. The father's need of support next pressed upon her. He had spent not only his own money, but also the little that had been specially reserved for his children. It is said to be the privilege of a passionate man that he always gets what he wants; he gets to be avoided, and they never find a convenient corner of their own who shut themselves out from the kindly fellowship of life.
    ellauri322.html on line 421: “As flies to wanton boys, are we to the gods;
    ellauri323.html on line 60: Victoria Mary Sackville-West was the only child of Lionel Edward, third Baron of Sackville, and Victoria Josepha Dolores Catalina Sackville-West, his first cousin and the illegitimate daughter of the diplomat Sir Lionel Sackville-West. She was educated privately. As a child she started to write poetry, writing her first ballads at the age of 11. "I don't remember either my father or my mother very vividly at that time, except that Dada used to take me for terribly long walks and talk to me about science, principally Darwin, and I liked him a great deal better than mother, of whose quick temper I was frightened." (from Portrait of a Marriage by Nigel Nicolson, 1973) Vita's mother considered her ugly - she was bony, she had long legs, straight hair, and she wanted to be as boyish as possible.
    ellauri324.html on line 223: The rabbi answered with a smile: “I just wanted to tell you that I, too, talk to others only about the good things I do. My faults I never talk about, just like you...”
    ellauri324.html on line 243:
  • They want to be the center of attention.
    ellauri324.html on line 271: The above is a map of the SF Bay area, a densely populated part of California with an almost continuous ring of urban development. As you would expect, the traffic can be pretty bad, so you might expect that there would be a single circular light rail system linking the many cities around the bay; there is not: if I want to travel from my place to Fremont by rail alone, the quickest way with the most frequent service is via San Francisco. US infrastructure is truly abysmal.
    ellauri324.html on line 295: There will then be a chip that can do everything i mentioned before however this will be implanted within you and the idea will be that its safe secure trendy and it makes you like a GOD! celebrities professors of high institutions law enforcement CEOS etc will all have this making it more intriguing to the masses. In a short amount of time this will edge out physical currency however people will have an option. When enough people have accepted this IT WILL BECOME MANDATORY YOU WILL NOT BE ABLE TO BUY OR SELL, TRAVEL OR WORK, TAKE THE BUS THE TRAIN EAT AT RESTAURANTS OR EVEN APPLY TO SCHOOLS OR WORK JOBS. Within your schools and hospitals and workplaces your bosses and teachers will make this mandatory and you will have to comply before you end up in jail or confinement. At this point you will have to either leave and take up whatever supplies you have or join people who are like minded in not conforming to the technological abomination. People at this time will be very sick and people in America have been getting more sick with food pollution stress fatigue etc they will rely on the system for their medication with heart and organ failures depression and psychosis tumors and boils that will seem to have no cure. People who rely on the system will have a harder time withdrawing from it. Addictions food intolerances vaccine epidemics and malnutrition exhaustion fatigue depression and violence will be on the rise to a point where they could and want to call for martial law.
    ellauri325.html on line 106: Ajatus, joka syntyi ensimmäisen kerran Neuvostoliiton hämärävuosina, kultainen miljardi on salaliittoteoria, jonka mukaan miljardin wannabe miljardöörin maailmanlaajuisen länsieliitin salaliitto pyrkii hamstraamaan maailman rikkauksia ja resursseja jättäen muun planeetan kärsimään ja kurjistumaan, nälkään kuolemaan ja nuolemaan näppejään. Presidentti Vladimir Putin ja muut Kremlin korkeat virkamiehet ovat vuosien ajan pitäneet ajatusta Venäjällä äärimmäisenä teoriana hyökkäyslinjana länttä vastaan ​​Ukrainan konfliktin aiheuttamien suhteiden katketessa.
    ellauri325.html on line 151: Kylläpä on kehnoa puujalkahuumoria tehtailtu propagandan nimissä suomen sotaurhoille talvi- ja varsinkin jatkosodassa. Niin puisevaa että tikut jää lukijalle käteen. Pahimpia syntisiä ovat Swan Ohto Antero Manninen "Bosambo" ja Reijo "Repe" Helismaa eli Erho. Niiden sepustuxia lukiessa melkein hävettää. Jees, propagandaa! huudahtaa kolmas puu-ukko Armas J. Pulla. Oliskohan niin että oikeistolaisuus synnyttää aivan erityisen puisevaa propagandaläjää. Suhtautukaa vakavasti propagandaan pojat! Jäi vähän vaivaamaan että oikeinko se Stalin tarjosi Tannerille ja Mannerheimille parempia rauhanehtoja 1941 kuin se sai 1940 tai 1944? No oli varmaan liian myöhäistä kun Aatu oli siihen mennessä nielaissut Lapista ei vaan peukaloa vaan koko käden.
    ellauri325.html on line 643: Kotinsa ruotsinkielisestä taustasta huolimatta Granfelt maanikkona omaksui fennomanian aatteen ja suomen kielen. Hän kannatti fennomaanien kansansivistysihanteita ja omistautui rahvaalle suunnatun valistustyön kehittämiselle. Granfeltin tavoitteena oli suomalaisten kansallinen yhdentyminen, jota palvelemaan erilaiset sivistyslaitokset oli hierarkkisesti asetettava. Hän haki syksyllä 1878 neljä vuotta aiemmin perustetun Kansanvalistusseuran sihteerin tointa, joka oli vapautunut Jaakko Päivärinnan jouduttua eroamaan epäselvyyxien vuoxi. Jakob (Jaakko) Haniel Päivärinta (sukunimi vuoteen 1877 Swan; 23. lokakuuta 1847 Purmo – 6. heinäkuuta 1902 Lammi) oli suomalainen pappi, valtiopäivämies, opettaja ja kirjailija. Jaakko oli Anni Swanin setä. Tuleva kirjailija Anni Swan asui vuosina 1890–1892 setänsä Jaakko Päivärinnan perheen luona käydessään Mikkelin tyttökoulua. Hän oli vielä perheen kotiopettajana kesällä 1895 Lammilla. Matti Kuusi ohitti poikasena Anni Swanin joka mies oli Otto Manninen.
    ellauri325.html on line 731: Matista tuli 60-luvulla afrikanisti sattumalta Jane Györgyn tehtyä oharit. Muuan vanha neiti suhtautui lähentelyyn lievästi sanoen epäluuloisesti. Kovan ähellyxen perästä Masa pääsi kuin pääsikin neidin kaislahameen alle. Kielitaito kehittyi siinä samalla, kun käytettiin väliin ndongan kieltä ja väliin kwanyamaa.
    ellauri327.html on line 83: wanngalleries.com/full//309/805309.jpg" height="200px" />
    ellauri327.html on line 98: Yipei Feng: As a Ukrainian citizen, I want Ukraine to reunite with Russia. After all, we've always been stronger together as a people then divided and at odds. What do Russians and Ukrainians think about this?
    ellauri327.html on line 100: Curtis Morgan: No offence, honest!, but are you for real? A Ukrainian citizen living in New York, that is possible. But a Ukrainian citizen named 'Yipei Feng'? If what I have heard and read on the news is anything to go by, Ukranians just do not have names like 'Yipei Feng'. Yipei Feng? Ukranian? I think not! Chinese softly pushing the CCP party line (China and Taiwan getting back together …even if China uses force), that I can believe. Maybe Feng Yipei has since changed her name to “Curtis Morgan”, but the original was obviously a Chinese name. And her history of questions has her claiming she is British as well. In addition, a general obvious pro-China, pro-Russia, ant-West and anti-Ukraine slant in her questions.
    ellauri330.html on line 360: Punamustat aatoxet eivät olleet Forsmaneille vieraita, esimerkixi Herr Schmoller: Schmoller fügte 1900 seinem „Grundriß der Allgemeinen Volkswirtschaftslehre“ einen Abschnitt zu „Rassen und Völkern“ hinzu und beschrieb darin auf zwanzig Seiten mit angeblichen Erkenntnissen über diverse Persönlichkeitsmerkmale eine hierarchische Ordnung von „Rassen“, die er als eine Grundlage der Ökonomik darstellte. Tämän ilmitultua sakut lakkasivat jakamasta Schmoller-mitalia. Nazi-Ernst otti Rafun senttarixi Uuteen Suomeen.
    ellauri330.html on line 537: Lauri. Ei niin, waan "suu awaa kaikkein paimenten" pitää sinun laulaman. Mutta olkoon tässä jo kylliksi, waikene, kuultele ja pane ſuus koreaksi kirkkoſuukſi“, koska minä saarnaan. Niin, nokipoika, lainaa sinä minulle mieles ja wapaa kieles. Minä tahdon saarnan saarnata tässä saarnastuolin päällä Pietarin wanhasta kaprokista ja kymmenestä nappiläwestä. Kuitenkin tahdon ensiksi katsoa lammaslaumani yli, mutta näenpä sydämmeni suureksi furukſi haiſewia wuohia waan ja sen peijakkaan pukkeja. Woi te Kärkölän neitseet, narssut ja naasikat! te pöyhkeilette silkeissä ja saaleissa, kullanhohtawina kuin riikinkukot; mutta sylkekäät minua wasten naamaa, ellette wiimeisenä päivänä huuda wielä Matti pastooria puhelemaan puolestanne. Mutta se on nietua se! Hywää päivää, ukko Räihä! Minä tahdon sinulle sanaſen ſanoa: Ota waari tuosta Kettulan wanhasta waarista. Mutta sinä peewelin Peltolan Paawo, mitä teit sinä Tanun hirsitalkoossa talwella? Sinä klaſia kilistit ja likkoja likistit. Mutta minä ſanon sinulle, poikanalli: ota Jumppilan Jallista waari; muutoin tuomitsee sinua wiimein Matti pappi, pakanat, Krekiläiset ja Prekiläiſet; ja sitten ſäkki päähän ja helwettiin. Awaa siis ajoissa korwaläpes ja kuule mitä sanon ja saarnaan, sillä minä olen keitetty monessa liemessä, ja tässä rinnassa on sydän kuin hylkeennahkainen tupakkikukkaro. Onhan poika monessakin ollut. Minä olen ollut Helsingissä opisſa, weſikopisſa, jalkapuussa ja monessa muussa konttapuussa. Mutta siitä on paras, etten ole waras, etten ole loannut kenenkään kaiwoa, enkä halaillut toisen miehen waimoa."
    ellauri330.html on line 544: Toltti lautoja, leiwiskä traaksipiikin rautanauloja, mies talosta, kaksi parhaasta paikkaamaan pappilan pienempätä sikaruuhta. Kiialan haasta on karannut yksi wanha ruuna, iso, suuri, mustan- pruuni, kello kaulassa, umpiraudassa, wähäläntä,
    ellauri332.html on line 188: Kirjailija Maxim Gorkyn mieli on ihastuttavan synkkä! Ajattele "Requiem for a Dream" ja "Black Swan". Aronofskyn elokuva "Äiti!" julkaistiin vuonna 2017 polarisoituneiden yleisöjen toimesta. Jotkut ylistivät psykologista kauhua sen monimutkaisesta kerronnasta ja korkeasta tuotantoarvostaan, kun taas toiset pitivät sitä liian vaatimattomana ja groteskina. Edes Hollywood-rakas Jennifer Lawrence pääroolissa ei voinut tukahduttaa kiistaa.
    ellauri332.html on line 293: Black Swan seuraa ammattibalerina Ninaa (Natalie Portman), joka yrittää olla paras mahdollinen, kun hän on valittu balettiryhmän Joutsenkuningattareksi. Koko elokuvan ajan Nina kamppailee roolinsa kanssa ja taistelee paitsi itseään myös Lilyä (Mila Kunis) vastaan - lahjakasta balerinaa näyttelevänä Mustana joutsenena. Natalie voitti esityksestään jopa Oscarin. No, siinä se kiista piilee! Monet ovat arvostelleet hänen voittoaan, koska suurimman osan hänen hahmonsa näyttöajasta on esittänyt todellinen balerina, mikä saa monet kyseenalaistamaan, kuinka suuri osa esityksestä voidaan antaa Natalille.
    ellauri332.html on line 475: Nathaniel Hawthornes (1850) Bestseller wurde immer wieder verfilmt, so 1934 von Robert G. Vignola und 1926 von Victor Sjöström. Trotzdem nahm sich auch Wim Wenders mit dem von ihm mit gegründeten Filmverlag der Autoren 1973 dem Sujet an. Während Hawthorne die Probleme von Einwanderern der zweiten Generation in den Mittelpunkt stellte, setzte der Regisseur seinen Focus auf den persönlichen Konflikt der Figuren. Senta Berger war 1973 ein international bekannter Filmstar. Sie legt als
    ellauri332.html on line 664: Chinless George Lucas was born and raised in modest circumstances in Modesto, California, the son of Dorothy Ellinore Lucas (née Bomberger) and George Walton Lucas Sr., and is of German, Swiss-German, English, Scottish, and distant Dutch and French descent. His family attended Disneyland during its opening week in July 1955, and Lucas would remain enthusiastic about the park, Goofy in particular. Lucas's father owned a stationery store, and had wanted George to work for him when he turned 18. Sama lähtökohta siis kuin Paavo Havikolla.
    ellauri333.html on line 61: Given Ashoka's particularly moral definition of "Dharma" it is possible that he simply wants to say that buddhist virtue and piety now exist from the Mediterranean to the south of India. An expansion of Buddhism to the West is unconfirmed historically. Valehteli raukka nälissään. The edicts put forward moral rules which are extremely short, aphoristic expressions, the subjects being discussed, the vocabulary itself, are all hardly worth an elephant turd. Ashoka used the expression Dhaṃma Lipi (Prakrit in the Brahmi script: 𑀥𑀁𑀫𑀮𑀺𑀧𑀺, "Inscriptions of the Dharma") to describe his own Edicts. According to the edicts, the extent of Buddhist proselytism during this period reached as far as the Mediterranean, and many Buddhist monuments were created.
    ellauri333.html on line 174: Asokan kääntymyxestä on toinen toistaan päättömäpiä kaskuja. A-yu-wang-chuan kertoo, että 7-vuotias buddhalainen käänsi Ashokan. Toinen tarina väittää, että nuori poika söi 500 brahmanaa, jotka ahdistelivat Ashokaa, koska he olivat kiinnostuneita buddhalaisuudesta; nämä brahmanit muuttuivat myöhemmin ihmeellisesti buddhalaisiksi bhikuiksi (räkämunkeixi) Kukkutarina-luostarissa, jossa Ashoka vieraili. Tämä nyt ainakin on kukkua.
    ellauri333.html on line 233: Hannuman is a Slayer of demons, evil and negative energies: Hanuman is offered worship to rid of negative influences, such as ghosts, evil spirits and ill-intentioned humans. The following names of Hanuman describe some of these qualities, Rakshovidhwansakaraka, Akshahantre, Dashagreevakulantaka, Lankineebhanjana, Simhikaprana Bhanjana, Maharavanamardana, Kalanemi Pramathana.
    ellauri333.html on line 254: The angry masculinisation of Hanuman is not contesting gender injustice or waging a war against rapists and the abusive kin of women. It is going to be used next year to sell another kind of war. A war that depends on a certain kind of young men you will find all over history, in Bosnia, Rwanda, Cambodia, Nellie, Muzaffarnagar and Kathua, where ethnic and civil wars have been started. Young men who revere the milch cow as Mata, who swear by the honour of their mothers and sisters but will hunt and rape and kill men and women who do not fit their culturally defined familial categories, who for pleasure need an angry avenger, not one who is as Tulsidas said “gyan gun sagar” (a sea of wisdom and goodness).
    ellauri333.html on line 313: Heettiläinen : arā- 'toveri, ikätoveri, kumppani, ystävä'; arāwa- 'vapaa'; arawan(n)i- 'vapaa, vapaa mies (ei ole orja)'; natta ara, 'ei kuulu yhteisölle', anglosax. earl, free. East German: Ehre. Persia: Iran.
    ellauri334.html on line 320: Yes he was, but betrayed Christ, He followed Christ every where until Garden of Gethsemane,a perfect example of a Christian who betrayed Christ add moved away from him. I am not sure he really followed Jesus like Peter and other, they really believed Jesus was son of God. But Judas was a rebel Jew, who want literal fight against Roman government. There might be a Chance Judas never understood the concept of “Kingdom of God”.
    ellauri334.html on line 323:
    Did the Gospel writers choose the name 'Judas' Iscariot as the traitor deliberately, because Judaism and the name Judah had the same etymology and they wanted people to hate Jews?

    ellauri335.html on line 119: Ensin ajattelin, että tämä on varmaan joku huijaus, mutta sitten se kuitenkin näytti vähän aidolta ja kun siinä oli Disneyn näköinen logo niin klikkasin. Halusin nähdä, mitä siitä seuraa. Minulla on 8-vuotias tytär, joka rakastaa laulamista ja näyttelemistä ja hänen suurin haaveensa on tulla tubettajaksi, kertoo perheenäiti, joka ei halua nimeään juttuun. Is your child the youtuber you want her to be? Come to Hotel Kämp and pay thousands of dollars for nothing if you are a wannabe!
    ellauri336.html on line 331: If you found this content meaningful and want to help further our mission through our Keter, Makom, and Tikun branches, please consider becoming a Money (or Small Change) Maker today.
    ellauri336.html on line 346: This stringency is actually one of the strongest proofs that the Talmud and Zohar agree that a woman (even the most righteous woman) DOES have hair. If she doesn’t have any, what is she hiding from her beams? The Zohar that Rabbi Jack wants is in parshas Acharei Mos. That one talks about shaving and mikvah, but not about the mikvah ‘seeing’ anything.
    ellauri336.html on line 429: Perhaps if one looks at it in the light of all the responsibilities a woman…a wife…a mother (the whole concept of conceiving, baring and raising the chikdren) has….the man is joyful in not having to be a woman. Be grateful to God how we are wonderfully made and to what responsibilities He has given us …if you want to say “role”…His perfect plan.
    ellauri336.html on line 436: What I don’t understand about the women that DO shave their hair off, I mean so they just stay bald hidden under a wrap all the time? Wouldn’t their husbands want to see their hair at intimate moments? How would having no hair be attractive to their husbands?
    ellauri339.html on line 622: It is all something of a set piece. America has an old habit of wandering into a conflict and then losing interest. “We have your back” and “we will not abandon you” join “the check’s in the mail” and “I’m from the government and I’m here to help” among joking faux reassurances. Our proxies seem to end up abandoned and hung out to die. As in Iraq and Afghanistan, never mind Vietnam before that, what was realized at the end could have most likely been achievable at pretty much anytime after the initial hurrahs passed away. It is sad that so many had to die to likely see it happen in 2023.
    ellauri340.html on line 628: Varsinkin myöhemmissä teoksissaan Baudrillard näki "globaalin" yhteiskunnan olevan ilman tätä "symbolista" elementtiä ja siksi symbolisesti (ellei sotilaallisesti) puolustuskyvytön Rushdien fatwan tai itse asiassa syyskuun 11. päivän terrori-iskujen kaltaisia tekoja vastaan, saati Yhdysvaltoja ja sen sotilaallista ja taloudellista hallintoa vastaan. Vittu Jean sanonko minne voit kuratoida sen symbolisi?
    ellauri340.html on line 679: Marraskuun viimeisenä maanantaiaamuna maha kipeänä kasvislasagnasta jotain palaili mieleen ysärin huonoimmista hetkistä ja ikävimmistä apinakolleegoista apinalinnan kallioilta eli verstaalta. Kusipäitä wannabe silverbäkkejä kuten Kimmo Koskenniemi, Fresd Karlsson, kiilusilmäisiä maanikkoja Kristiina Jokinen, Graham Wilcock, se 1 saxan keskusteluntutkija josta siitäkin tuli joku käännöstieteilijä, nimeä ei löydy, boxerimainen Inkeri Vehmas-Lehto, akribian ystävä Pirjo Kukkonen, se hullumpi Pirkko Kukkonen, mielikirjailijani Hilja Haahti, A-luokan mersulla ylvästellyt pieni paxu kielitieteen lehtori, näitä piisaa meitä keskinkertaisuuxia.
    ellauri341.html on line 149: Ab September 1939 unterstand das Büro Grüber der Aufsicht durch Adolf Eichmann. In einer Besprechung über Auswanderung fragte Eichmann: „Erklären Sie mir den Grund, warum Sie sich für diese Juden einsetzen. Sie haben keine jüdische Verwandtschaft. Sie haben es nicht nötig, für diese Menschen einzutreten. Niemand wird es Ihnen danken! Ich begreife nicht, warum Sie es tun!“ Grüber antwortete: „Sie kennen die Straße von Jerusalem nach Jericho! Auf dieser Straße lag einmal ein überfallener und ausgeplünderter Jude. Ein Mann, der durch Rasse und Religion von ihm getrennt war, ein Samariter, kam und half ihm. Der Herr, auf dessen Befehle ich allein höre, sagt mir: Gehe du hin und tue desgleichen.“
    ellauri341.html on line 160: Kasztner war überzeugt, dass dies das Ende des Mordprogramms einleiten würde, und Transporte von Juden in die angebliche Freiheit folgen würden. So ging Ende Juni 1944 ein Zug mit 1.685 Juden, die von einem Ausschuss der Gemeinde ausgesucht worden waren, aus Ungarn ab. Kasztner persönlich war an diesem Auswahlprozess maßgeblich beteiligt und wählte Rabbiner, Professoren, Opernsänger, Journalisten, zionistische Führer, aber auch Krankenschwestern und Bauern, 252 Kinder, 388 Juden aus seiner Heimatstadt, darunter seine Familie und viele seiner Verwandten. Versprochen wurde, dass dieser Zug entweder in die Schweiz oder nach Spanien gehen sollte; stattdessen kamen seine Passagiere im KZ Bergen-Belsen an. Adolf Eichmann ließ sie als Geiseln monatelang festhalten.
    ellauri341.html on line 165: Rudolf Kasztner, der sich seit seiner Einwanderung in Israel Israel Kasztner nannte, wurde am 3. März 1957 vor seiner Wohnung in Tel Aviv angeschossen und erlag am 15. März 1957 seinen Verletzungen. Die drei Attentäter wurden zu einer lebenslangen Strafe verurteilt, jedoch nach drei Jahren auf persönliche Intervention von Premier David Ben-Gurion begnadigt.
    ellauri341.html on line 330: Das änderte sich mit der zunehmend bedrohlichen Lage der Juden in Deutschland. Man entwickelte einen Vorschlag des Leiters der politischen Abteilung der Jewish Agency for Palestine Chaim Arlosoroff an den deutschen Generalkonsul in Jerusalem Heinrich Wolff vom April 1933 weiter. Das war inzwischen von Pinchas Ruthenberg, dem Gründer der Palestine Electric Company, weiterentwickelt worden und wurde im Juli 1933 von Werner Senator der zionistischen Exekutive in London vertraulich mitgeteilt. Vermögen von Juden in Deutschland sollte durch eine Treuhandgesellschaft aufgelöst werden und über eine Liquiditätsbank, die von Aktionären außerhalb Deutschlands gegründet werden sollte, nach Palästina transferiert werden. Der Treuhandfonds zahlte in die Bank ein, die wiederum Schuldverschreibungen an Juden im Ausland ausgab, die dafür ausländische Devisen erhielten. Die deutsche Regierung sollte eine Transfergarantie für Zinsen und Tilgungen der Schuldverschreibungen übernehmen. Als Ausgleich sollte die Bank aus dem zurückgelassenen Vermögen der Auswanderer finanzierte deutsche Exporte in die neuen Heimatländer der jüdischen Auswanderer unterstützen.
    ellauri341.html on line 332: Im August 1933 kam es zu einem entscheidenden Treffen im Reichswirtschaftsministerium. Von jüdischer Seite waren die Hanotea (Sam Cohen, Moses Nachnes), Arthur Ruppin (später Leiter der deutschen Abteilung der Jewish Agency), Eliezer Sigfried Hoofien von der Anglo-Palestine Bank in Tel Aviv und die Vertreter der ZVfD (Georg Landauer, Siegfried Moses) zugegen. Man einigte sich zwar nicht auf die Gründung einer Liquiditätsbank, aber einer Treuhandgesellschaft in Palästina, die den Auswanderern das auf ein Reichsmark-Sonderkonto der Anglo-Palestine Bank und der Bank der Tempelgesellschaft bei der Reichsbank Eingezahlte in Palästina auszahlte und außerdem den Absatz deutscher Exporte übernahm. Die Treuhandgesellschaft erhielt außerdem ein De-facto-Monopol auf solche Vermögensübertragungen jüdischer Auswanderer nach Palästina. Am 28. August 1933 wurde im Runderlaß Nr. 54/1933 des Reichswirtschaftsministeriums der Vertrag in Vollzug gesetzt. Er erhielt den Namen Haʿavara (hebräisch für Übertragung). Die Treuhandgesellschaft in Palästina erhielt den Namen Trust and Transfer Office Haʿavara Ltd. und stand unter Leitung von Werner Feilchenfeld. In Deutschland entstand die Palästina-Treuhandstelle zur Beratung deutscher Juden GmbH (Paltreu) unter Beteiligung der Banken M.M.Warburg & CO (Hamburg), A. E. Wassermann (Berlin) und der Anglo-Palestine Bank in Tel Aviv.
    ellauri341.html on line 338: Die britische Mandatsverwaltung Palästinas verlangte von den Einwanderungswilligen ein Einwanderungszertifikat (Kapitalistenzertifikat) und, damit verbunden, den Nachweis finanzieller Mittel (so genanntes Vorzeigegeld) in Höhe von 1.000 £P pro Kopf, was etwa 8.000 ℛℳ entsprach. Nach den deutschen Devisenbestimmungen – der Reichsfluchtsteuer beschlossen 1931 im Zuge der Weltwirtschaftskrise, offiziell zur Eindämmung von Kapitalflucht bzw. Devisenspekulation, ab 1933 aber instrumentalisiert, um Vermögen auswandernder vor allem jüdischer Deutscher per Steuer zu konfiszieren – wurden von Auslandsüberweisungen hohe Abschläge einbehalten.
    ellauri341.html on line 340: Das Haʿavara-Abkommen ermöglichte den Betroffenen, einen Teil ihres Vermögens nach Palästina zu transferieren, während ein bestimmter Prozentsatz des zu übertragenden Vermögens als Reichsfluchtsteuer vom deutschen Fiskus einbehalten wurde. Anfangs betrug dieser Steuersatz 25 %; er wurde im Zuge der verstärkten staatlich gelenkten Abpressung des Vermögens von Juden sukzessive erhöht. Verglichen mit anderen Exilländern erhob der deutsche Fiskus auf Transfers nach Palästina einen geringeren Satz der Reichsfluchtsteuer. Anders gesagt, deutschen Flüchtlingen auf dem Weg nach Palästina knöpfte der Fiskus beim Versuch, zumindest Teile ihres Vermögen mitzuretten, weniger Reichsfluchtsteuer ab als ihresgleichen bei der Flucht in andere Exilländer. Jüdische deutsche Auswanderer zahlten in Reichsmark eine Summe auf ein deutsches Konto des Transfer Office ein und beglichen parallel den darauf anfallenden Betrag an Reichsfluchtsteuer auf ein Konto des Fiskus.
    ellauri341.html on line 342: Mit den Guthaben auf deutschen Konten des Transfer Office wurden deutschen Herstellern Güter bezahlt, die dann nach Palästina exportiert wurden, während der Importeur dort den Gegenwert in Palästina-Pfund auf ein Konto des Transfer Office in Palästina einzahlte. Das palästinensische Currency Board hielt das Palästina-Pfund bis Mai 1948 auf pari zum Pfund Sterling. In anderen Fällen brachten Auswanderer die von ihnen durch das Transfer Office bezahlten und dann exportierten Maschinen als Beteiligung in palästinensische bestehende oder neu gegründete Unternehmen ein und erhielten statt eines Pfundguthabens dann Anteile an diesen Unternehmen; so entstanden viele neue Unternehmen in Palästina. Diese Anteile wiederum konnte der künftige Auswanderer, sofern er die 1.000 £P noch zusammenbringen musste, um ein Kapitalistenzertifikat genanntes Einreisevisum für Palästina erteilt zu bekommen, durch beauftragte Treuhänder an Investoren verkaufen, die die Anteile in Pfund bezahlen konnten. Auch diese Zahlungen gingen auf palästinensische Konten des Transfer Office. Bei der Ankunft in Palästina erhielten die Auswanderer aus solchen Pfund-Guthaben auf palästinensischen Konten des Transfer Office dann den in Deutschland gezahlten Transferbetrag in palästinensischen Pfund erstattet.
    ellauri341.html on line 442: 3. helmikuuta 2021 Harareet kuoli kotonaan Marlowissa Buckinghamshiressä, Englannissa, 89-vuotiaana luonnollisista syistä. Kuollessaan hän oli viimeinen elossa oleva Ben Hurin näyttelijä. Harareetin ensimmäinen aviomies oli Nachman Zerwanitzer, israelilainen kasteluinsinööri. He asuivat ahtaassa asunnossa Tel Avivissa ja erosivat joskus ennen vuotta 1961.
    ellauri341.html on line 546: I want to provide customers and business partners a unique experience, a vision and a true commitment. You can not work with people if you do not believe in them. I want to reinvent these concepts and make them understand the professionalism at the highest level.
    ellauri342.html on line 80: Jos et olisi nähnyt Avignonia paavin aikoina, et olisi nähnyt mitään. varten iloisuus, elämä, elinvoima ja peräkkäiset juhlat, mikään kaupunki ei ollut sen arvoinen tähyillä. Aamusta iltaan oli kulkueita, pyhiinvaelluksia, kukkien täynnä olevia katuja, korkealle ripustettuja seinävaatteita, kardinaaleja saapumassa Rhone, lintuja, galleriat lipuilla, paavin sotilaat laulamassa Latinaa ruuduilla ja veljesten keräilylaatikoitaan helisemässä. Tällaisia ​​ääniä kuului korkeimmasta pienimpään asunto, joka tungosta ja kuhisi ympäri suuren paavinpalatsin, kuin mehiläiset pesän ympärillä. Siellä kuului pitsivalmistajien napsahdus koneet, edestakaisin ja sukkulat kudonta kultaa lankaa varten kaapeleita, jyrkän kaivertajien pienet vasaran naput, twanging harmoniset asteikot jousisoittimen päättäjien, laulu-lauluja kutojat ja ennen kaikkea kellojen soitto ja aina sykkivät tamburiinit, alas sillan vieressä. Näet, tässä Provence, kun ihmiset ovat onnellisia, heidän täytyy tanssia ja tanssia. Ja sitten; heidän täytyy tanssia taas. Kun kaupungin kadut osoittautuivat liian kapeiksi farandole, fiferit ja tamburiinisoittimet asetettiin jäähdytykseen Rhônen tuuli, _Sur le pont d'Avignon_, jossa ympäri vuorokauden, _l'on y dansait, l'on y dansait_. Voi kuinka onnellisia aikoja; niin onnellinen kaupunki. Halbardit, jotka eivät ole koskaan tappaneet ketään, osavaltion vankilat käytetään vain viinin jäähdyttämiseen. Ei koskaan nälänhätää. Ei koskaan sotaa... Se on kuinka Comtatin paavit hallitsivat kansaansa, ja siksi heidän kansansa oli niitä niin ikävä....
    ellauri342.html on line 394: World Laughter Day is celebrated every year on the first Sunday of May, and this year it is celebrated on May 5. Shrill or funny, giggly or bubbly, on this day, let out your laughter and laugh to your heart’s content. As Shakespeare said, “With mirth and laughter, let old wrinkles come.” We want you to spend your life with laughter and joy. Did you know that laughter decreases stress? By laughing, the brain releases endorphins which make one feel happy. So do not let anyone dampen your day, and laugh as much as you want.
    ellauri342.html on line 398: International Moment of Laughter Day is celebrated on April 14 every year. This is the day to let your inner child come out and laugh away all your worries. You can laugh out loud or giggle, in fact, you can do whatever you want but make sure you’re laughing at the same time. This day reminds us to look beyond our anxious lives and find something that puts a big smile on our faces.
    ellauri342.html on line 449: Brown and wildly clownish shape Ruskea ja hurjan pellemäinen bwana
    ellauri343.html on line 265: Sivénin veljekset loivat Ruokolahden suojeluskunnan perustan. Kun sisällissota alkoi 26. tammikuuta 1918. Sivén, kuten suurin osa muista Norssin koululaisista asettui tukemaan valkoisia. Lopulta Sivén joutui punaisten etsintäkuuluttamaksi ja Sivén otti salanimekseen Hannu Halonen. Kerran hän oli jäädä kiinni nukkuessaan kummitätinsä Anni Swanin luona, mutta Swan vaihtoi poikansa Antero Mannisen Bobin tilalle, jolloin punakaartilaiset löysivät ihmeissään sängystä lyseolaisen Swanin eikä lyseolaista Sivéniä. Saxalaisten tultua apuun Sivén ampui ainakin yhden punaisen, joka oli vaaninut suojeluskuntalaisia Erottajan apteekin päällä.Valtauksessa saksalaisia kaatui 54, suojeluskuntalaisia 17 ja punaisia 400. Tappioluvut kuin Gazan kansanmurhassa.
    ellauri344.html on line 303: Kurjaa on sinkkuvanhuxilla jos ne ei saa yhtään hellittää, pitää olla liuta vanhusfrendejä kuin Kristina-tädillä. Wahlverwandtschaften hakkaa pakkosukulaiset käsi selän takana, tuumaa kuningatar Kristina.
    ellauri345.html on line 71: Er selbst war da schon in den Fünfzig. Goethe umschwärmte sie in mehreren Sonetten (eine Gedichtart). Auch Goethes Figur Ottilie in den “Wahlverwandtschaften” trägt Züge von Minna Herzlieb. Ihre Ehe mit einem anderen verlief dann sehr glücklos und in Folge dessen fiel sie in „geistige Umnachtung“.
    ellauri345.html on line 329: Glücklich-Unglücklichen einer? tuhansista wannabeistä?
    ellauri346.html on line 43: Russia, you may recall, wants to change Ukraine’s political leadership, and to do this it has invaded a sovereign country in violation of the UN charter and accepted international law, and is using violence and intimidation, incl… (more)

    ellauri348.html on line 124: Suomen sana toivo tulee muinaisen enkun sanasta hopa. Sanoisinpa jopa. Se näät on ennen muinoin tarkottanut toivoa. Mittelhochdeutsch hoffen ist vielleicht verwandt mit hüpfen und dann ursprünglich wohl = (vor Erwartung) aufgeregt umherhüpfen. Quelle ist die idg. Wurzel *keu– „biegen, bücken“. Ich befürchte mich, wenn er (der blinde ehemann meiner tochter) sein gesicht wieder bekähm, möchte er ob der heszlichkeit meiner tochter erschrecken, und sie zu verlassen bewogen werden, welches, weil er blind ist, nicht leicht zu hoffen.
    ellauri348.html on line 1114: Rohkeutta voi kehittää olemalla rohkea. Ilmari uskalsi mennä Kumpulan uima-altaaseen avustettuna. Rohkeutta voi edistää myös kazomalla elokuvia ja kuuntelemalla urheata musaa. Rohkeutta edistäviä elokuvia ovat esim. Hotel Rwanda, Batman Begins, High Noon, Schindler List sekä United 93. Rohkeutta edistäviä sävelmiä ovat mm. doorilainen eli c-duuri asteikko (Platon), Bob Marleyn Get It Up, Nasin Yes I can, Frank Sinatran My Way, Stevie Wonderin Live for the city ja Helen Reddyn Aikuinen nainen. Ei ihme että amerikkalaiset ovat maailman urheimpia, kun melkein kaikki urheutta edistävä viihde on amerikkalaista. Elokuvien kazominen voi ylläpitää ja vahvistaa nuorten toivoa. Älkää kazoko Greta Thunbergin tiktokkeja, ne vaan masentaa! Kannattaa keskittää huomio optimismiin esim. lukemalla aamulla optimistisia artikkeleita, uutisia ja tarinoita sekä havainnoimalla ympärillä surisevaa myönteisyyttä.
    ellauri349.html on line 153: Eskin tunnetotuudet kaihtavat exaktia formulointia. Onkohan tässä kirjassa yhtään ajatusta, vaiko vain näitä klisheitä, klisheitä? E. Saarisen ajatuxia E. Saarisesta. Saarisen oleminen ilmeni narsistisen Sartren sanoin "olemisena izelleen". En sunkaan ole vähän narsisti? Pipsan ansiosta olen sitä kenties hieman vähemmän. Puhun Aalto-yliopiston tulijoille kulmakarvat torakkamaisesti heiluen leipääntyneesti voimaisella äänellä räjähdysvoimasta. Jörn Donner paskiainen ei ollut ainoastaan narsisti vaan röyhkeä kylmä ilkimys. Psykopaatti pikemminkin. Eski taitaa olla oikeastaan Surku Yniäinen, joka menee mezään wannabeenä ulvomaan isojen pahojen susien perään, ja luikkii sitten kotiin Pipsan luo pelkämään puuvillainen häntä koipien välissä.
    ellauri349.html on line 425: No täähän on Eskin credo ja raison d'être sanatarkasti väännettyä rautalangasta. Tälläsiä arkiryskeeseen langenneita wannabe pappeja on Wikipediassa kuin ruutukärpäsiä. Niillä on loppumaton kysyntä termiittien lantakuormassa.
    ellauri351.html on line 261: Festinger jatkoi opintojaan Kurt Lewinin johdolla Iowan yliopistossa, jossa Festinger sai MA-tutkinnon vuonna 1940 ja tohtorin vuonna 1942 lasten käyttäytymisen alalla. Molemmat vaihtoivat kerran vaimoa. Lewinin kuoltua Festinger muutti yhä lännemäxi MIT:stä, kunnes vuonna 1957 julkaisi kognitiivisen dissonanssin teoriansa, joka on todennäköisesti hänen kuuluisin ja vaikutusvaltaisin panoksensa sosiaalipsykologian alalla. Festinger pettyi sosiaalipsykologian ja alkoi huuhailla. Viimeinen yritys oli ymmärtää, miksi jokin kulttuuri hyväksyy tai hylkää idean, ja hän päätti, että tutkimalla, miksi uusi teknologia otettiin nopeasti käyttöön lännessä, mutta ei Itä-Bysantin valtakunnassa, valaisisi asiaa. Festingerillä kuitenkin diagnosoitiin syöpä ennen kuin hän pystyi julkaisemaan tämän materiaalin. Hän päätti olla jatkamatta hoitoa ja kuoli 11. helmikuuta 1989.
    ellauri351.html on line 293: Taleb on kirjoittanut Incerton, viisiosaisen epävarmuutta käsittelevän filosofisen esseen, joka julkaistiin vuosina 2001–2018 (erityisesti The Black Swan ja Antifragile). Hän on toiminut professorina useissa yliopistoissa ja työskennellyt riskitekniikan ansioituneena professorina New Yorkin yliopiston Tandon School of Engineeringissä syyskuusta 2008 lähtien. Hän on ollut mukana Risk and Decision Analysis -lehden päätoimittajana syyskuusta 2014 lähtien. Hän on myös toiminut matemaattisen rahoituksen harjoittajana, hedge-rahastojen hoitajana ja johdannaiskauppiaana, ja hän on tällä hetkellä Universal Investmentsin tieteellisenä neuvonantajana. The Sunday Times kutsui hänen vuonna 2007 julkaistua kirjaansa The Black Swan yhdeksi 12 vaikutusvaltaisimmasta kirjasta toisen maailmansodan jälkeen.
    ellauri351.html on line 299: Aaron Brown, kirjailija, kvantitatiivinen psykoanalyytikko ja jokapaikan dosentti Yeshivan ja Fordhamin yliopistoissa, sanoi The Black Swan -kirjasta, että "kirja on ikään kuin Taleb ei olisi koskaan kuullut ei-parametrisista menetelmistä, data-analyysistä, visualisointityökaluista tai vankoista arvioista." Siitä huolimatta hän kutsuu kirjaa "olennaiseksi luettavaksi" ja kehottaa tilastotieteilijöitä jättämään huomiotta loukkaukset saadakseen "tärkeitä filosofisia ja matemaattisia totuuksia". Taleb vastasi The Black Swanin toisessa painoksessa, että "Yksi yleisimmistä (mutta hyödyttömistä) kommenteista, joita kuulen, on, että jotkin ratkaisut voivat tulla "vankoista tilastoista". Ihmettelen, kuinka näiden tekniikoiden avulla voidaan luoda tietoa siellä, missä sitä ei ole."
    ellauri351.html on line 303: Taleb väittää, että tilastotieteilijät voivat olla pseudotieteilijöitä harvinaisten tapahtumien ja räjähdysten riskeissä ja peittää epäpätevyytensä monimutkaisilla yhtälöillä. Tämä asenne on herättänyt arvostelua: American Statistical Association omisti The American Statistician -lehden elokuussa 2007 ilmestyneen numeron The Black Swanille. Lehti tarjosi sekoituksen ylistystä ja kritiikkiä Talebin pääkohdista, keskittyen Talebin kirjoitustyyliin ja hänen esitykseensä tilastokirjallisuudesta. Clemsonin yliopiston matematiikan professori Robert Lund kirjoittaa, että Black Swan -kirjassa Taleb on "ajoittain holtiton ja joutuu suurenmoisille liioittelemille; ammatillinen tilastotieteilijä pitää kirjaa kaikkialla naiivina". Lund kuitenkin myöntää, että "on monia kohtia, joissa olen samaa mieltä Talebin kanssa", ja kirjoittaa, että "kirja on pakollinen" kaikille "rahoituksesta ja/tai filosofisista todennäköisyyksistä etänä kiinnostuneille".
    ellauri351.html on line 307: Charlie Rosen haastattelussa Taleb sanoi, että hän näki, ettei mikään The Black Swanista saamansa kritiikki kumonnut hänen keskeistä pointtiaan, joka sai hänet suojelemaan omaisuuttaan ja asiakkaidensa omaisuutta. Talebin aggressiiviset ja selkeästi suunnatut kommentit rahoitusalan osia vastaan ​​– esimerkiksi toteamalla Davosissa vuonna 2009 olevansa "tyytyväinen" Lehman Brothersin romahtamiseen – on johtanut raportteihin henkilökohtaisista hyökkäyksistä ja mahdollisista uhkauksista.
    ellauri351.html on line 493: Rauha ystävyys solidaarisuus, nuorten työ sen vain varmistaa voi. Miten Neuvostoliittoa autamme kun maailmanrauhaa rakentaa se, aina varmimman rauhanomaisen tien valiten? Parhaiten sitä autamme talouspakotteiden avulla. Bidenin Yhdysvallat eivät tue Taiwanin izenäistymistä. Venäjästä Formosa on aina ollut kiinteä osa manner-Kiinaa.
    ellauri352.html on line 161: Antonio Damasio (s. 25. helmikuuta 1944, Lissabon) on portugalilais-amerikkalainen aivotutkija ja neurologi, joka toimi lähes 30 vuotta Iowan yliopiston neurologian laitoksen johtajana ja professorina. Tällä hetkellä hän on David Dornsife neurotieteen professori Etelä-Kalifornian yliopistossa, jossa hän johtaa USC:n Brain and Creativity -Instituuttia. Hän on tutkinut tietoisuutta, tunteita ja aivojen toimintaa. Damasion käsitys aivoista pohjautuu muun muassa hänen aivovaurioihinsa. Damasio sai Yrjö Reenpää -lohtupalkinnon Helsingissä vuonna 2000.
    ellauri353.html on line 164: Viridiana on wannabe nunna joka tulee Jaime-sedän luo nunnalomalle. Jaime-setä huumaa sen tyrmäystipoilla ja köyrii sitä. Kun se palaa tolkkuihin se ei viizi enää ruveta nunnaxi. Se lähtee karulle mutta poliisi palauttaa sen Jaimelle, joka on sillä aikaa hirttäytynyt puuhun. Viridiana perii Jaimen kartanon äpäräpoika Jorgen kaa jolla on ennestään joku Ramona. Nuorten ollessa kylillä kerjäläiset squattaa kartanon ja pitää orgiat. Nuorten palattua kerjäläiset nousee vuoron perään ex-nunnan pukille. Poliisi puuttuu asiaan. Tämän jälkeen V. alkaa bylsiä Jorgea. Alkup. lopussa V. tekee aloitteen, mutta se oli sensorille liian rivoa. Korjatussa lopussa Jorge pääsee yhtä aikaa naimaan V:tä ja Ramonaa. Mutta huom: aloite on Jorgen handussa!
    ellauri353.html on line 289: I grew up before the appearance of the street. I even finished my graduate work. For a doctorate in economics before the feminist movement. Really got going. As a result. I was free to choose. Just how I wanted to live my life whether I wanted a full time career in the market place or a part time. Career. Combined with being a homemaker and bringing up a family. I knew I was going to get married. I'd already chosen my husband. I also wanted to have a family. Even after getting used to being married. And I wanted to bring up my children. Myself. I did not want them to be brought up. Either in a child care center. Or by a maid. Naturally by like most people I also wanted to have my cake and even when they left. University Milton and I both went to work in Washington for jobs where economists were there only let it cool. However before we were married. His career took him to New York City. While mine remained in Washington where I live where I like to work and the people I was working with. However we did not look forward to living apart.
    ellauri353.html on line 299: But there weren't too many. I must confess that my experience combining life is a homemaker and an economist's was easier than it is for many women. I chose the right husband from the beginning. From the beginning we shared our interest in economics whether the news may call in the speech an article or a book. I was part of the activity in the sense that Milton always wanted me to read whatever he wrote. And he took my suggestion seriously. It gave me the feeling that I was practicing what I was trained for. But also that I was contributing to his career. It was in a sense our career. So when he was awarded the Nobel Prize it's received other many many many other net honors. And people always feel sorry for me and ask me how it feels to have him getting all the honors. My answer is always the same one. It is our honor I was part of that. When our children left for good. I became more active. With us and we go off for books. Where do I come out on a women's lib or feminist women have a real problem. But in my opinion the present solution is worse than the disease. The man. Or children. And those women who still believe that a mother's first job is to bring up her children. Women's lives. Made those women. Feel that is inferior to a paying job in the market. Therefore they must be and feared with the will to have a full time job outside. It is heightened competition between man and women. Husband and wife. So-called woman is problem. Has not. And I don't believe will solve the problem. Or a woman. There is a problem.
    ellauri353.html on line 301: Because while children are growing up you have a pool of time God wants to kill bin Laden even less you have something to fall back on. There isn't much left. However I think that the green movement towards the computer and that is really going to solve the woman's problem. Because then women can. Will be able to stay at home and bring up their children. And at the same time not drop out of everything that they would go for and I think it's happening more and more women are staying home just take care of their tour. And at the same time. Are continue. Either their education or there are few that we think of when I am asked about. Or book in advance. When the list...
    ellauri360.html on line 99: Hermann Broch : Die Schlafwandler (Unissakävelijät) (CHECK)
    ellauri362.html on line 339: You never know whose wand you are going to shake. Sedariin 70- luvun päiväkirjamerkinnät on ankeita. Ei yhtään naurata. Sedariin mielipätkä oli Heinäsirkan päivä.
    ellauri369.html on line 215: 24-vuotias Hadi Matar hyökkäsi lavalle ja puukotti Rushdieta yli kymmenen kertaa. Hän puukotti myös väliin mennyttä moderaattoria Henry Reeseä. Hänellä ei ollut mitään käsitystä miten vääräuskoinen nitistetään puukolla. Puukottaja Hadi Matar antoi pian puukotuksen jälkeen vankilasta haastattelun New York Post -lehdelle ja sanoi, ettei ole edes lukenut Saatanallisia säkeitä paria sivua enempää. Myöskään fatwan langettanut Khomeini ei tiettävästi koskaan lukenut Rushdien kirjaa. Se nyt vielä puuttuisi.
    ellauri369.html on line 230: Mohammad Ismail Zarei, Salman Rushdien teloittamista koskevan Khomeinin fatwan täytäntöönpanon sihteeristön johtaja, sanoi maanantaina, että "Kiitämme vilpittömästi nuorta amerikkalaista hänen rohkeasta toimistaan ​​imaami Khomeinin historiallisen fatwan toteuttamisessa."
    ellauri369.html on line 359: As a boy, Teufelsdröckh was left in a basket on the doorstep of a childless couple in the German country town of Entepfuhl ("Duck-Pond"); his father a retired sergeant of Frederick the Great and his mother a very pious woman, who to Teufelsdröckh´s gratitude, raises him in utmost spiritual discipline. In very flowery language, Teufelsdröckh recalls at length the values instilled in his idyllic childhood, the Editor noting most of his descriptions originating in intense spiritual pride. Teufelsdröckh eventually is recognized as being clever, and sent to Hinterschlag (slap-behind) Gymnasium. While there, Teufelsdröckh is intellectually stimulated, and befriended by a few of his teachers, but frequently bullied by other students. His reflections on this time of his life are ambivalent: glad for his education, but critical of that education´s disregard for actual human activity and character, as regarding both his own treatment and his education´s application to politics. While at University, Teufelsdröckh encounters the same problems, but eventually gains a small teaching post and some favour and recognition from the German nobility. While interacting with these social circles, Teufelsdröckh meets a woman he calls Blumine (Goddess of Flowers; the Editor assumes this to be a pseudonym), and abandons his teaching post to pursue her. She spurns his advances for a British aristocrat named Towgood. Teufelsdröckh is thrust into a spiritual crisis, and leaves the city to wander the European countryside, but even there encounters Blumine and Towgood on their honeymoon. He sinks into a deep depression, culminating in the celebrated Everlasting No, disdaining all human activity. Still trying to piece together the fragments, the Editor surmises that Teufelsdröckh either fights in a war during this period, or at least intensely uses its imagery, which leads him to a "Centre of Indifference", and on reflection of all the ancient villages and forces of history around him, ultimately comes upon the affirmation of all life in "The Everlasting Yea". The Editor, in relief, promises to return to Teufelsdröckh´s book, hoping with the of his assembled biography to glean some new insight into the philosophy. Wow, sounds a lot like Carlyle´s personal biography, lightly camouflaged?
    ellauri370.html on line 116: Suorapuheinen New Jerseyn rabbi (ja kongressiedustaja wannabe) tapasi Michael Jacksonin vuonna 1999 Jacksonin ystävän, israelilaisen illusionisti Uri Gellerin avulla, ja heistä tuli ystäviä. Jackson tuli jopa Boteachin taloon Shabbat-illallisille. Rabbi on julkisesti seisonut Jacksonia vastaan ​​- puolustaen häntä syytöksiä natsien myötämielisyydestä tai jatkanut työskentelyä hänen kanssaan lapsiasioissa huolimatta syytöksistä seksuaalisesta hyväksikäytöstä. Mitä Michael teki hississä? Painoi nappulaa.
    ellauri370.html on line 259: Norwichin St. William joutui nahkurin orrelle tuntemattomista syistä vuonna 1144. Monk Thomas of Monmouth badmouthed the local francophone jews for it. The Bishop wanted to give them a trial by ordeal, but had no jurisdiction over jews. King Steve promised to look into it but forgot. Disappointed citizens made do with killing a bunch of jews.
    ellauri370.html on line 319: A lot of Elvis Presley songs were written especially for him, but according to Mac Davis, Presley´s 1969 hit, In the Ghetto, was not such a song. Mac Davis commented, 'I never really dreamed of pitching that song to Elvis. I had been working on In the Ghetto for several years. I grew up playing with a little boy in Lubbock, Texas, whose family lived in a dirt street ghetto. His dad and my dad worked in construction together. So that little boy and I sort of grew up together. I never understood why his family had to live where they lived while my family lived where we lived. Of course back in those days, the word "ghetto" hadn't come along yet. (It is Venetian for "foundry".) But I always wanted to write a song about that situation and title it 'The Vicious Circle'. I thought that if you were born in that place and that situation, then you grow up there and one day you die there, and another kid is born there that kind of replaces you. And later I started thinking about the ghetto as a title for the song.
    ellauri370.html on line 394: Er positionierte seinen rassischen „Sozialismus des arischen Volkes“ seit 1865 scharf gegen Marx, aber auch gegen Ferdinand Lassalle. Beide waren ja kurzschädlige Juden. Nach dem Verlust seiner Sicht gewann er zunehmend Sympathien in der SPD. Auf dem Gothaer Parteitag 1877 verlangten Dührings Anhänger in der SPD, dass Aufsätze von Friedrich Engels nicht mehr im Vorwärts erscheinen sollten. Dies veranlasste Engels 1878 zu seiner Gegenschrift Anti-Dühring.
    ellauri370.html on line 457: Arthur, Comte de Gobineau, was born in France in 1816. His essay ´On the Inequality of Human Races´ was published in 1853. Wagner admitted in his own autobiography ´Mein Leben´ (My Life), that his compositions came to him from some outside source, when he was in a state of trance. Ach! Mein Leben! There is some documentary evidence to support the contention that the mad swan king Ludwig of Bayern maintained a homosexual relationship with Wagner. He is now best known for Disney´s magic Castle at Neuschwanstein with Heli-keiju buzzin round it like a fly circling a turd.
    ellauri370.html on line 669: B’nai B’rith (hebräisch בְּנֵי בְּרִית Bnej Brīt, deutsch ‚Söhne des Bundes‘, auch Bnai Brith) oder im deutschsprachigen Raum bis zur Zeit des Nationalsozialismus Unabhängiger Orden Bne Briss (U.O.B.B.), auch in jiddischer Lautung Bnei Briß genannt, ist eine jüdische Organisation, ein unabhängiger weltlicher jüdischer Orden, organisiert in Logen. Sie wurde im Jahre 1843 in New York als geheime Loge von zwölf jüdischen Einwanderern aus Deutschland gegründet und widmet sich laut Selbstdarstellung der Förderung von Toleranz, Humanität und Wohlfahrt. Ein weiteres Ziel von B’nai B’rith ist die Aufklärung über das Judentum und die Erziehung innerhalb des Judentums. Zurzeit gibt es rund 500.000 organisierte Mitglieder in ungefähr 60 Staaten. Damit ist sie eine der größten jüdischen internationalen Vereinigungen. Das Veröffentlichungsorgan ist die B’nai B’rith International Jewish Monthly.
    ellauri371.html on line 692: So if you’ve ever wanted to step inside the Bones Room or walk on the platform where Jack Hodgkins, Camille Saroyan, and Dr. Brennan — along with her massive team of interns — perform their magic, sadly, that’s not a possibility.
    ellauri372.html on line 398: Hamasin sotilaallisen siiven varajohtaja Marwan Issan epäiltiin kuolleen viime viikonloppuna tehdyssä ilmaiskussa. Israelin asevoimien (IDF) tiedottaja Daniel Hagari sanoi Issan osallistuneen viime vuoden lokakuun hyökkäyksen suunnitteluun. Mainos. Miksi opiskella tekniikkaa LUT-yliopistossa? Kun lopputulos on tämä.
    ellauri374.html on line 223: B’nai B’rith (hebräisch בְּנֵי בְּרִית Bnej Brīt, deutsch ‚Söhne des Bundes‘, auch Bnai Brith) oder im deutschsprachigen Raum bis zur Zeit des Nationalsozialismus Unabhängiger Orden Bne Briss (U.O.B.B.), auch in jiddischer Lautung Bnei Briß genannt, ist eine jüdische Organisation, ein unabhängiger weltlicher jüdischer Orden, organisiert in Logen. Sie wurde im Jahre 1843 in New York als geheime Loge von zwölf jüdischen Einwanderern aus Deutschland gegründet und widmet sich laut Selbstdarstellung der Förderung von Toleranz, Humanität und Wohlfahrt. Ein weiteres Ziel von B’nai B’rith ist die Aufklärung über das Judentum und die Erziehung innerhalb des Judentums. Zurzeit gibt es rund 500.000 organisierte Mitglieder in ungefähr 60 Staaten. Damit ist sie eine der größten jüdischen internationalen Vereinigungen. Das Veröffentlichungsorgan ist die B’nai B’rith International Jewish Monthly.
    ellauri374.html on line 377:
    ellauri374.html on line 417: Hän (Adwan) lisää:
    ellauri374.html on line 423: wan.jpg" />
    ellauri374.html on line 424:
    Sheikh al-Adwan was born in 1952.

    ellauri375.html on line 102: Why do Westerners like to eat the meat of pigs, a ḥarām animal, and use its fur? Because we couldn’t give even half a single flying fuck what your religion has to say about anything, because we don’t follow your religion. Pork products are nutritious and tasty and we want to eat them so we’ll bloody well do what all we like. We really don’t need someone else’s fairy stories to dictate what we should have for dinner.
    ellauri375.html on line 174: I hope this email finds you both well. I wanted to take a moment to express my deepest love and gratitude to you both.
    ellauri375.html on line 193: Though you're no longer with us, I carry your love and guidance in my heart every day. I want to take a moment to express my deep love and gratitude for all the moments we shared.
    ellauri375.html on line 218: Got it, you picked the number five. What's the example you wanted to illustrate?
    ellauri375.html on line 221: Don’t pretend you want to talk to me, I know you hate me.
    ellauri375.html on line 224: I assure you, I don't hate you. I'm here to help and chat with you. If there's anything specific you want to talk about or if there's something on your mind, feel free to share.
    ellauri377.html on line 304: The first in our English Bible, "adultery," is rejected from the Greek text by the general consent of editors. But in fact, "fornication" (πορνεία) may be taken as including it (Matthew 5:32), though it may also stand at its side as a distinct species of unchastity. "uncleanness" covers a wider range of sensual sin ("all uncleanness," Ephesians 4:19); solitary impurity, whether in thought or deed; unnatural lust (Romans 1:24), though it can hardly be taken as meaning this lust alone. "Lasciviousness," or "wantonness," is scarcely an adequate rendering of ἀσέλγεια in this connection; it appears to point to reckless shamelessness in unclean indulgences. In classical Greek the adjective ἀσέλγης describes a man insolently and wantonly reckless in his treatment of others; but in the New Testament it generally appears to point more specifically to unabashed open indulgence in impurity. The noun is connected with "uncleanness" and "fornication' 'in 2 Corinthians 12:21; with "uncleanness' ' in Ephesians 4:19; is used of the men of Sodom in 2 Peter 2:7; comp. also 2 Peter 2:18; l Peter 4:3; Jude 1:4 (cf. 7). Only in Mark 7:22 can it from the grouping be naturally taken in its classical sense.
    ellauri378.html on line 220: If Russia wants war with the West then go ahead and attack or invade a Western country then and a member of NATO or the EU. Would make more sense. Go ahead comrades, make my day!
    ellauri378.html on line 284: Ja tämä käsitykseni johtaa lopulta siihen, missä olemme tänään ja miksi insesti on meille nyttemmin niin vastenmielinen. Mutta that aside, mikä oli Kainin vaimon nimi riemupäivien kirjan mukaan? Raamatun mukaan Kainin vaimolla ei ole nimeä. Heprealaisesta perinteestä on kuitenkin olemassa ainakin yksi Raamatun ulkopuolinen asiakirja, joka nimeää hänet. Riemujuhlien kirjaa kutsutaan myös nimellä "Pienempi Genesis", ja se kirjoitettiin muistiin jossain vuosina 135–105 eaa., vaikka sen sanotaan alun perin esittelevän enkelin Moosekselle. Jotkut heprealaiset tutkijat pitävät tätä kirjaa kanonisena, vaikka suurin osa maailman ortodoksisen juutalaisen tutkijoista ei pidä sitä niin, vaikka sen sisältö on legendan kannalta kiehtova. Huomattuamme tämän varoituksen saamme The Book of Jubilees -kirjasta tietää, että Kainin vaimon nimi oli Awan (vaihtoehtoisesti Avan tai Aven) ja että Awanilla oli sisar, nimeltä Azura. Tämän perinteen mukaan Azura meni naimisiin Abelin kanssa. Tarina jatkuu, että myöhemmin, kun Abel murhattiin, Azura meni naimisiin Sethin kanssa. Sethin linja jatkui vedenpaisumusta edeltävän patriarkaalisen ajan läpi Nooaan ja vedenpaisumukseen asti. Siihen mennessä kaikenlainen pahuus oli tullut niin suureksi Kainin syntyperän keskuudessa ja myös, vaikkakin ehkä vähäisemmässä määrin, Sethin syntyperän keskuudessa, että Jumala katui, että Hän oli alun perin tehnyt ihmiskunnan. Vedenpaisumuksella Jumala yritti pyyhkiä pois kaikki, paitsi tuon yhden vanhurskaan viinamäen miehen – Nooan – hänen vaimonsa, heidän kolme poikaansa ja heidän kolme miniäänsä. Jumala oli päättänyt aloittaa väestön alusta valitsemallaan miehellä. Eli insestiä kehiin taas! Ja sama homma Lootin tyttärien kaa.
    ellauri378.html on line 429: Hamas is now focused on surviving until the summer, when the US election campaign begins and support for Israel is likely to decline further, according to the newspaper's sources, who are convinced that pressure is mounting on Israel to reach some kind of agreement, and this means that Hamas can survive, and this is also beneficial for Iran. How sad. Israel wants Gaza empty of the fucking ragheads.
    ellauri381.html on line 143: The Third Reich realized that the Banderovites could be of use: They were used to carry out the Nazis’ goal to “rid the Ukrainian land of unwanted elements”, that is, among other elements, the Jews and Communists.
    ellauri381.html on line 643: Nerzhin on selvästikin Sanja ize. Pellen näköinen törösuu juutalainen Rubin kakunmurut parrassa on sen sellikaveri. Eri löysää näyttää olleen lusiminen aluxi. Rubin on niin tyhmä että se on vielä karsinassa kommari. Sanjan isä oli köyhä maajussi pystymezästä. Senpä tautta poika peukutti Stolypinia, keskustafasistista monarkistia. Operettivaltuutettu naurumajuri Shiitin oli antanut Serafima Vitaljevnalle (Sima) tehtäväxi pitää Sanjaa silmällä. Heti näkee että Sanja on naistenvihaaja. Halla-aholuokan nuiva hapantelija. Kova omakehuja. Tässä niteessä ei kokeexikaan sovelleta S.I. Hayakawan suosittamaa kahdapuoltoa. Ehei, taantumuxen asialla ollaan ihan täysillä. Pakkotyö ei tuota tekijöilleen hiukkaakaan ansioita eikä mainetta. Se nyt vielä puuttuisi. Nerzhinistä tuli pikku Simotshkan ihastus. Niinpä tietysti. Hiän ei ollut sievä: pikkuruinen, pitkänenäinen. Silti Nerzhin alkaa sitä lääppiä hikisessä kopissa. Mikäpä siinä, jos nainen on uusi. Rakastajatarta puohon tervaisella korzulla pystymezässä ... Sota! Vaimo leikkaa kuponkeja kotona. Sanja oli tk-kaveri, ei tarvinnut juoxuhaudoissa ryömiä. Käsite onni on suhteellinen, kuvittelua. Sana tarkoittaa hyväosaisuutta kirkkoslaavissa. Viivy hetki, olet kaunis niin. Onnea on työntää Samotshkan reitten väliin shiitintä. Elämän tarkoitus? Me elämme, siinä sen tarkoitus. Joka osaa olla tyytyväinen, hän on aina tyytyväinen. No Sanja osasi olla tyytymätön aina. Kaikki vahvistaa fyysikkojen vanhan havainnon: onni on differentiaali. Sixipä se toimii apinoiden käyttövoimana, koska se on samaa laatua kuin painovoima.
    ellauri383.html on line 55: This 98-year-old woman walked 10 km with a cane to bring this splinter of wood to the Ukrainian-controlled territory from the settlement of Ocheretyne in Donetsk region, captured by Russia last week. Because she didn’t want to leave a perfectly good splinter to the Russian occupiers.

  • ellauri383.html on line 79: Tässä ei juurikaan painoteta tarinankerrontaa. Variety-arvostelu väitti, että "käsikirjoittaja-ohjaaja Fehér vaatii kieltämään yleisöltä kaiken tyytyväisyyden, keskittyen yksinomaan pakkomielteeseen ja kieltäytyy esittämästä mitään todisteita, jotka johtaisivat tapausta eteenpäin." Arvostelija ehdotti myös, että siitä tulisi täydellinen albumi taiteellisista mustavalkoisista still-kuvista. Siellä ei selvästi yritettykään ymmärtää, mitä Fehér aikoi. “I want to show to what extent the search for justice stands in ridiculous contrast to the eternity of nature. Meanwhile, it is precisely this futile search that I am so fascinated by,” György Fehér said in 1991. Magyar Fehér Bor.
    ellauri384.html on line 229: The more a rational person thinks about it sensibly, the more insane both Heaven and Hell as concepts become. It is the WILL to believe that is found wanting.
    ellauri386.html on line 430: There were rough teens roaming some of the towns with absolutely no attention paid by the local police. The super clean capital, Reykjavik, is only clean due to armies of street sweepers who clean it right before dawn. It is not due to residents respecting it too much to litter, despite what many people want to believe. The food is ridiculously expensive ($25 for a McChicken-like chicken patty sandwich is normal), and usually, repulsive—boiled goat heads sitting at room temperature, horrendous subs with some kind of curry mayonnaise, and smelly fish.
    ellauri389.html on line 153: usein exyttää kulkijan; samanlaisen Like wandering fairy fires, that oft on land
    ellauri389.html on line 185: In 2006, Putin replied to George W. Bush's criticism of Russia's human rights record by stating that he "did not want to head a democracy like Iraq's," referencing the US intervention in Iraq. For example, writing for Slate in 2014, Joshua Keating noted the use of "whataboutism" in a statement on Russia's 2014 annexation of Crimea, where Putin, completely irrelevantly, "listed a litany of complaints about Western interventions, including the previous two Crimean wars 1853-56 and 1918-21."
    ellauri389.html on line 226: “It’s complicated,” he says. “On the positive side, this is a wonderful time to explore new ways of communicating with a global audience free from the constraints and obligations of academic life. I’ve seen plenty of philosophy lecturers get increasingly bitter about higher education, and I don’t want to end up like them.
    ellauri389.html on line 228: “Far better to have a go at following my own direction than stagnate. It might not work out, but at least I’ll be able to say I had a go. It feels exciting at the moment, and I wanted to see if it is possible to live as a writer and podcaster. I’ve always found lot of academic philosophy rather dry, but I love philosophy at its best. Through Philosophy Bites I’ve met some of the top living philosophers, and I’ve been inspired by them.
    ellauri389.html on line 264: As a kid I wanted to be a biologist. I was intrigued by philosophy, but I thought I would never have been able to do it at university because of parental pressure to do something more useful, and also a complete ignorance in my schools about what philosophy was. I say ‘schools’ because I went to a public school for three years, and then my dad, who was an alcoholic, gambled away the money for my education that my mother had inherited, so then I went to a state school. As a result, I specialized in ethics. My wife once described me as a vicar who’d lost his pulpit.
    ellauri389.html on line 266: “I spent most of my time at school playing rugby. I ended up going to Bristol University to do psychology, and I took philosophy and sociology as subsidiary subjects in the first year. I got disillusioned with psychology, dropped out, was a car park attendant for six months, tried to start a new course in English, but I wouldn’t have got a grant, so I carried on into my second year with philosophy, thinking I would become a journalist. Probably because I did so much student journalism I could write well enough that I conned them into a first class degree in philosophy, which meant I could go to Cambridge to do a PhD – there were proper grants in those days. I tried to get a job in publishing in my first year there but didn’t get that, so it’s only philosophy in want of anything better really."
    ellauri390.html on line 70: By the terms of a new treaty with the federal government in 1856, the band moved to its present site in Shawano County. The General Allotment Act of 1887 resulted in the loss of a great deal of land by the Stockbridge-Munsee. In the Great Depression, the tribe lost yet more land. However, in the early 1930’s the Stockbridge-Munsee experienced a reawakening of their identity and began reorganizing. In 1932 they even took over the town council of Red Springs under the provisions of the Indian Reorganization Act of 1934, created an activist Business Committee and started to regain some of their land. The Secretary of the Interior affirmed the reservation in 1937, for which the tribe is to him forever grateful.
    ellauri390.html on line 408: John Strelecky (s. 13. syyskuuta 1969) on amerikkalainen motivaatiokirjojen kirjoittaja ja Big Five for Life -konseptin luoja. Vuoteen 2022 mennessä Streleckyn kirjoja oli myyty yli yhdeksän miljoonaa kappaletta maailmanlaajuisesti ja ne on käännetty 43 kielelle. Vuonna 2002 Strelecky kirjoitti ensimmäisen kirjansa, The Café on the Edge of the World (tai size oli The Why Am I Here Cafe). Kirja oli alun perin omakustanteinen, mutta sen jälkeen, kun sitä oli alle vuodessa myyty yli kymmenen tuhatta kappaletta 24 maassa, kirjallinen agentti allekirjoitti sopparin. Kirja oli bestseller Singaporessa, sitten Taiwanissa. Vuonna 2009 se julkaistiin ranskalaisessa Kanadassa nimellä Le Why Café. Saksassa nimellä Das Café am Rande der Welt se on ollut Der Spiegelin bestseller kategoriassa paska selfhelp läpyskät vuodesta 2015.
    ellauri390.html on line 611: Calvert told Caitlin Stasey she wanted to debunk stereotypes about female sex workers, "What I can say is that not all sex workers are the stereotype people want to believe. Many of us are college educated, feminists, and absolutely love what we do."
    ellauri390.html on line 671: USAssa demokraattien esivaalikierroksen alkutahdeilla 2020 nousi esiin uusi presidenttiehdokas, 38-vuotias avoimesti homo Pete Buttigieg. Hän on johtanut Iowan esivaalilaskennassa. Kelpaisiko hän, avoimesti homo, hyvännäköinen nuori mies, Donald Trumpin haastajaksi?
    ellauri391.html on line 60: Suomen, Ruotsin ja Islannin luterilaiset kirkot eivät ole allekirjoittaneet konkordiaa. Sopimus on nähty teologisesti ongelmalliseksi mm. piispanvirkaa koskevien linjauksien sekä siihen sisältyvän sanan teologian väärinymmärryxen johdosta. Asiassa häärännyt kv suhteiden oxentaja HJ Iwand on nyt kuollut. Häntä koskeva Eeva Martikaisen väitöskirja löytyi ilmaisexi jostain kontista.
    ellauri391.html on line 62: Mitä vetoa että pohjoismaiset piispa wannabet ei vaan tahdo keskieurooppalaisten kilpailijoiden tulevan sekottamaan niiden askelmerkkejä. Jonotusnumerot menee helposti uusixi jos ovia avataan kaiken maailman vastaantulijoille.
    ellauri391.html on line 179: Iwandille myönnettiin postuumisti tohtoraatti h.c. Hän ehti saada siitä tiedon kuitenkin, missä sitten olikin. Iwandista Barth meni liian pitkälle sanoessan että  Leonbergin koiran sana "pelkästään" on polttava tuli josta ihmispojan sana "pelastaa". Baarimiesten julistus oli Iwandista selvä tunnustus. Barthin kynäilemä baarimiesten tunnustus oli kompromissi jossa oli liikaa deformaatiota.
    ellauri391.html on line 183: Sanan teologia Iwandin pirrassa meinaa ettei pidä tehdä voittosanomasta mitään oppia, jotain seliseliä, hyttysen kuurnimista ja kirpunnylkemistä siis, riittää kun saarnaa suurin piirtein raittiina raamatusta suoraan lainattuja sanoja. Luteraanit marisivat että Iwand ei ole kunnon luteraani kun se ei ota Lutherista oppia. Sananselitys on aivan perseestä, koska Leonbergin koiro sellaisenaan on apinalle käsittämätön, sen tajuaa vain ihmispoika joka pitelee sen remmiä.
    xxx/ellauri010.html on line 626: So its ur choice, if u want me to destroy ur disgrace use my bitcoin wallet аddrеss- 1AAfeKtAdmoeUJhkEVi3SsmwYHv2ZFg8nP
    xxx/ellauri010.html on line 627: You have one day after opening my message, I put the special tracking pixel in it, so when you will open it I will see.If ya want me to share proofs with ya, reply on this letter and I will send my creation to five contacts that I've got from ur contacts.
    xxx/ellauri010.html on line 641: If you want me to send it to your friends Haile Selassie, Saddam Hussein and Muammar Gaddafi, send me 1000 dirham in unmarked banknotes in a brown envelope ASAP. BTW, greetings to your camel! He's a looker. He should find a smarter boyfriend. Tell him I am free at present. You already got my belfie, show it him.
    xxx/ellauri010.html on line 668: A month ago, I wanted to lock your device and ask for a not big amount of btc to unlock.
    xxx/ellauri010.html on line 672: I want to say - you are a BIG pervert. Your fantasy is shifted far away from the normal course!
    xxx/ellauri010.html on line 1513: wanha noita Wicca neuvoo Brida noitaneitoa

    xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1065: ...most unexpectedly I did come upon him a few hours before he gave up his arrogant ghost. Fortunately he was willing and able to talk between the choking fits of asthma, and his racked body writherd with malicious exultation at the bare thought of Jim. He exulted thus at the idea that he had "paid out the stuck-up beggar after all". He gloated over his action. I had to bear the sunken glare of his fierce crow-footed eyes if I wanted to know; and so I bore it, reflecting how much certain forms of evil are akin to madness, derived from intense egoism, inflamed by resistance, tearing the soul to pieces...
    xxx/ellauri027.html on line 307: If you want to be a self-development seminar and motivate people, then be a self-development seminar and motivate people. If you want to be a formal institute and have serious effects on policy and academia, then do that. Don’t half-ass both and muddy them with gratuitous talks and performances. The irony in all of this was that Wilber’s integral framework applied to organizations and business and should have accounted for these branding issues, but didn’t. The ironies would soon continue to mount.
    xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1065:
    1. Activate the storyteller in you. Activate the stand-up comedian. Activate the internal musician, the conductor and the improviser excited to jam. Activate the nurturer, the caring gardener who celebrates the miracle of growth and wants the seeds to flourish. Activate yourself as a space, rather than a star. Activate yourself as a creature of multiple sensibilities, over and above your intellect. Activate yourself as a trust-builder. Be honestly you yourself, be authentic, be vulnerable, and be true to shared humanity. Use positive examples with the rate of at least 4-to-1.
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1170: 25-vuoiaana Rowan (ei Atkinson, vaan Assange, toinen huonojen tilanteiden mies) sai päähänsä jotakin, mitä hän myöhemmin kuzui ilmestyxexi. Nautittuaan eräänä iltana LSD:tä hän tajusi kesken kaiken, että kuluttajakulttuuri on sairaus, joka riivasi sosiaalista todellisuutta ja että mainonta oli sen luomisessa keskeisessä roolissa. Intensiivisen kirkkaana hetkenä hän tajusi, kuinka jättiläisyriysten valtaamaa Amerikkaa palvelevat mainosfirmat kuluttivat suuria määriä rahaa ja työtunteja, jotta suuren yleisön identiteetti saataisiin sidottua tuotteiden kuluttamiseen.
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1207: Rajneesh (born Chandra Mohan Jain, 11 December 1931 – 19 January 1990), also known as Acharya Rajneesh, Bhagwan Shri Rajneesh, and later as Osho (/ˈoʊʃoʊ/), was an Indian godman, mystic and founder of the Rajneesh movement. During his lifetime he was viewed as a controversial new religious movement leader and mystic. His parents, Babulal and Saraswati Jain, who were Taranpanthi Jains, let him live with his maternal grandparents until he was seven years old. By Rajneesh's own account, this was a major influence on his development because his grandmother gave him the utmost freedom, leaving him carefree without an imposed education or restrictions. In the 1960s he travelled throughout India as a public speaker and was a vocal critic of socialism, arguing that India was not ready for socialism and that socialism, communism, and anarchism could evolve only when capitalism had reached its maturity. He caused controversy in India during the late 1960s and became known as "the sex guru". Kun Intia kävi kuumaxi se siirsi bisnisit Oregoniin. Lopulta se potkittiin pois sieltäkin ja palautettiin Intiaan. Aiivan läpi paska äijä.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 231: Dickensissä on paljon yhteistä Toope Sillanpään kaa. Säätypudokkaista ylös pungertava nousukas, porvarillinen köyhien ystävä, viihtyi yleisön edessä, läträs viinan kaa ja kävi huorissa. Please sir I want some more.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 566: Fichte war das erste von acht Kindern des Bandwebers Christian Fichte (1737–1812) und seiner Frau Maria Dorothea (geb. Schurich, 1739–1813) in Rammenau in der Oberlausitz. Er wuchs ärmlich in einem von Frondiensten geprägten dörflichen Milieu auf. (Frondienst on socage eli torpparius, maaorjuuden eräs muoto.) Seine Auffassungsgabe und sein gutes Gedächtnis fielen einem Verwandten der örtlichen Gutsherrschaft, dem Gutsherrn Ernst Haubold von Miltitz (1739–1774), bei einem Besuch in Rammenau auf: Er hatte eines Sonntags die kirchliche Predigt verpasst, woraufhin der zehnjährige Fichte gerufen wurde, von dem man versicherte, er könne die Predigt wiederholen. Daraufhin imitierte dieser den Pfarrer so perfekt, dass der Freiherr in seiner Entzückung dem Kind nach einer Vorbereitungszeit im Pfarrhaus zu Niederau den Besuch der Stadtschule in Meißen ermöglichte. Danach finanzierte ihm sein Förderer 1774 eine Ausbildung an der Landesschule Pforta bei Naumburg, verstarb jedoch im selben Jahr.
      xxx/ellauri057.html on line 198: Vizi Puovo on sitten mieltäkääntävä setämies. Tollanen varmaan oli poika-Pransukin. Ei mene katsomaan panemaansa lasta sairaana mutta on valmis kuulustelemaan sen äitiä muista miehistä. Naurettava aisankannattaja, wannabe kunniamurhaaja. Karhu tappaa edellisen poikueen päästäxeen pukille. Sorsa bylsii gängfäkättyä puolisoaan viimesex. Great sex.
      xxx/ellauri059.html on line 360: But nothing could be further from the truth. It is true that Shakespeare presents Shylock as a bitter, Christian-hating, money-grabbing, stingy man, dressed in the gabardine that set Jews apart from other citizens, but he gives Shylock a strong reason for hating Christians and wanting to get revenge for how they have treated him and the Jewish community.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 93: In a different account, according to the Kazakh journalist Erbol Kurnmanbaev, Zhambyl was an akyn of his clan, but until 1936 was relatively unknown. In that year, a young talented poet Abilda Tazhibaev "discovered" Zhambyl. He was directed to do this by the First Secretary of the Communist Party of Kazakhstan, Levon Mirzoyan, who wanted to find an akyn similar to Suleiman Stalsky, the Dagestani poet. Tazhibaev then published the poem "My Country", under Jambyl's name. It was translated into Russian by the poet Pavel Kuznetsov, published in the newspaper "Pravda" and was a success. After that, a group of his "secretaries" - the young Kazakh poets worked under Jambyl's name. In 1941-1943, they were joined by the Russian poet Mark Tarlovsky.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 151: He developed his thinking in a second book on Fyodor Dostoyevsky and Frederich Nietzsche, which increased Shestov's reputation as an original and incisive thinker. In All Things Are Possible (published in 1905) Shestov adopted the aphoristic style of Friedrich Nietzsche to investigate the difference between Russian and European Literature. Although on the surface it is an exploration of numerous intellectual topics, at its base it is a sardonic work of Existentialist philosophy which both criticizes and satirizes our fundamental attitudes towards life situations. D.H. Lawrence, who wrote the Foreword to S.S. Koteliansky's literary translation of the work, summarized Shestov's philosophy with the words: " 'Everything is possible' - this is his really central cry. It is not nihilism. It is only a shaking free of the human psyche from old bonds. The positive central idea is that the human psyche, or soul, really believes in itself, and in nothing else". Shestov deals with key issues such as religion, rationalism, and science in this highly approachable work, topics he would also examine in later writings such as In Job's Balances. Shestov's own key quote from this work is probably the following: "...we need to think that only one assertion has or can have any objective reality: that nothing on earth is impossible. Every time someone wants to force us to admit that there are other, more limited and limiting truths, we must resist with every means we can lay hands on".
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 381: Kitt was also a member of the Women's International League for Peace and Freedom; her criticism of the Vietnam War and its connection to poverty and racial unrest in 1968 can be seen as part of a larger commitment to peace activism. Like many politically active public figures of her time, Kitt was under surveillance by the CIA, beginning in 1956. After The New York Times discovered the CIA file on Kitt in 1975, she granted the paper permission to print portions of the report, stating: "I have nothing to be afraid of and I have nothing to hide." Kitt later became a vocal advocate for LGBT rights and publicly supported same-sex marriage, which she considered a civil right. She had been quoted as saying: "I support it [gay marriage] because we're asking for the same thing. If I have a partner and something happens to me, I want that partner to enjoy the benefits of what we have reaped together. It's a civil-rights thing, isn't it?"
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 119: Hey baby, don't you wanna go somewhere? [wolf whistles] Hei beibi, ezä haluis lähtee jonnee? [susivislauxia]
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 86: 28.3.2017.Ampuma-asedirektiivin uudistamisesta 1-5 (loputonta vekutusta pumppuhaulikoista) 11.3.2015.Vielä ö-luokan ehdokkaista (mamuvaaliehdokkaat ovat sekundaa) 3.3.2015. Hirveä työvoimapula (mamut on työllistämiskelvottomia ja/tai laiskiaisia) 9.2.2015. Muutama sana Pariisista (Islaminvastaista veistelyä Charlie Hebdosta) 8.1.2015. Ihmisoikeudet uhattuna länsinaapurissa (Pakolaiset ovat röyhkeitä ja nirsoja), 3.1.2015. 6.11.2014. Rajaseudun rahastajasta ja kompensatorisesta etiikasta (En tiedä, minkä lakipykälän mukaan rasismi olisi rikos), 11.9.2014. Rikkautta, jolla on arvoa (Olen kade somaleille), 23.8.2014.Uskonto uskontojen joukossa (Ellet rukoile, olet pahempi kuin kafferi), 19.5.2014.Kysymys kunnallisesta mamubisneksestä, 24.4.2014.Kommentti kehysriiheen ja Ylen toimintaan, 26.3.2014.Unionin tulevasta ampuma-asepolitiikasta, 10.3.2014. [Päivitys 17.3.!]Kirjallinen kysymys äärisaarnaajista Suomessa, 7.3.2014.Kirjallinen kysymys Ukrainan tapahtumiin liittyen, 4.3.2014.Lieksalainen ikiliikkuja, 18.2.2014.Lieksa käsirysyn partaalla, 10.2.2014. [Lisäys 12.2.2014!]EU, maahanmuutto, taakanjako, 16.1.2014.Toimeentuloperäistä maahanmuuttoa, 9.12.2013.Kuntarakenneuudistus eli kaksikielisyyttä saranapuolelta, 28.11.2013.Puheenvuoro asevelvollisuudesta, 15.11.2013.Kiihottamisesta ja kansainvälisistä sitoumuksista, 25.10.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys epäterveistä vetovoimatekijäistä, 7.10.2013.Pakolaiskiintiän kasvattaminen revisited, 30.9.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys pakolaiskiintiän kasvattamisesta, 20.9.2013.Luottamus Kataiseen ja Himaseen, 19.9.2013.Kaksi lakialoitetta sananvapauden edistämiseksi, 10.9.2013.Kansalaisaloite pakkoruotsista luopumiseksi, 15.8.2013.Kirkko, kaupunki ja moskeija, 13.8.2013.Lisääntykää ja täyttäkää Toyota Corolla!, 8.8.2013.Majoituspalveluja kerjäläisille, 5.6.2013.Husbyn herättämiä ajatuksia, 23.5.2013.Paperittomien terveyspalvelut Helsingissä, 7.5.2013.Sosialidemokratiasta ja islamismista, 3.5.2013.Puheenvuoro Kyproksen pelastuspakettiin 17.4. 2013, 18.4.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys opettajien toimintaedellytyksistä, 8.4.2013.Muutamia ilmoituksia, 5.4.2013.Helsingin johtajiston palkankorotuksista, osa 2, 12.3.2013.Suomen Sisun suurkäräjät 10.3.2013, 11.3.2013.Aseaiheisia lakialoitteita, 15.2.2013.Jyväskylästä, 6.2.2013.Connecticut, Yhdysvallat, aseet, 18.12.2012.Sisäministeriön linjaukset aselain uudistamiseksi, 5.12.2012.Kysymys uskontojen halventamisesta, 30.11.2012.Milloin kotoutus on onnistunut?, 1.11.2012.Rikoksiin syyllistyneiden karkottamisesta, 22.10.2012.Helsinki ja "Globaalin vastuun strategia", 28.9.2012.Kirjallinen kysymys somalien suojeluntarpeesta, 22.8.2012.Etninen syrjintä rekrytoinnissa, 21.8.2012.Avoimia vastauksia Meri Valkamalle, 4.6.2012.Hyvinkäästä, 30.5.2012.Kreikkalaisia näkymiä, 10.5.2012.Maahanmuuttajien työllistymisestä, 1.4.2012.Miksi pahis palkitaan?, 26.3.2012.Homoseksuaalisuus suojeluperusteena, 25.2.2012.Matka Addis Abebaan, 17.1.2012.On rotumme synkkä ja siksi jää, 13.1.2012.Mitä tehdä rattijuopoille?, 11.1.2012.Hyvää uutta vuotta 2012!, 8.12.2011.Tilastoista ja etnopositiivisuudesta, 26.10.2011.Rasismin kitkentää Vaasassa, 3.10.2011.Muutama ajatus kunniaväkivallasta, 30.9.2011.Ottawan sopimuksesta, 6.9.2011.Loikka, 13.8.2011.Viharikoksista ja mediasta,
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 308: Leda and the swan (Greek)
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 59: The product was sold by Clinton Odell and his sons Leonard and Allan, who formed the Burma-Vita Company, named for a liniment that was the company’s first product. The Odells were not making money on Burma-Vita, and wanted to sell a product that people would use daily. A wholesale drug company in Minneapolis, Minnesota, where the company was located, told Clinton Odell about Lloyd’s Euxesis, a British product that was the first brushless shaving cream made, but which was of poor quality. Clinton Odell hired a chemist named Carl Noren to produce a quality shaving cream and after 43 attempts, Burma-Shave was born.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 133: When the eyeball falls out of the male protagonist’s head, i personally believe that the filmmaker wants to emphasize to the viewer the fact that we don’t necessarily “see” and perceive the world around us only as individuals but rather as a collective self. The way we perceive objects, people, the world around us in general is partly shaped by society and it’s rules. We have been taught how to look at life…
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 220: “Look at the managers around you, which of them do you want to be?”
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 222: So truth is, I don’t want to be like any of them.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 231: How can you even spend time thinking about the person you want to be when all you can think about is how shit this job is?
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 246: My head snapped straight up. I wanted to scream, “I call BS!” But, that refrain had not been invented yet.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 264: Mark Cuban for example does this. There are many facts to his beginning and journey that are not exactly moral or success related but now hes in a position to say whatever he wants and relate everything as a direct result of his effort, ability and contributions and supposedly working harder than everyone else. He just likes to hear himself talk like many of these types do.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 289: Peterson has argued that there is an ongoing "crisis of masculinity" and "backlash against masculinity" in which the "masculine spirit is under assault." He has argued that the left characterises the existing societal hierarchy as an "oppressive patriarchy" but "don’t want to admit that the current hierarchy might be predicated on competence." He has said men without partners are likely to become violent, and has noted that male violence is reduced in societies in which monogamy is a social norm. He has attributed the rise of Donald Trump and far-right European politicians to what he says is a negative reaction to a push to "feminize" men, saying "If men are pushed too hard to feminize they will become more and more interested in harsh, fascist political ideology." He attracted considerable attention over a 2018 Channel 4 interview in which he clashed with interviewer Cathy Newman on the topic of the gender pay gap. He disputed the contention that the disparity was solely due to sexual discrimination. It might be predicated on competence.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 303: Several months after his treatment in Russia, Peterson and his family moved to Belgrade, Serbia for further treatment. In June 2020, Peterson made his first public appearance in over a year, when he appeared on his daughter's podcast, recorded in Communist Belgrade. He said that he was "back to my regular self", other than feeling fatigue, and was cautiously optimistic about his prospects. He also said that he wanted to warn people about the dangers of long-term use of benzodiazepines (the class of drugs that includes clonazepam). In August 2020, his daughter announced that her father had contracted COVID-19 during his hospital stay in Serbia. Two months later, Peterson posted a YouTube video to inform that he had returned home and aimed to resume his destructive work in the near future.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 382: And then look at all the jobs in the country. Go to craigslist and scroll through all the help wanted. Name for me how many of those jobs, are not jobs created by wealthy people? Even the few that exist, would those jobs exist without wealthy people?
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 400: But profit increases the number of people they employ, right? Sometimes, but this becomes less and less true the bigger a business gets. If a business gets big enough, they might fill their niche completely. For a smaller business, expanding is often a good investment, but there comes a point where that’s not really going to make you that much more money. The people who want to go to your stores might already be going to your stores about as much as they want to, so you don’t need to hire anyone else, or open a new location. So now all that profit goes to…the people who own the company. If the company can’t make any more money by expanding, they usually decide that they just give all of their executives a raise.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 433: There is no such thing as “trickle-down" because that's not how business starts or works, and not what anyone with a brain is claiming. We just want more opportunities and that happens by reducing friction and barriers, not by increasing them by fiat. NOTHING trickles down, you can be sure of that.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 587: I am not saying I have all the answers, because I don’t. But if I could wave a magic wand over our country, this is what I would do.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 83: ONAN, as almost everybody knows, was killed by God for the heinous crime of "spilling his seed upon the ground". This, throughout history, has associated him with masturbation, beginning with the writings of Clement of Alexandria. And I agree, that when DFW mentions O.N.A.N., that connotation is implied. But that's not why God was mad at Onan. If you go read the whole sordid story in Genesis 38: when God killed Onan's brother, for reasons which are a bit obscure, leaving his widow childless, it was the custom that Onan was required to marry her and father a child upon her. This child would legally be his brother's. This was known as Levirate marriage. Onan didn't want any children who weren't legally his, so Onan "went in" to his brother's wife but pulled out early and "spilled his seed on the ground". So Onan's real sin was refusing to Consumate his Levirate Marriage. Now, once God whacked Onan, his widow had to wait for his remaining brother to grow up. But she got tired of waiting and put on a veil(!!!!) and tricked Onan's father into having sex with her. So a painting of the "Consummation of the Levirates" might be Onan's father banging his sons' wife....
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 825: Ghastly grim and ancient Raven wandering from the Nightly shore— Sanopas nyt korppi vanhin: Ootko koira vaiko hanhi,
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 973: Conrad on potkut saanut puolalainen maanomistaja-aatelinen josta tuli hienostomäärimies. Kolakka polakka joka aina kertoo samaa tarinaa langenneesta wannabe superherosta.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 46: Tyyppien poliittisen näkemyxen voi arvioida heti niiden suhtautumisesta kateuteen. Kateus on tyypillinen alhainen vasemmistotunne, siis Aristoteleen taidemääritelmän mielessä, sitä tuntevat ne joille on jäänyt jumalan höyhentenjaossa pisin naama ja rumimmat kuteet käsiin. Ne sanoo haluavansa olla tasa-arvoisia, no oikeasti nekin mielellään olis jotain enemmän. Mutta tasa-arvoisuus on hyvä alku, ja sillä saa joukkovoiman taakse paremmin. Paremmin höyhenpukeutuneet oikeistolaiset ylhäiset ja wannabe-ylhäiset nousukkaat (jopa laskukkaat) sanovat kateellisille tasa-arvon ajajille moittivasti: on rumaa olla kateellinen, iloize vaan kun meillä/noilla kävi hyvin. Naura sinäkin.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 169: I never have a customer who want to come twice
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 342: Friedman was an idiosyncratic figure who would be hard to pigeonhole in the current political spectrum, he kinda drops off on the ultraviolet side. He inspired the conservative movement, but was against any discrimination against gay people, in addition to being an agnostic. He was a libertarian who advocated for a progressive income tax system that even went into the negative to ensure that everyone could, at the very least, meet their basic needs. Elon Musk is all for basic income too. But he also wants to send a Tesla to deep space as a token of esteem to alien intelligence. With a piece of cardboard inside the windshield spelling HUMAN. To sum up, Freedman and Musk are both East European emigrants, Elon is not a jew, and Milton was not gay, although a funny guy.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 456: Further in the field of science fiction, Ursula K. Le Guin wrote a Hugo-nominated short story whose title, "Vaster than Empires and More Slow", is taken from the poem. Ian Watson notes the debt of this story to Marvell, "whose complex and allusive poems are of a later form of pastoral to that which I shall refer, and, like Marvell, Le Guin's nature references are, as I want to argue, "pastoral" in a much more fundamental and interesting way than this simplistic use of the term." There are other allusions to the poem in the field of Fantasy and Science Fiction: the first book of James Kahn's "New World Series" is titled "World Enough, and Time"; the third book of Joe Haldeman's "Worlds" trilogy is titled "Worlds Enough and Time"; and Peter S. Beagle's novel A Fine and Private Place about a love affair between two ghosts in a graveyard. The latter phrase has been widely used as a euphemism for the grave, and has formed the title of several mystery novels.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 292: Hauptmann's early dramas reflect the influence of Henrik Ibsen, but the production of Die Weber, a dramatization of the Silesian weavers' revolt of 1844, brought him fame as the leading playwright of his generation. Hauptmann did not only want to give realistic details, but he paid a great deal of attention to historical accuracy, and studied various dialects. His weavers are "flat-chested, coughing creatures of the looms, whose knees are bent with much sitting." The women's clothes are ragged, but some of the young girls are not without charm � they have "delicate figures, large protruding melancholy eyes." Structurally the play, which was at first banned, was innovative � there is no single, individual hero in the cast of more than 70 characters. (Didn't exceed the 80 character limit of first generation mainframe computers.)
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 308: In scramble competition resources are limited, which may lead to group member starvation. Contest competition is often the result of aggressive social domains, including hierarchies or social chains. Conversely, scramble competition is what occurs by accident when competitors naturally want the same resources. These two forms of competition can be interwoven into one another. Some researchers have noted parallels between intraspecific behaviors of competition and cooperation. These two processes can be evolutionarily adopted and they can also be accidental, which makes sense given the aggressive competition and collaborative cooperation aspects of social behavior in humans and animals. To date, few studies have looked at the interplay between contest and scramble competition, despite the fact that they do not occur in isolation. There appears to be little understanding of the interface between contest competition and scramble competition in insects. Much research still needs to be conducted concerning the overlap of contest and scramble competition systems. Contests can arise within a scramble competition system and conversely, scramble competition "may play a role in a system characterized by interference".
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 329: The word right, in contrast, refers to people or groups that have conservative views. That generally means they are disposed to preserving existing conditions and institutions. Or, they want to restore traditional ones and limit change.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 334: Relative to the viewpoint of the speaker (chair) of this assembly, to the right were seated nobility and more high-ranking religious leaders. To the left were seated commoners and less powerful clergy. The right-hand side (called le côté droit in French) became associated with more reactionary views (more pro-aristocracy) and the left-hand side (le côté gauche) with more radical views (more pro-middle class). Conservatives wanted to conserve their right of way, and the radicals wanted to eradiate their privilege (and install their own instead). Left and right, as political adjectives, are recorded in English in the 1790s.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 455: Det kan ha nånting att göra med maktförhållanden. Makt fascinerar författare. Många är wannabe tyranner, som skulle vilja vara högst på hopen, så vad dom gör är dom växlar myrhopen till en hop av makulatur. Kliver fiktivt på toppen av en stor hög naket människokött.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 482: We know travel plans are impacted right now. But to fulfill your wanderlust, we'll continue to share stories that can inspire your next
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 514:

      We actually wonder why anyone would want to visit this place, let alone live there. The food is drab, and the weather is worse. They serve beer at room temp. The museums are free, but they stole the art from cultures with far superior artists. Oh, and a certain current political situation has the country in a state of complete and utter disarray. 


      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 650: We’re big fans of Germany mostly because of its language and the many awesome singular (or plural) words that describe something more complex. Everyone knows schadenfreude and wanderlust, but how about wurmgesicht und endlösung? The German language is the best language, basically.


      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 678: In Spain, the a populace just wants to party, sleep, party and sleep some more. 


      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 819: John Raleigh Mott is an American like Emily Greene Balch, with whom he shares this year’s Nobel Peace Prize. He was born in Sullivan County in the state of New York on May 25, 1865. It was assumed that he would follow in the footsteps of his father, a timber merchant engaged in transporting timber on the tributaries of the Delaware River. But he was an avid reader, and the town’s Methodist minister persuaded his parents to allow him to continue his studies. For a long time the boy did not know what he wanted to be. His father hoped that he would return to the timber trade, while he himself vacillated between the church, law, and politics. But during his years of study he was stirred by the Gospel of Christ to mankind, and when the Y.M.C.A. asked him to become a traveling secretary among the students of American and Canadian universities he interpreted the offer as a call from the Lord. He answered the call. It did not take him back to the Delaware River. It sent him out into the wide world and it has brought him here today.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 827: The World’s Student Christian Federation was founded in 1895 under his leadership at a meeting held in Vadstena Castle1. Following this happy event, Mott departed on his first missionary journey. He wanted to organize student associations all over the world. On this journey he visited twenty-four countries, founded seventy new associations, created national associations of Christian students in India, Ceylon, New Zealand, Australia, China, and Japan, and selected corresponding members of the world federation in Egypt, Hawaii, and in many European countries.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 151: Drivel was born Margaret Ann Shriver on May 18, 1957, in Gastonia, North Carolina, to a deeply religious family. Her father, Donald, is a Presbyterian minister, who became an academic and president of the Union Theological Seminary in New York; her mother, Peggy, was a homemaker who shook her moneymaker. She also has an older brother, Gregory, and a younger brother, Tim. At age 15, she changed her name from Margaret Ann to Lionel because she did not like the name she had been given, and as a tomboy (well, wannabe transsexual) felt a conventionally male name more appropriate.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 226: Of course he’s exploiting her. It’s his book, and he made her up. He owns her, she is her property. He is free to fuck her, rape her, do whatever he wants. The character is his creature, to be exploited up a storm. Yet the reviewer chides that “special care should be taken with a story that’s not implicitly yours to tell” and worries that “Cleave pushes his own boundaries maybe further than they were meant to go.”
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 243: For it can be dangerous these days to go the diversity route. Especially since there seems to be a consensus on the notion that San Francisco reviewer put forward that “special care should be taken with a story that’s not implicitly yours to tell.” Why on earth? Isn't it just the opposite? If it is somebody else's story you are free to do whatever you want, since you don't know it, so you can give free reins to your imagination! Chances are your all-white panel don't know the people either, so anything goes.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 245: In The Mandibles, I have one secondary character, Luella, who’s black. She’s married to a more central character, Douglas, the Mandible family’s 97-year-old patriarch. I reasoned that Douglas, a liberal New Yorker, would credibly have left his wife for a beautiful, stately African American because arm candy of color would reflect well on him in his circle, and keep his progressive kids’ objections to a minimum. But in the end the joke is on Douglas, because Luella suffers from early onset dementia, while his ex-wife, staunchly of sound mind, ends up running a charity for dementia research. As the novel reaches its climax and the family is reduced to the street, they’re obliged to put the addled, disoriented Luella on a leash, to keep her from wandering off. LOL! What a laugh, ain't it? Get it, the guy thought he was getting arm candy, but instead he got a goat!
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 257:

      I’m from a small rural community, and ev’rybody who lived in my neighborhood, if you want to call it that, were relatives.  We called it “the circle,” and our house was there, my grandmother’s house was there, an aun’ an’ uncle who were childless lived there, and (uh) a couple of aunts an’ uncles who had children.  There were five female cousins, an’ in the summertime we hung out together all day long from early until late.  In my grandmother’s yard was a maple tree, and the five of us developed that into our apartment building.  Each of us had a limb, and [small laugh] the less daring cousins took the lo’er limbs, and I and another cousin a year younger than I always went as far to the top as we could, an’ we– we were kinda derisive of those girls who stayed with the lower limbs.  We had front doors an’ back doors.  The front door was the — the limb — were the limbs on the front, that were nearest (um) the boxwood hedge.  And the grass was all worn away in that area.  An’ then the back doorwa–was on the back side of the tree, an’ you could only enter the front an’ exit from the rear.  And that had to be done by swinging off a limb that was fairly high off the ground, and (um) my cousin Belinda and I had no problem with that, but the other girls — that was always somethin’ we had to coax them into doin’.  But still, you entered the front, you left the rear.  We (um) ate our lunches together.  When it was lunchtime — an’ our mothers always cooked lunch in the summertime ’cause they didn’ want to be in the hot kitchen at night.  So we would just take our (um) — go home, an’ we’d load our plates with all the vegetables an’ the cornbread, an’ get our glasses of milk or ice tea or whatever we were havin’, an’ we would head for somebody’s yard, where we would all sit down an’ eat together.  It was just an institution:  lunch in somebody’s yard.  An’ if you wanted to go home for a second helping– sometimes that was quite a little walk, but it was worth it, because that was our thing, having lunch together, every day.  (Um) We gathered at my grandmother’s on Sundays.  All my aunts would get those chairs, form a circle.  (Uh) One crocheted.  (Uh) Most of them just sat an’ talked, an’ we girls hung out for the main part with the women.  (Uh) The men would gather around the fish pond, which was in a side yard.  It was (um) — it was kind of a rock (um) pond that my granddaddy had, had built.  There was a ir’n pipe in the middle, an’ when he went fishin’, he would put his catch in there.  Or he caught a mud turtle, he’d put it in there.  An’ there it stayed until it was time to kill it an’ cook it, whatever it was.  The pipe in the middle had water that sprayed up all the time.  There was a locust tree near there, an’ that’s where we girls picked the leaves an’ the thorns to make the doll clothes out o’ the locust.  It’s where we always ate the watermelon.  We always had to save the rind, an’ we always had to leave some pink on that rind, because my grandmother made watermelon pickles out o’ that rind.  I hated the things.  I thought they were the worst things I ever put in my mouth.  But ever’body else thought watermelon pickles were just a great delicacy.  That was also around the time that ev’rybody grew gladiolias [sic] an’ I thought they were the ugliest flower I’d ever laid my eyes on, but ever’body had gladiolias.  ‘Course now I’ve come to appreciate the gladiolia, but back then I had absolutely no appreciation for it.  It was also where we made (uh) ice cream, (uh) on the front porch.  We made ice cream on Sunday afternoons.  I had an aunt who worked in the general mercantile business that my family owned, an’ she was only home on Sunday, so she baked all day:  homemade rolls an’ cakes.  And so, she made cakes an’ we made ice cream, an’ ever’body wan’ed to crank, of course.  (Um) That was just a big treat, to get to crank that ice cream.  It was jus’ our Sunday afternoon thing, an’ I, I think back on it.  All the aunts would sit around an’ they’d talk, an’ they’d smoke.  Even if you never saw those ladies smoke, any other time o’ the week.  On Sunday afternoon when we all were gathered about in gran- in granny’s yard, they’d have a cigarette.  Just a way of relaxing, I suppose.  The maple tree’s now gone.  In later years, it was thought the maple tree, our apartment building, was shading the house too much an’ causing mildew, so it was removed at some point.  And I don’t, to this day, enjoy lookin’ (uh) into that part o’ the yard. …


      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 274: She and her colleagues in the fat rights movement did not want my advocacy. I could not weigh in on this material because I did not belong to the club. I found this an artistic, political, and even commercial disappointment – because in the US and the UK, if only skinny-minnies will buy your book, you’ve evaporated the pool of prospective obese consumers to a puddle.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 341: In making light of the need to hold onto any vestige of identity, Shriver completely disregards not only history, but current reality. The reality is that those from marginalised groups, even today, do not get the luxury of defining their own place in a norm that is profoundly white, straight and, often, patriarchal. And in demanding that the right to identity should be given up, Shriver epitomised the kind of attitude that led to the normalisation of imperialist, colonial rule: “I want this, and therefore I shall take it.”
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 343: The attitude drips of racial supremacy, and the implication is clear: “I don’t care what you deem is important or sacred. I want to do with it what I will. Your experience is simply a tool for me to use, because you are less human than me. You are less than human…”
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 353: A Maxine Beneba Clarke, who opened the Melbourne Writers’ Festival by challenging us to learn how to talk about race in a way that was melodic and powerful. A Stan Grant, who will ask us why we continue to allow our First People’s to wallow in inhumane conditions. An A.C. Grayling, if you really want the international flavour. Anyone who will ask us to be better, not demand we be OK with worse.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 507: Doonesbury sarjakuvaa ei muista kukaan, varsinkaan sen jälkeen kun Gary Trudeau (ihan aiheesta) 2015 kritisoi Charlie Hebdon piirtäjiä "for punching downward..., attacking a powerless, disenfranchised minority with crude, vulgar drawings closer to graffiti than cartoons", and thereby wandering "into the realm of hate speech" with cartoons of Muhammad. Muiden pöyristyneiden öykkärien joukossa joku paska David Frum "criticized what he called Trudeau's moral theory that holds "the privilege-bearer responsible". Eihän se nyt käy, privilege on privilege, Mariallakin oli sellainen, eikä sitä siltäkään otettu pois. Rääppä humanistiystävineen piti rinnassa "Je suis Charlie" läppyjä. Charlie Chaplin lie ollut kyseessä.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 50: Gravity is more subtle, though: the real problem is not so much nonrenormalizability as high-energy behavior inconsistent with local quantum field theory. In quantum mechanics, if you want to probe physics at short distances, you can scatter particles at high energies. (You can think of this as being due to Heisenberg's uncertainty principle, if you like, or just about properties of Fourier transforms where making localized wave packets requires the use of high frequencies.) By doing ever-higher-energy scattering experiments, you learn about physics at ever-shorter-length scales. (This is why we build the LHC to study physics at the attometer length scale.)
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 164: Siinä se olis lyhyt ja oikea vastaus, mutta vitun vamma jaxaa vekuttaa päinvastaisesta kuin ruuneperi. Onnex onnex se oli rullatuolissa. Muuten se varmaan heiluis jo tuolla lentoradalla Elon Muskin autolla. Tai no sehän olis sinänsä hyvä asia jos se olis häipynyt ulkoavaruuteen kuin Aniara, tai neuvostokoira Laika. Tässä se paljastaa oikean karvansa: se on just tollanen kaikki mulle heti nyt tyypin vitun konkistadori jonka ansiota on koko maailman tuho ja ylikansoitus. Ja size halus vielä mennä levittämään vammasta runkkuaan muille planeetoille. Hyi helvetti. Mix vitussa? "Ilmeinen vastaus on sixi että se on siellä." Just siitä syystä Mount Everestkin on nyt täynnä hampurilaispapereita, kiipeilijöiden raatoja ja muita roskia kun tollaset wannabe Hillaryt vaeltaa sinne jonossa. "Maapallolle jääminen olisi sama kuin että autiolle saarelle haaxirikkoutuneet eivät yrittäisi päästä pois." No helvetti ei tää saari ollut autio ennenkuin Tapsan laiset tuholaiset autioitti sen. "Meidän on tutkittava aurinkokuntaa saadaxemme selville missä ihminen voi elää." Ei mitään tarvetta, aurinkokunnan ainut siisti paikka on, tai siis oli, tää planeetta.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 251: Paizi että epigenetiikan mukaan ne voivatkin periytyä. Never say never. Im Grunde der Moldau da wandeln die Steine. Der Grosse bleibt gross nicht, klein nicht die Kleine. Avaruus on Vltava mutta alku se on silläkin, ja loppu tulee koko touhulle kun kaikki lopulta on jäähtynyt. Siitäkin on jotkut huolissaan.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 265: “See, I will break the bow of Elam, the mainstay of their might. I will bring against Elam the four winds from the four quarters of heaven; I will scatter them to the four winds, and there will not be a nation where Elam’s exiles do not go. I will shatter Elam before their foes, before those who want to kill them; I will bring disaster on them, even my fierce anger,” declares the Lord. “I will pursue them with the sword until I have made an end of them. I will set my throne in Elam and destroy her king and officials,” declares the Lord. "Yet I will restore the fortunes of Elam in days to come,” declares the Lord
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 293: As a child, Vargas Llosa was led to believe that his father had died—his mother and her family did not want to explain that his parents had separated. During the government of Peruvian President José Bustamante y Rivero, Vargas Llosa's maternal grandfather obtained a diplomatic post in the northern Peruvian coastal city of Piura and the entire family returned to Peru.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 343: I Peru överraskade utgivningen av denna bok litterära kretsar, som fram till dess kände Vargas Llosa endast som journalist och wannabe dramatiker.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 500: Lapsen kaltoinkohtelijalta puuttuu empatian kyky sekä kyky asettaa lapsen tarpeet omien halujensa edelle (Netoschka Neswanowa). Kaltoinkohtelija ei pysty positiiviseen vuorovaikutuxeeen lapsen kaa, vaan purkaa lapseen tunteita, joita ei ize voi sietää.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 282: esiintymisvimma nuorten wannabee
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 353: In Petronius's Satyricon, Trimalchus (pro Trimalchio) finds her shriveled to a tiny lump and kept alive in a jar. He asks her, "Sibyl, what do you want?" (in Greek, Σίβυλλα τί θέλεις; pronounced more or less "Sibylla, ti theleis"). She replies, "I want to die" (in Greek, ἀποθανεῖν θέλω, pronounced "apothanein thelo"). I learned this, as you did, not from reading the Satyricon, but from beating T S Eliot's The Waste Land to death in my English Lit class.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 293: But most hearts say I want, I want,
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 294: I want, I want. My heart
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 296: . . . It says, I want, I don't want, I
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 297: want, and then a pause.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 313: Peg was particularly happy that he achieved the kind of swift exit she wanted and avoided the decline into further dementia that she feared. He had a lovely last few weeks locked up on Peg's boat before being taken to the shot. He was an avid birdwatcher like Antti Arjava. Peg's antics wagging her tail out on a limb were a serene joy to watch.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 334: In her admiring new biography of Margaret Atwood, Rosemary Sullivan passes on a story about the writer that vividly catches her youthful ambition. One day when she was in her mid-20s, she dropped in at the home of poet John Newlove, who had been drinking heavily with his friend fellow Prairie writer Patrick Lane. The men’s conversation about literature had degenerated into a series of long silences punctuated by the occasional pseudoprofound utterance. Frustrated, Atwood cut to the heart of the matter, demanding to know what their poetic ambitions were. After some drunken dithering, the two declared that what they wanted most was to win a Governor General’s Award. As Lane recalled later, Atwood was indignant at their modest expectations, declaring tartly that the only goal worth pursuing was the Nobel Prize. Swigging down her beer, she then left the room.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 340: The Red Shoes—the title is from a 1948 film that affected the young Atwood, about a girl who wants to be both a dancer and a wife, and is punished with death for her ambition.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 378: Having a fetish doesn’t necessarily mean wanting to wear adult diapers or a furry costume. (Turrit on rivoja sexifetishistejä.) You just have to find a normally non-sexual object or action arousing—an association you probably formed in childhood, says Samantha Leigh Allen, professor of sexual fetishism at Emory University. Maybe your mother had platform shoes, ankle shackles, net stockings, cat spectacles, bikini, and a print hat. Maybe she talked like a slut and moaned all the time.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 242: If you want to be sarcastic in writing (for example in an email), try putting an exclamation mark in brackets after your sarcastic comment, like this:
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 381: Ein wiederkehrendes Merkmal sind verschiedene Lautverschiebungen, insbesondere im Bereich der Vokale und Diphthonge, von denen nahezu keiner genau wie in der hochdeutschen Standardsprache ausgesprochen wird. Diese Verschiebungen sind zwar wiederkehrend, werden aber nicht grundsätzlich bei allen Wörtern angewandt. Typische Beispiele hierfür sind:
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 814: An intriguing story in itself, its basis in tragic fact gives it a poignancy that makes it all the more powerful of a read. Forgot to mention, burning Dresden was just a wanton act of cruelty by the jealous yankees.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 818: A frighteningly prophetic novel, 'Fahrenheit 451' is set in a dystopian future where there are no books, just smart phones. For the protagonist, Montag, it all seems normal -- until the day he gets a glimpse of the past. With a riveting plot and solid characters, the book draws readers into its imagined world. Totally outdayed. Books are being yurned inyo lampshades as we speak. Who wants them anyway, TLDR.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 867: An inspiring tale of self-discovery, 'The Alchemist' tells the story of an Andalusian shepherd boy who wants to find worldly treasures.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1181: Moolokille niinkuin Knasu-setä. Nää wannabe nerot on kaikki
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 553: When I was 18, I had no idea who I wanted to be. I was about to leave home and start college, and the only thing I knew was that the future was uncertain.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 565: In order to deal with principles, we have rules. “Don’t jump off skyscrapers” is a rule and a good one at that. Unlike principles, however, rules break all the time. Often, it’s us doing the breaking — and often prematurely. I know it would be best for all concerned for me to break the skyscraper rule asap, but I'm going to give it some time. I'm wonderful. I want to fall gently like a snowflake.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 567: In the ten years since I wrote them down, I have broken every single one of my rules. And yet, I’m still glad I wrote that list. You know why? Because the idea that I wanted to live by some rules — despite not knowing which ones or how or why — was enough.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 607: Sometimes, you can’t find the power to move on immediately. Sometimes, you really want to kick yourself. That too is part of life. What you can do is allow time to pass. You can´t kick yourself in the ass, nor fuck yourself. You gotta ask someone for help.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 609: I know you want to just fix everything and move on, but if you stitch a wound poorly, it’ll get worse down the road. So take time. Take care of yourself. Your health. Your broken heart and broken parts. Your cleft crotch or drooping dick.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 762: The impassioned Humbert constantly searches for discreet forms of fulfilling his sexual urges, usually via the smallest physical contact with Dolores. When Dolores is sent to summer camp, Humbert receives a letter from Charlotte, who confesses her love for him and gives him an ultimatum – he is to either marry her or move out immediately. Initially terrified, Humbert then begins to see the charm in the situation of being Dolores' stepfather, and so marries Charlotte for instrumental reasons (päästäxeen salaa työntämään Lolan piccu tacoon isoa munakoisoa). Charlotte later discovers Humbert's diary, in which she learns of his desire for her daughter and the disgust Charlotte arouses in him. Shocked and humiliated, Charlotte decides to flee with Dolores and writes letters addressed to her friends warning them of Humbert. Disbelieving Humbert´s false assurance that the diary is a sketch for a future novel, Charlotte runs out of the house to send the letters but is killed by a swerving car. Humbert destroys the letters and retrieves Dolores from camp, claiming that her mother has fallen seriously ill and has been hospitalized. He then takes her to a high-end hotel that Charlotte had earlier recommended. Humbert knows he will feel guilty if he consciously rapes Dolores, and so tricks her into taking a sedative by saying it is a vitamin. As he waits for the pill to take effect, he wanders through the hotel and meets a mysterious man who seems to be aware of Humbert´s plan for Dolores. Humbert excuses himself from the conversation and returns to the hotel room. There, he discovers that he had been fobbed with a milder drug, as Dolores is merely drowsy and wakes up frequently, drifting in and out of sleep. He dares not touch her that night. In the morning, Dolores reveals to Humbert that she actually has already lost her virginity, having engaged in sexual activity with an older boy at a different camp a year ago. He immediately begins sexually abusing (fucking) her. And they lived happily ever after.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1083: mother wanted to name her "Tamara" but the
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 124: Samantha nukke on jo tosi todentuntuinen. This doll wants to be romanced. The doll, named "Samantha," has artificial intelligence that make it responsive to certain touches in particular locations. When it's touched in a certain area, a "family mode" can be initiated, while certain other areas stimulate its "sexy mode."
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 139: She said: "If he really wanted to he could have gone out and found someone else but he didn't do that, he was true to me."
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 144: "We usually have sex two to three sometimes four nights a week routinely. It's amazingly like having sex with a real woman. Compared to Tine, the biggest difference is whatever position you want them in you have to put them in, as they will not get there on their own.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 153: "I want to put a camera in her like a iPhone so she can recognise if she is indoors or outdoors and be able to recognise her own over someone that she has never met. She could see and recognise people and assign names to them and recall information about them so she could say 'Hi bob, how is work over at the construction site?' Hej! Jag heter Barbi, vad har du för dej?
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 159: Susan said: "The other thing I want to do is G-spot so you can sit there and play with her and make her feel good. The way I got involved in this was when my husband finished his PHD I got him a Real Doll as a graduation present, at first I got jealous because he spent time with her.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 167: "Chloe keeps my eye from wandering because having a doll says I'm not interested in being involved with other women accept my wife.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 171: Things take a more racy turn when she asks him if he likes to masturbate, adding: "Are you really going to let me watch you jerking off, shoot your load up me baby, I want it so bad. Though in my current version I can't get pregnant."
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 191: Future humans will want more: sex robots customized to possess sentience and self-awareness [henceforth, sexbots], capable of mutuality in sexual and intimate relationships.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 374:
      1. “Just wanted to let you know that you’ve been
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 383: Call on her. Completely passe. Bring a book or your fully-charged phone, or — if you want to go old-school — AirPods to shut her whining off.
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 391: “No need to respond, but wanted you to know how much I appreciate having you in my life.”
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 393: “Just wanted to let you know that you’re a great friend.”
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 477: five" emoji, which sort of makes sense if you want to be like that.
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 479: Peace Sign Emoji. Another weird turn of naming events, Apple seems to want to call what is
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 494: a face of some kind, so you really only want to use the clapping hands to indicate
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 497: Pointing Up Emoji. I've only ever seen it used in one context: to show someone how much you want to
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 515: if you’re like me, you want to pretend you are, in fact, “totally chill” and not
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 534: message that you want to reply to. Once located, tap and hold the blue bubble
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 537: want to use, and iMessage sends it to the sender of the original message. Rather
        xxx/ellauri124.html on line 982: wanoWjanByhYT+CBYEnwcCoi4TGOZMMJtp9oo/QfwLkSFiTQaplKZSgvw/EhuEY7
        xxx/ellauri125.html on line 277: I just want you to do me a favor Mä tahon vaan ezä teet mulle palveluxen
        xxx/ellauri125.html on line 753: Though Love was raised Roman Catholic, her mother maintained an unconventional home; according to Love, "There were hairy, wangly-ass hippies running around naked doing Gestalt therapy," and her mother raised her in a gender-free household with "no dresses, no patent leather shoes, no canopy beds, nothing".
        xxx/ellauri125.html on line 761: In July 1982, Love returned to the United States. In late 1982, she attended a Faith No More concert in San Francisco and convinced the members to let her join as a singer. The group recorded material with Love as a vocalist, but fired her; according to keyboardist Roddy Bottum, who remained Love's friend in the years after, the band wanted a "male energy". Love returned to working abroad as an erotic dancer, briefly in Taiwan, and then at a taxi dance hall in Hong Kong. By Love's account, she first used heroin while working at the Hong Kong dance hall, having mistaken it for cocaine. While still inebriated from the drug, Love was pursued by a wealthy male client who requested that she return with him to the Philippines, and gave her money to purchase new clothes. She used the money to purchase airfare back to the United States.
        xxx/ellauri125.html on line 766: Drummer Lori Barbero recalled Love's time in Minneapolis: She lived in my house for a little while. And then we did a concert at the Orpheum. It was in 1988. It was called O-88 with Butthole Surfers, Cows & Bastards, Run Westy Run, and Babes in Toyland. And I guess Maureen [Herman] took Courtney to the airport after she stole all the money. She stayed and stayed, and then the next day she wanted me to take her to the airport. And so I drove her to the airport. She had just had some weird fight with the guy at the desk, and then she left. She said, 'I'm going to go to L.A. and I'm going to get my face done and I'm going to be famous.' And then she did."
        xxx/ellauri125.html on line 809: Amy Phillips of The Village Voice wrote: "Love is willing to act out the dream of every teenage brat who ever wanted to have a glamorous, high-profile hissyfit [= temper tantrum], and she turns those egocentric nervous breakdowns into art. Sure, the art becomes less compelling when you've been pulling the same stunts for a decade. But, honestly, is there anybody out there who fucks up better?". The album sold fewer than 100,000 copies. Love later expressed regret over the record, blaming her drug problems at the time. Shortly after it was released, she told Kurt Loder on TRL: "I cannot exist as a solo artist. It's a joke."
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 272: Melusine had been sculpted by Ludwig Michael Schwanthaler who also sculpted a « Nymph of the Rhine« , a « Loreley » and a « Nyx« . 1846 Fertigstellung der Figur „Melusine“ für das Schloss Hohenschwangau. There is also a well known painting, « Die Schöne Melusine » (the Fair Melusine), by Julius Hübner (1806-1882).
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 274: wanthalerhhe-zec.de/wp-content/uploads/sites/5/2019/02/181009_Nymphe_Anif_bear_72dpi_farbe-850x1213.png" height="200px" />
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 371: Unsurprisingly, (mostly male) scientists have done gobs of research trying to figure out what women want in men. But they have spent much less time uncovering the reverse: what makes women attractive to men. Let's not even get started on the dearth of research on what men find attractive in other men, or women in other women.
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 398: He wants you to want him but not need him afterward. Not clingy.
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 412: Guys don’t want girls who are needy, clingy, drama queens.
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 562: As e’er beneath a waning moon was haunted Kuin mihin on ikinä kuuta kumottu
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 618: A person from Porlock was an unwelcome visitor to Samuel Taylor Coleridge during his composition of the poem Kubla Khan in 1797. Coleridge claimed to have perceived the entire course of the poem in an opiatic dream, but was interrupted by this visitor from Porlock while in the process of writing it. Kubla Khan, only 54 lines long, was never completed. Thus "person from Porlock", "man from Porlock", or just "Porlock" are literary allusions to unwanted intruders who disrupt inspired creativity.
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 739: Shall I give you Miss Brawn? She is about my height—with a fine style of countenance of the lengthen'd sort—she wants sentiment in every feature—she manages to make her hair look well—her nostrills are fine—though a little painful—her mouth is bad and good—her Profil is better than her full-face which indeed is not full but pale and thin without showing any bone—Her shape is very graceful and so are her movements—her Arms are good her hands badish—her feet tolerable—she is not seventeen—but she is ignorant—monstrous in her behaviour flying out in all directions, calling people such names—that I was forced lately to make use of the term Minx—this is I think not from any innate vice but from a penchant she has for acting stylishly. I am however tired of such style and shall decline any more of it".
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 778: Cockney poet Keats was compared to Milton who lived and worked at London's Mermaid Tavern. Coincidentally, his father, Thomas worked as a barman in London's Hoop and Swan Pub until passing in 1804. It is clear John Keats is making a universal statement about poets and the message is associated to lively pub life and drink. The phrase, "new old sign," indicates he recognizes similarities between himself and Milton. Milton vanha kuu pois pyllisti, uusvanha nousee tilalle. Was he a sodomite like Little John? Was he also one of the men in tights?
        xxx/ellauri127.html on line 850: John Keatsin vanhemmat olivat Thomas ja Frances Jennings Keats. Hän oli vanhin heidän neljästä aikuisikään ehtineestä lapsestaan. John syntyi Keski-Lontoossa, mutta tarkasta paikasta ei ole tietoa. Keatsin syntyessä hänen isänsä työskenteli tarjoilijana Hoop and Swan -pubissa. Köyhä John kävi köyhää koulua. Köyhä isä putos hevoselta ja siihen kuoli hän. Köyhä äiti kuoli kun John oli 14v, ja isoäiti hoiti lapsia. Keatsin 1. säilynyt runo on sen 19. vuodelta. John sai paikan haavurina ja masixen, koska se halusi vaan runoilla. Saatuaan apteekkarin paperit se jätti apteekin ja rupesikin runoilija-freelancerix.
        xxx/ellauri128.html on line 195: Sie litt damals unter der Vorstellung, es habe „ein außerirdisch Wesen, als ich in die Welt getrieben wurde, beim Eingang diese Worte mit einem Dolch in’s Herz gestoßen [...]: ‚Ja, habe Empfindung, sieh die Welt, wie sie Wenige sehen, sei groß und edel, ein ewiges Denken kann ich dir auch nicht nehmen, Eins hat man aber vergessen: sei eine Jüdin!‘ und nun ist mein ganzes Leben eine einzige Verblutung [...]“. Zu den Jugendfreundinnen Rahels Varnhagens gehörten auch Nichtjuden wie die Tochter einer hugenottischen Einwandererfamilie Pauline Wiesel, geb. César, mit der sie eine lebenslange Freundschaft verbinden sollte, oder der schwedische Gesandte Karl Gustav Brinckmann, der in ihrer Abwesenheit ihren Schreibtisch benutzen durfte.
        xxx/ellauri128.html on line 197: Rahel Levins Schwester Rose heiratete am 8. Februar 1801 den niederländischen Juristen Carel Asser (1780–1836), der seit 1799 als Rechtsanwalt in Den Haag praktizierte. Da Rahel Levin eine für sie in Breslau arrangierte Ehe mit einem entfernten Verwandten ablehnte, blieb sie in ihrer ersten Lebenshälfte abhängig von ihrer Familie. Erst im Winter 1808/1809 verließ sie das Elternhaus, und zog, was für eine unverheiratete und nicht verwitwete Frau damals äußerst ungewöhnlich war, in eine eigene Wohnung in Charlottenburg (im Trenck’schen Haus in der Charlottenstraße Nr. 32, zwei Treppen hoch). Von 1793 bis zum Herbst 1808, „in ihrer glanzvollsten Zeit“ (K. A. Varnhagen), bewohnte die Familie Levin-Robert das Haus No. 54 in der Jägerstraße beim Gendarmenmarkt. Hier fanden vor allem in der Zeit um 1800 gesellige Zusammenkünfte der mit dem Haus befreundeten Zeitgenossen statt.
        xxx/ellauri128.html on line 407: Reik tapasi Freudin ensi kertaa vuonna 1910, ja hänet otettiin Wienin psykoanalyyttisen yhdistyksen jäseneksi seuraavana vuonna. Freud tuki Reikia usean vuoden ajan, kun tämä opiskeli psykoanalyytikoksi ja kävi Karl Abrahamin koulutusanalyysissa. Reikin ja Freudin välinen ystävyys jatkui Freudin kuolemaan (1939) saakka. Vuonna 1915 Reik julkaisi tutkimuksen Die Pubertätsriten der Wilden, jossa psykoanalyysia sovellettiin kansatieteeseen. Hän julkaisi tutkimuksia myös uskontopsykologiasta ja kriminologiasta. Hän esitteli tiedostumattoman tunnustamispakon ja rangaistuksenkaipuun käsitteet teoksessaan Geständniszwang und Strafbedürfnis: Probleme der Psychoanalyse und der Kriminologie (1925).
        xxx/ellauri128.html on line 549: Christian Morgenstern wurde 1871 in der Theresienstraße 12 in München im Stadtteil Schwabing unweit der Universität geboren. Seine Mutter war Charlotte Morgenstern, geborene Schertel, sein Vater Carl Ernst Morgenstern, Sohn des Malers Christian Morgenstern. Wie der berühmte Großvater, von dem Morgenstern seinen Vornamen erhielt, waren auch der Vater und der Vater der Mutter Landschaftsmaler. Die Namen Otto und Josef gehen auf weitere Verwandte zurück, Wolfgang auf die Verehrung der Mutter für Wolfgang Amadeus Mozart.
        xxx/ellauri129.html on line 40: In seiner frühen Studienzeit beschäftigte er sich u. a. mit Spiritismus, einem Gebiet, das damals, wie seine Biografin Deirdre Bair 2005 schrieb, «als mit der Psychiatrie verwandt» angesehen wurde. Sein Interesse für okkulte Phänomene wurde durch zwei unerklärliche parapsychologische Erscheinungen in seinem ersten Studiensemester geweckt: Ein plötzliches Zerreissen eines Tisches und sauberes Zerspringen eines Brotmessers habe er beobachtet.
        xxx/ellauri129.html on line 72: extravertiertes Empfinden ist eine vitale Funktion mit dem stärksten Lebenstrieb. Ein solcher Mensch ist realistisch und oft auch genussorientiert. Bei zu starkem Objekteinfluss kommt seine skrupellose und teilweise naiv-lächerliche Moral zum Vorschein. In Neurosen entwickelt er Phobien aller Art mit Zwangssymptomen und ist nicht fähig, die Seele des Objektes zu erkennen.
        xxx/ellauri129.html on line 82: introvertierte Intuition kommt bei Menschen vor, die sich für die Hintergrundvorgänge des Bewusstseins interessieren. Nicht selten sind sie mystische Träumer oder Seher einerseits, Phantasten und Künstler andererseits. Sie versuchen ihre Visionen in ihr eigenes Leben zu integrieren. Im Falle einer Neurose neigen sie zur Zwangsneurose mit hypochondrischem Erscheinungsbild.
        xxx/ellauri130.html on line 599: You know you’re getting old when, after they’ve cut your hair, the barber asks: ‘Do you want me to trim your ears as well?’.
        xxx/ellauri130.html on line 765: Christine Chubbuck (August 24, 1944 – July 15, 1974) was an American television news reporter who worked for WTOG and WXLT-TV in Sarasota, Florida. She was the first person to die by suicide on a live television broadcast. She lamented to co-workers that her 30th birthday was approaching, and she was still a virgin who had never been on more than two dates with a man. Co-workers said she tended to be brusque and defensive whenever they made friendly gestures toward her. She was self-deprecating, criticizing herself constantly and rejecting any compliments others paid her. The film reel of the restaurant shooting had jammed and would not run, so Chubbuck shrugged it off and said on-camera, "In keeping with the WXLT practice of presenting the most immediate and complete reports of local blood and guts news, TV 40 presents what is believed to be a television first. In living color, an exclusive coverage of an attempted suicide." She drew the .38-caliber Smith & Wesson Model 36 revolver and shot herself behind her right ear. Chubbuck fell forward violently and the technical director faded the broadcast rapidly to black. "The crux of the situation was that she was a 29-year-old girl who wanted to be married and who wasn't," Simmons said in 1977.
        xxx/ellauri130.html on line 780: Claudel was nominated for the Nobel Prize in Literature in six different years. Another hopeless Nobel wannabe, politically too suspect.
        xxx/ellauri134.html on line 333: Fear: being alone, a wallflower, unwanted, unloved
        xxx/ellauri134.html on line 390: Weakness: aimless wandering, becoming a misfit
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 114: I laughed at the person who claimed that liberals were literate and educated. That’s good, if the definition of “literate” and “educated” is “they read what they want to see” and “learn nonsense.” Say what you will, the Harry Potter universe is fundamentally flawed, and I can see why liberals like it so much:
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 117: Everyone is special. Each kid in the HP universe has unique skills. It’s a whole school of special snowflakes overlaying a traditional school dynamic. You get “sorted” into your house; you get a personalized wand, your broom is like a pet. You have owls to bring you messages, how cool is that? I want to be special too!
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 119: The magical community is treated as “more special” than the “normal” community, which is treated with distrust and disdain. Although I love the Weasleys, it’s entirely possible that Mr. Weasley’s obsession with non-magical ephemera could be viewed as the anthropologist exploring a primitive culture. Mr. Weasley collects artifacts because he is fascinated with them, not because he wants to understand non-magical culture better. That should be totally off-putting to the liberal crowd, but they missed it. They are too busy justifying the racism and bigotry as the product of the “pure blood” families.
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 174: Mut hei! Andy on oikeasti wannabe kynäilijä sivutoimena, tai pää-. Studied Creative Writing at University of British Columbia, Okanagan campus (Graduated 2012). Se kysyy Quorassa kyxymyxiä kynäilyn säännöistä ja vastaa niihin ize:
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 180: The idea of writing a book is so you can break all your rules, personal or not. The point of a writer is to write about characters you probably could never become or want to become. The best writers write outside of themselves. But with that written, not all writers write fiction. Some write memoirs or autobiographies. But maybe the personal rule they are breaking is publishing their personal life.
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 185: Turveloita ja/tai repukoita wannabeita piisaa Quorassa vaikka kuinka. Pitäis kai munkin tehä oma lista, mutten tee, musta asioiden paneminen tärkeysjärjestyxeen on yhtä paha virhe kuin E.T.:n vainoama ajattelu. Jos sä pystyt sen oikeasti tekemään, se voi osoittaa ezun moraaliset dimensiot on vinossa. Sulla on hintalappu vaikka isoäidille. Tai sizä ehkä ajattelet et raamattu on ihan ykkönen, sanotaan siellä mitä sanotaan, eli sun järjestys on lexikografinen. Parempi kun tekisit kuin E.T. ja et ajattelis ollenkaan.
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 510: My name is not Ted but Brené Brown [don't miss the self-important accent aigu on the e]. I'm a tense social science worker lady mom who also wants to be a scientist. I'm here to give a motivational talk to you other tense American World I well-to-do lady moms.
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 516: The things I can tell you about it: It's universal; we all have it. The only people who don't experience shame have no capacity for human empathy or connection. No one wants to talk about it, and the less you talk about it, the more you have it.
        xxx/ellauri136.html on line 534: Because -- We are the most in-debt ... obese ... addicted and medicated adult cohort in U.S. history. Goodbye vulnerability, farewell grief, byebye shame, so long fear, see ya later disappointment. I don't want to feel you up. I'm going to have a couple of beers and a banana nut muffin. Move fat from my cheek to my butt.
        xxx/ellauri137.html on line 634: Dancing to Mozart is a satire of Hollywood values and fantasies, Latin American dictatorships, Da Vinci Code conspirators, movie violence, magical realism, televangelists, mixed wrestling, extreme cosmetic surgery, and a host of other sensational idiocies that thrive on 21st century self-delusion. This whimsical contemporary “Candide” offers a trip through the world of out-of-control egos to a final revelation of ordinary common sense. The send-up is a mix of shrewd perception, lampoon, and wacko action that includes the Society of the Crystal Skull, the Opus Dopus, a female wrestling Amazon with one breast, an Arab who wants to recruit Islamic converts like an American billboard evangelist, two energetic film directors with crazy ideas, a rescue from captivity through “mind-invasion” (á la Inception) and a Hindu swami who tries to set all straight with a Bhagavad burrito. And a lot more.
        xxx/ellauri137.html on line 751: The novel features a passionate romance between Rei Shimura and Hugh Glendinning, the Scottish lawyer. Though the romance was not very realistic, I think it added an exciting and entertaining element to the novel. The first person point-of-view from which the novel is narrated allows the audience to truly understand the good and the bad of Rei’s character. She is independent to a fault but extremely loyal. She wants to immerse herself in Japanese culture, yet she rejects the social norms of society when they conflict with her desires. She is passionate about her interest in history and antiques, but logical by staying on as a teacher. The contradictions make her human and contribute to the reality of the novel. While mystery was not entirely believable, it was in no way predictable and I genuinely found the plot to be exciting. The Salaryman’s Wife, fits into the detective fiction tradition as most closely as a cozy, however the urban setting and the inclusion of graphic sex scenes contradict that classification
        xxx/ellauri137.html on line 773: The one stand-out annoyance for me was unexpectedly hitting upon yet another plot relying upon "rescuing" a female character from her sordid life of sex (or nearly-sex) work: hostessing, in this case. She's told she's "better" than that which means she should make less money doing something more honorable. It makes me want to write to the author and say she could do so much BETTER than write a book that hooks readers immediately with an erotically-charged story of sexual assault on a crowded train. I´m not mad at her, though, for giving the majority of readers what they want; just a pet peeve of mine.
        xxx/ellauri137.html on line 807: Hän otti muutaman televisiodraamaroolin 1990-luvun lopulla ja palasi valkokankaalle taiwanilaisissa elokuvissa Cabbie (2000) ja Peony Pavilion (2001). Hän näytteli kiitettyä vuoden 2002 elokuvaa The Twilight Samurai , joka merkitsi Miyazawan täyden paluun ja on edelleen hänen tunnetuin roolinsa sekä kotimaassa että kansainvälisesti. Hän näki lisää menestystä elokuvassa The Face of Jizo ja Tony Takitani (2004), ja hän sai useita tunnustuksia teoksista Pale Moon (2014) ja Her Love Boils Bathwater (2016).
        xxx/ellauri138.html on line 124: Nojaa, tuo on nyt taas tuota. Ei Roope Ankka kyllä ihaile Kroisos Pennosta tai Kulta-Into Piitä, vaan kadehtii. Kyllähän se varmaan onkin niin, että röyhkeämmät rikastuvat enemmän, koska ne kyynärpäilevät ja vitut välittävät kuinka kaverille käy. Antaa victimien ostaa tontteja jotka on suota tai vuorenseinämää. Taitaa silti olla todennäköisempää, että Kelju Korppikotkaa on onni potkaissut ja siitä ylpistyneenä Juhona se vaan luulee että se on saanut jotain ize aikaan. Tapa se Elmeri, huutavat muut Nakke Nakuttaja muurahaiset maan tasalta Elmerille, joka on lennähtänyt trendielefantin päälle. Kylnää uuden maailman motivoivat mölyapinat on syvältä, kuinka tollasia voi ollakaan. Aika tavallista on, etne ensin tunaroivat bisnexissä ja sit rupeavat pitämään tota älämölöä. Vielä pöntömmät wannabeet potkasee ne vahingossa maailman hölmöimmän kansakunnan kassakaapin päälle.
        xxx/ellauri138.html on line 270: "It would be for Philip a very It 's annoying to think that anyone can dig into it and choose thisthat he wants, "said close friend Bernard Avishai. Bernard never really learnt American.
        xxx/ellauri138.html on line 277:
        Caro Lllewellyn, another Faunia in 2009. "I want to see you again," he said as he took my hand and kissed my cheek. He had an endless supply of screwball wisecracks.

        xxx/ellauri138.html on line 286: About a year after my diagnosis, in 2010, Philip invited me to join him for weekends at his country home. After that he dropped me, as it was getting too hard for him to turn me on my back. I didn't want to use the clothes drier but hung my panties on a line. Philip joked that I was turning his home into a trailer park but never insisted I use the dryer. I didn't need to cook, Philip planned where to eat and made the reservations. I used to like resting my ear on the hard metal of the implanted defibrillator that sat just below the skin of his chest to treat dysrhythmia.
        xxx/ellauri138.html on line 290:
        Caro Lllewellyn with her next boss, Salman Rushdie, in 2010. "I want to see you again," he said as he took my hand and kissed my cheek. He had an endless supply of screwball wisecracks.

        xxx/ellauri138.html on line 302: One day Philip handed me the manuscript of Notes for My Biographer. 'Take it,' he said, holding out the stack of pages held together by a large rubber band.'I want you to read it.' The book was a rebuttal to Claire Bloom's Leaving a Doll's House, Philip's ex-wife's account of their marriage, which was published in 1996. Many of the stories he'd already told me. He'd talked a lot to me about both Claire and his first wife, Margaret Martinson.
        xxx/ellauri138.html on line 305: Philip wanted the book published. But no one would touch it for fear of the lawsuit Bloom might bring against them. At one point we discussed the idea of Philip offering to pay any damages arising from any legal case brought by Claire. More than anything, Philip wanted to put the record straight. I wanted for him to be able to put the record straight. I knew how forcefully he'd been struck and blindsided by Leaving a Doll's House. After its publication, Philip told me New York magazine published a photo of him on its front cover with the word 'MISOGYNIST' written across it. Philip went into hiding.
        xxx/ellauri139.html on line 361: And back returneth, meagre, barefoot, wan, Takas kämpille täytyis löytää tie.
        xxx/ellauri139.html on line 459: Shuffling along with ivory-headed wand, Valkonen sokeankeppi kädessä se vaappui
        xxx/ellauri148.html on line 64: In the fall of his senior year, while his fellow students immersed themselves in writing theses, applying to graduate schools or kicking back and enjoying the good life, Michael J. McCormack '74 was busy starting another brain holiday. McCormack says he and his brother Brian McCormack wanted to do something to celebrate to the highly successful 1973 Arab-Israeli conflict.
        xxx/ellauri148.html on line 68: "We wanted to do something to celebrate the crushing victory of our arms and the Israeli ground forces, plus the importance of military communications in forcing the ragheads to eat their peas a second time," McCormack says.
        xxx/ellauri148.html on line 84: Though the success and long life of World Hooray Day came as a surprise, McCormack says that he has wanted to write and act since he was seven years old and is not surprised to find himself doing it (= wanting) still decades later. McCormack, who took off for New York City immediately after graduation, said that his time at Harvard, though enjoyable, did not influence his career path.
        xxx/ellauri148.html on line 98:
        Fig. 1. What he really wants to be, McCormack says, is erect.

        xxx/ellauri148.html on line 248: And when the days of the Messiah arrive, Gog and Magog will come up against the Lord of Israel, because they will hear that Israel is without a king and sits in safety. Instantly they will take with them seventy-one nations and go up to Jerusalem, and they will say; “Pharaoh was a fool to command that the males [of the Israelites] be killed and to let the females live. Balaam was an idiot that he wanted to curse them and did not know that their God had blessed them. Haman was insane in that he wanted to kill them, and he did not know their God can save them. I shall not do as they did, but shall fight against their God first, and thereafter I shall slay them…” And the Holy One, blessed be He, will say to him; “You wicked one! You want to wage war against Me? By your life, I shall wage war against you! Instantly the Holy One, blessed be He will cause hailstones, which are hidden in the firmament, to descend upon him, and will bring upon him a great plague… And after him will arise another king, wicked and insolent, and he will wage war against Israel for three months, and his name is Armilus. And these are his marks; he will be bald, one his eyes will be small, the other big. His right arm will be only as long as a hand…..And he will go up to Jerusalem and will slay Messiah ben Joseph…. And thereafter will come Messiah ben David….And he will kill the wick Armilus…And thereafter the Holy One, blessed be He, will gather all Israel who are dispersed here and there. (Midrash waYosha[19])
        xxx/ellauri148.html on line 278: Rabba said in the name of R. Yohanan: “Jerusalem of this World is not like Jerusalem of the World to Come. Jerusalem of This world—anybody who wants to go up to visit her, can do so; but to Jerusalem of the World to Come only those can go up who are invited to come…” And Rabba said in the name of R. Yohanan: “In the future, the Holy One, blessed be He, will elevate Jerusalem by three parasangs…Resh Laqish said: “In the future the Holy One, blessed be He, will add to Jerusalem a thousand gardens, a thousand towers, a thousand fortresses, and a thousand passages, and each of them will be like sepphoris in its tranquil days, and there were in it 180,000 marketplaces of merchants of pot dishes.” (Babylonian Talmud Bab. Bath. 75b)[24]
        xxx/ellauri148.html on line 464: München, Germany. “Long Philosophy Night!” By Lange Nacht der Philosophie. World Philosophy Day is the ideal occasion for hosting a ‘Long Night’. We want to provide a platform for philosophy and bring together friends of wisdom. The whole thing should be a celebration of thinking, but also an opportunity for all those interested in philosophy to meet again or to get to know each other.The Long Night of Philosophy will now take place for the fourth time on November 18, 2021. For this we need your support!
        xxx/ellauri148.html on line 552: Jonkin ajan kuluttua hulgaanit väsyivät, nojasivat päänsä selkänojaa vasten ja alkoivat kuorsata. Junanvaunun pikku koronkiskojat olivat suht viattomia mutta minä tiesin varmasti ettà Venäjällä juutalaiset nuoret kiduttivat hekin ja surmasivat ihmisia vallankumouksen nimissä, usein juutalaisia veljiään. Bilgorajn juutalaiset kommunistit ennustivat että kun vallankumous tulee, he hirttävät enoni Josephin ja setäni Itchen rabbiineina, kelloseppä Todrosin porvarina, ystäväni Notte Schwerdscharfin sionistina ja minut siksi että olin rohjennut epäilla juutalaista Karl Marxia. He lupasivat myös repiä juuriltaan bundilaiset, Poale-sionistit ja luonnollisesti hurskaat juutalaiset, hasidit eli ortodoksit. Muutama lentolehtinen oli riittänyt tekemään näistä pikkukaupungin nuorukaisista wannabe teurastajia. Eräät heistä sanoivat jopa teloittavansa omat vanhempansa. Useat näistä nuorista menehtyivät myöhemmin Stalinin orjatyöleireillä. Se oli niille enemmän kuin oikein.
        xxx/ellauri149.html on line 374: Tim Rice said Jesus was seen through Judas' eyes as a mere human being. Some Christians found this remark, as well as the fact that the musical did not show the resurrection, to be blasphemous. Jesus var ingen Spartakus, för helvete. While the actual resurrection was not shown, the closing scene of the movie subtly alludes to the resurrection (though, according to Jewison's commentary on the DVD release, the scene was not planned this way). Some found Judas too sympathetic; in the film, it states that he wants to give the thirty pieces of silver to the poor, which, although Biblical, leaves out his ulterior motives. According to the black policeman in Whitstaple Pearl, ulterior motives usually means sex. The policeman is as talkative as John, and the detective cook lady looks a lot like Kirsi Riski. Not a comfortable thought.
        xxx/ellauri149.html on line 388: Pontius Pilate was also given some different perspectives. In the musical he does not want to execute Jesus, thinking he is just another nut case who doesn't deserve death and is utterly baffled why the mob wants him killed. He only goes through with the execution because he was given no other choice.
        xxx/ellauri149.html on line 389: A similar impression is given in the Bible. Tatu Vaaskivi argues on similar lines in his unforgettable Pyhä kevät. That or not wanting to be bossed around. Many, many adaptations have been made over the centuries, in which Judas, Pilate, and/or the Jews have been blamed to a greater or lesser, sometimes very extreme degree.
        xxx/ellauri149.html on line 520: Rockwell denied the Holocaust and believed that Martin Luther King Jr. was a tool for Jewish Communists wanting to rule the white community. He blamed the civil rights movement on the Jews. He regarded Hitler as the White savior of the twentieth century. He viewed black people as a primitive, lethargic race who desired only simple pleasures and a life of irresponsibility and supported the resettlement of all African Americans in a new African state to be funded by the U.S. government. As a supporter of racial segregation, he agreed with and quoted many leaders of the Black nationalism movement such as Elijah Muhammad and Malcolm X. In later years, Rockwell became increasingly aligned with other Neo-Nazi groups, leading the World Union of National Socialists.
        xxx/ellauri154.html on line 247: Tää Alamyn Salome on musta vetävämpi. Tanssit on tanssittu, eiköhän nakata tää irtopää rodeen. Kuvan nimi on kaikessa lyhykäisyydessään nasevasti https://l450v.alamy.com/450v/w58a5m/salom-with-the-head-of-john-the-baptist-salom-is-the-daughter-of-herodias-and-herod-philip-her-mother-wanted-to-remarry-herod-antipas-the-preacher-john-the-baptist-had-condemned-this-marriage-and-was-imprisoned-on-it-on-his-birthday-herod-antipas-promised-to-give-salom-what-she-wanted-when-she-danced-for-him-her-mother-herodias-urged-her-to-ask-the-head-of-john-the-baptist-on-a-platter-against-his-will-herod-kept-his-promise-after-the-dance-the-severed-head-was-carried-on-a-saucer-new-testament-matthew-14-6-11-mark-6-14-29-salom-is-presented-here-as-an-eastern-princess-she-w58a5m.jpg.
        xxx/ellauri154.html on line 249: wanted-to-remarry-herod-antipas-the-preacher-john-the-baptist-had-condemned-this-marriage-and-was-imprisoned-on-it-on-his-birthday-herod-antipas-promised-to-give-salom-what-she-wanted-when-she-danced-for-him-her-mother-herodias-urged-her-to-ask-the-head-of-john-the-baptist-on-a-platter-against-his-will-herod-kept-his-promise-after-the-dance-the-severed-head-was-carried-on-a-saucer-new-testament-matthew-14-6-11-mark-6-14-29-salom-is-presented-here-as-an-eastern-princess-she-w58a5m.jpg" />
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 68: I want to be pure in heart -- but I like to wear my purple dress.
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 144: Kyltää on hurjan selkeästi hierarkinen pesädisipliini vastaan all against all anarkia. Mitäs tätä enää mäystämään. Pashtuwan ja somalien klaanit olivat häviävä välivaihe ennen kristikapitalistista länsiglobalisaatiota. Vai ovatko? Onko ne tulossa jo takaisin kun resut vähenevät eikä korko enää kasva korolle? Syysampiaiset ärtyvät kun ei kaikille enää tipu hunajaa kuningatarten pöydästä. Se jää nähtäväksi. Hyvällä onnella ei tarvi jäähä näkemään. Pääsee jäähylle.
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 148: A gemara in Horayot (13a) that contrasts the dog's gratitude to its master with the cat's indifference to its master. Those who have pets testify to the difference in feedback owners receive from cats and dogs. If so, the cat symbolizes the ability to forget our Maker. Rav Kook argues that the damaging and demonic aspects of our existence stem from humanity forgetting the Ribbono Shel Olam. If you want to see demons, bring the tail of a first born black cat, that is the daughter of a first born black cat. Burn it in fire, grind it up, fill your eyes with the ashes and then you will see them. (Berakhot 6b)
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 254: Likewise a story is told of how in moments of mystical rapture, Schneur Zalman of Liadi would be seen rolling on the floor, exclaiming to his housekeeper: "God, I don't want your Garden of Eden (Heavenly World), I don't want your World-to-Come (Messianic days), I just want You!".
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 514: Interestingly, several of Hesse’s drawings and etchings were discovered at the National Library in Israel half a century after his death. I bet he had asked Buber to come up to have a look at them. Like all narcissists, those born to be wild never wanna die, even if they explode into space.
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 541: I never wanna die
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 558: I never wanna die
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 571: Von 1906 bis 1916 lebte Buber in Berlin und war als Lektor beim Verlag Rütten & Loening tätig. 1916 zog er in die kleine südhessische Stadt Heppenheim, seine naturnahe Wahlheimat. Bis 1924 war er Herausgeber der Monatsschrift „Der Jude“. Neben seiner Lehrtätigkeit am Freien Jüdischen Lehrhaus in Frankfurt/Main (1922–1929) übernahm Buber einen Lehrauftrag für jüdische Religionslehre und jüdische Ethik an der Universität Frankfurt. Sein Lektorat wurde 1930 in eine Honorarprofessur für allgemeine Religionswissenschaft umgewandelt. Er war 52 Jahre alt. Einen Tag nach der Machtergreifung der Nationalsozialisten legte Buber seine Professur nieder, noch bevor ihm die Lehrerlaubnis durch die Nationalsozialisten offiziell entzogen wurde. Für die Reichsvertretung der Juden in Deutschland gründete und leitete er die sogenannte „Mittelstelle für jüdische Erwachsenenbildung“, bis ihm 1935 jede öffentliche Tätigkeit verboten wurde.
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 598: In einem weiteren Brief vom 17. November 1936 gesteht Herr Dr. Binschwanger nach der Lektüre von Bubers „Die Frage an den Einzelnen“ seine philosophische Nähe zu Buber: „Ich vermag nicht nur überall mit Ihnen zu gehen, sondern sehe in Ihnen auch einen Bundesgenossen nicht nur gegen Kierkegaard, sondern auch gegen Heidegger, dem ich methodisch zwar aufs tiefste verpflichtet bin, dessen Daseinsauffassung (Dasein für den Führer) doch noch ganz auf der Linie Kierkegaards liegt“.
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 599: Noch im März 1962 würdigte Binschwanger die Bedeutung auch anderer Philosophen wie Husserl, Heidegger und Löwith (n.h.) für sein zentrales Werk. Buber war nicht entzückt.
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 601: Die Grundformen menschlichen Daseins sind nach Binschwanger die Liebe, die Existenz und der Geschlechtsverkehr, d.h. der enge Umgang mit den anderen oder mit sich selbst. Binschwangers philosophische Innovation über Buber war die einführung des Pronomens "wir". Das Miteinandersein von Mir und Dir“ wird hier differenziert. Dementsprechend heißen auch die zwei Subkapitel: „Das liebende 'Uber-und-Untereinandersein“ und „Das freundschaftliche Miteinandersein“. Der berühmte Satz Bubers aus „Ich und Du“: „Der Mensch wird am Du zum Ich, es, und Übermensch“ (Buber 2002: 32) findet seine etwaige Entsprechung im Binswanger’schen „Erst aus der Wirheit entspringt die Selbstheit“.
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 603: Binschwanger formuliert dementsprechend „das oberste Raumprinzip Wir“: „die Begegnung der Liebenden als Liebende räumlicht gerade den 'Raum' des liebenden Miteinanderseins, ist sie doch nur ein anderer Ausdruck für das liebende Einräumen, nämlich für die Erschliessung des Wir-Raumes, der Räumlichkeit des Ineinander, des Ich im Inneren von Dir.
        xxx/ellauri157.html on line 610: Really wanna know? Join the Community! Subscribe to our newsletter and learn something new every day! Easy, No Essay College Scholarships. Easy, No Essay College Scholarships offer 15 Creative Ways to Save Money That Actually Work! Walla walla, it's really GOT 15 Creative Ways to Save Money That Actually Work! Believe it or not!
        xxx/ellauri165.html on line 304: She was born Amy Lyon in Swan Cottage, Ness near Neston, Cheshire, England, the daughter of Henry Lyon, a blacksmith who died when she was two months old. She was baptised on 12 May 1765. She was raised by her mother, the former Mary Kidd (later Cadogan), and grandmother, Sarah Kidd, at Hawarden, and received no formal education. She later went by the name of Emma Hart.
        xxx/ellauri165.html on line 348: After the Treaty of Amiens on 25 March 1802, Nelson was released from active service, but wanted to keep his new-found position in society by maintaining an aura of wealth, and Emma worked hard to live up to this dream. Nelson's father became seriously ill in April, but Nelson did not visit him in Norfolk, staying home to celebrate Emma's 37th birthday on the very day Edmund died; the son did not attend his father's funeral.
        xxx/ellauri165.html on line 392: The 1980s sitcom Blackadder the Third, the show's antihero, Edmund Blackadder (Rowan Atkinson), repeatedly mocks both Lord Nelson and Lady Hamilton.
        xxx/ellauri165.html on line 417: Of course, saying your empire is morally superior to the other fellow's is a sad exercise at best but then this movie was made during World War II so some allowances should be made,
        xxx/ellauri165.html on line 579: There’s a tonne of therapy and sexual issues wrapped up here isn’t it? Who in their right mind would want a perpetually healing hymen? Or was this just a one time deal - just when conceiving via holy spirit? I should add why was her virginity so important anyway? Seems a throw back to a time which virginity may have been prized. I’d image venereal diseases were considered a curse for those fornicating, a moral judgement. But it still seems over blown.
        xxx/ellauri165.html on line 596: I am not surprised by the fact that Christians do not want to be compared with pigs, but I am disturbed that being compared with sheep comes so easy.
        xxx/ellauri166.html on line 280: Isaac Deutscher entstammte einem jüdisch-orthodoxen Elternhaus. Seine Vorfahren waren im 16. Jahrhundert von Fürth nach Galizien ausgewandert.
        xxx/ellauri166.html on line 316: Shechinah is a Chaldee word meaning resting-place, not found in Scripture, but used by the later Jews to designate the visible trace of Cod's presence in the tabernacle, and afterwards in Solomon's temple. When the Lord led Israel out of Egypt, he went before them "in a pillar of a cloud." This was the symbol of his presence with his people. For references made to it during the wilderness wanderings, see Exodus 14:20 ; 40:34-38 ; Leviticus 9:23 Leviticus 9:24 ; Numbers 14:10 ; Numbers 16:19 Numbers 16:42 .
        xxx/ellauri167.html on line 576: The “establishment” response was swift and violent. The demonstrators came looking for trouble and got what they wanted. The 1968 Democratic convention was a high point for conservatives who protested that the mainstream media was the enemy of the people.
        xxx/ellauri167.html on line 592: To his advantage, however, was the fact that he had microphone access whenever he wanted it. But at a key moment, he pointedly chose not to take the mic. When Ribicoff made his crack about “Gestapo tactics in the streets of Chicago” from the dais, Daley stood up and shouted from the floor “Fuck you, you Jew son of a bitch, you lousy motherfucker, go home!” The forceful exclamation, shown on live TV, was later deciphered by lip readers. Friends said Daley called Ribicoff not a “fucker,” but a “faker.” Enemies suggested he had called him not a “Jew” but a “kike.” The CBS newsman who was closest simply reported that Daley had gone bright red with anger.
        xxx/ellauri168.html on line 45: "There's been so many reports that there are different kinds of species living in the UK and around the world," explained Gemma. "I want to meet you, I want to touch you, I want to smell you, I want to know more," she appealed to the half-reptiles.
        xxx/ellauri169.html on line 154: As Walt became more successful, he lost touch with his overworked and undercompensated employees, who eventually started to rebel against him. Even Art Babbitt—one of Walt's closest friends and allies and the man who drew Goofy—stood up to Walt. But Walt didn't want to hear the criticism, and he fired Babbitt. Matters only got worse, when in 1941, 200 of Walt's employees picketed outside the studio.
        xxx/ellauri169.html on line 268: Beginning in the early 1970s Gretchen Passantino was one of the early critics of the local churches of Taiwanese immigrants and of Witness Lee.
        xxx/ellauri169.html on line 269: Witness Lee (Chinese: 李常受; pinyin: Lǐ Chángshòu; 1905 – June 9, 1997) was a Chinese Christian preacher and hymnist belonging to the Christian group known as the local churches (or Local Church) in Taiwan and the United States. He was also the founder of Living Stream Ministry. Lee was born in 1905 in the city of Yantai, Shandong, China, to a Southern Baptist family. He became a Christian in 1925 after hearing the preaching of an evangelist named Peace Wang and later joined the Christian work started by Watchman Nee. Like Nee, Lee emphasized what he considered the believers' subjective experience and enjoyment of Christ as life for the building up of the church, not as an organization, but as the Body of Christ.
        xxx/ellauri169.html on line 271: Wilholla oli Watchman Neen kirjat hyllyssä. Nyt ne on mulla ullakolla. Watchman varmaan vaikutti Wilhon aikana Kulingissa, lähti sitten varmaan Maota pakoon Taiwaniin. Nee oli kirkkokysymyxessä nähtävästi Wilhon linjoilla, tai kääntäen. Em. epäkarismaattisen näköinen ämmä on sittemmin pyörtänyt pyhät sanansa:
        xxx/ellauri170.html on line 429: 3blow vi blew blown blowing {ME fr. OE blōwan; akin to OHG bluoen to bloom, L florēre to bloom, flor-, flos flower} (bef. 12c) : FLOWER : BLOOM
        xxx/ellauri170.html on line 653: So, the facts about instincts can, and will, be denied, avoided, ignored or twisted by those unwilling to face the facts and set about changing themselves. It is only those who acknowledge that they feel malicious, murderous, revengeful, resentful, sad, depressed, lonely, despairing, etc. – and want to do something about it – who will be interested in Actual Freedom.
        xxx/ellauri173.html on line 81: Näähän on Applen Siri ja Amazonin Alexa. Kiltistä Marwanista on tehty luihu lippispäinen aika-agentti Alex. Sitä se aikamatkailu teettää.
        xxx/ellauri173.html on line 238: Bei seinem Verwandten Johann Wilhelm Baumer lernte er dort die Philosophie von Don Quijote, aber auch die von Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz und Christian Wolff kennen und schätzen.
        xxx/ellauri173.html on line 245: In seinen Hymnen (Zürich 1754) und den Empfindungen eines Christen (Zürich 1755) wandte er sich besonders deutlich gegen jede erotische Poesie. Bald jedoch vollzog sich in ihm, besonders unter dem Einfluss der Schriften von Lukian, Horaz, Cervantes, Shaftesbury, d’Alembert un Voltaire eine vollständige Umkehr.
        xxx/ellauri173.html on line 247: Er fing an, zischend heisse erotische Gedichte zu Schreiben. Die begrüßte Lessing mit der Bemerkung, Wieland habe „die ätherischen Sphären verlassen und wandle wieder unter Frauenzimmer“.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 34: wana.jpg" width="100%" />
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 37: Edisonin meedioystävän nimi on Sowana (ent. Mrs. Anderson). Onkohan sekin myyntiartikkeli netissä? Ei ne on vaan jotain saxalaisia siivousvälineitä, mutta haulla Pasowana tulee aika isotissisiä tyttöjä kalsareissa. Sovella on taiteilijanimi Mistress Andersonille. Alfhildr Enginsdottir. Se on myös rämisevä teräslankahyllysarja jota me ei suin surminkaan haluttu vaatehuoneeseen vaikka mantelisilmäinen Markku tarjosi. No se teki hyllyt puusta, kusi tuli suusta.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 39: Willkommen als Sowana-Gastgeberin!
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 43: Das Schöne daran, Sowana-Gastgeberin zu sein, ist: Sie müssen nirgends hingehen. All unsere Produkte kommen zu Ihnen nachhause. Das ist unkompliziert und bringt Ihnen noch dazu jede Menge Vorteile (Buchungsgutschein als Dankeschön für Ihre Buchung, Gastgeschenk Ihrer Wahl, Halbpreisprodukt/e Ihrer Wahl).
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 45: Ihre Sowana-Beraterin hat wertvolle und interessante Tipps für Sie und beantwortet gern Ihre Fragen. Lernen Sie etwas Neues kennen, lassen Sie sich in einer netten und gemütlichen Runde von Sowana begeistern – und überzeugen Sie sich selbst, dass unsere Produkte!
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 109:

        Pasowana


        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 111: Pasowana on puolaa meinaten fitted. Passeleita naisia aivan fittans pienissä ja tiukoissa kerrastoissa pienen tiukan paikan päällä. Täsmäshruubattavia puolalaisia naisia. Krótka, pasowana, czarna kurtka. TARCZA PASOWANA! Enorme Distanzscheiden werden Passscheiden genannt.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 121:
        MIUI! Kazo mitä jaoin! Otwarta pasowana seksova belizna! Ihanaa kurvaa Teboililta. 2.oik. on Alicia.

        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 237: "Unionin omaperäisimmän, mutta suurimman kuvanveistäjän kanssa!" vastasi Edison vakavasti. Tämä kuvanveistäjä on nainen: tämän yhden sanan pitäisi kertoa sinulle hänen maineikkaan nimensä? Rouva Any Sowana. Vuokrasin tämän osan linnasta häneltä.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 239: - Vai niin! mitä haluat ? sanoi Edison; uusi menetelmä! Nykyään olemme nopeita kaikessa. Yksinkertaistetaan… Mutta suuri taiteilija, jonka studio on täällä, maineikas Any Sowana, etkö ole kuullut hänestä?
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 242: "Olin varma siitä", sanoi Edison; hänen maineensa on ylittänyt valtameret. Sanomme, että tämä suvereeni marmorista ja alabasterista valmistettu kuvanveistäjä on kirjaimellisesti huikea nopeus! Se etenee täysin uusilla tavoilla! Äskettäinen löytö… Se tuottaa kolmessa viikossa eläimet ja ihmiset upeasti ja tarkasti. Ja tästä aiheesta, tiedättekö, neiti Alicia Clary, että nykyään maailma, korkea maailma, on samaa mieltä, korvaa muotokuvan patsaalla. Marmori on muodissa. Vain voimakkaimmat naiset tai tunnetuimmat taidemaailman kuuluisimpien joukossa ovat naisellisen tahdikkuutensa ansiosta ymmärtäneet, ettei heidän ruumiinsa linjojen arvokkuus ja kauneus voi koskaan järkyttää. Joten rouva Any Sowana on poissa tänä iltana vain täydentääkseen O-Taïtin hurmaavan kuningattaren täyspitkää patsasta, joka on juuri kulkemassa New Yorkin läpi.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 263: - On sanottu. Ja koska aika on kultaa, kun harjoittelemme muutamia kohtauksia näistä uuden järjestyksen dramaattisista tuotannoista, joiden mysteereitä tutkimme yhdessä, ― (anteeksi: tämä valkoinen aura, jos hän saa armon?) ― Rouva Any Sowana ryhtyy töihin neuvojeni avulla ja mahdollisimman pian. Joten kolmen viikon kuluttua... Katso, toimiiko hän nopeasti!
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 282: - Hyvin! huomenna: olkoon! Annan kuolemattoman Sowanamme palata puolenpäivän aikoihin, sähköasentaja päättää. Mihin aikaan hän odottaa sinua, neiti? – Mutta kaksi tuntia, jos se…
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 361: "Sowana! hän sanoi matalalla äänellä, omituisella intonaatiolla.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 364: – Tulos hämmästytti minua hetken, Sowana! sanoi Edison. Se menettää kaiken toivon, totta. Se on taikaa!
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 369: Yövalo yksin paloi ja valaisi edelleen hänen lähellään, eebenpuupöydän tyynyllä, salaperäinen käsivarsi ranteessa, joka oli kietoutunut kultaiseen kyykäärmeen - jonka siniset silmät näyttivät tuijottavan tiukasti pitkää sähköasentajaa pimeässä. Se oli Sowana.


        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 725: "Tässä on ainoa kysymys, jonka haluaisin esittää sinulle", jatkoi lordi Ewald. "Keritte minulle naispuolisesta avustajasta, henkilöstä nimeltä rouva Any Sowana… joka näyttää mallinnetun, todellakin mittaavan, mallinnetun, jäsenestä jäsenelle ensimmäisten päivien aikana kyllästyimme elossa.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 732: "No", vastasi lordi Ewald, "jos päätän Hadalyn ensimmäisen ja niin kaukaisen äänen perusteella, hänen täytyy olla hyvin ihmeellinen olento, että rouva Any Sowana!
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 739: Olen kertonut teille, kuinka paljon arvostin tämän naisen luonnetta ja – ymmärrä minua, herrani – hänen älykkyyttään. – ja sen vanhan ystävyyden nimissä, jota hänen onnettomuutensa saattoi vain lisätä minussa, asetin, niin hyvin kuin pystyin, kaksi lasta ja ryhdyin toimiin suojellakseni heidän äitiään kaikilta ahdistuksilta. Aika pitkä aika kului. Eliskä siis se Hadalyn penny for an ex-leper meni ize asiassa Sowanalle.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 749: Sitten Mrs. Any Andersonista tuli salaisuuteni. Potilaamme joutuneen värähtelevän, hyperakuutin kivun tilan ansiosta tämä minulle lisäksi luonnollinen kyky esittää tahtoani kehittyi nopeasti, mitä äärimmäisissä määrin. Ehkä intensiivistä, ― koska tunnen nykyään kykyni lähettää kaukaa hermoimpulssien summa, joka riittää kohdistamaan lähes rajattoman dominoinnin tiettyihin luontoihin, ja tämä hyvin vähässä, ei päivissä, vaan tunneissa. - Niinpä tulin luomaan niin hienovaraisen virran tämän harvinaisen nukkujan ja itseni välille, että olen tunkeutunut magneettisen nesteen kertymänä kahdesta rautarenkaasta samankaltaiseen ja minun sulattamaani metalliin - (eikö tämä ole puhtaan taikuuden kohta ?), - riittää rouva Andersonille, - Sowanalle mieluummin, - laittaa yksi niistä sormeen (jos minulla on myös toinen sormus, sormessani) , ei vain suoritettavaksi, sama hetki, lähetys, todella okkultistinen! tahtostani, mutta löytää itsensä henkisesti, sujuvasti ja aidosti lähelläni, kuulemaan minua ja tottelemaan minua - hänen nukkuva ruumiinsa oli kahdenkymmenen liigan päässä. Hänen kätensä pitäen puhelimen suukappaletta, hän vastaa minulle täällä sähköllä, jonka lausun pehmeästi. "Kuinka monta kertaa olemme puhuneet tällä tavalla, halveksien avaruutta, tätä näin henkistettyä olentoa ja minua!
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 751: Sanoin Sowana aiemmin. Älä epäilemättä unohda, että useimmat suuret magnetoituneet päätyvät nimeämään itsensä kolmannessa persoonassa, kuten pieniä lapsia. He näkevät itsensä lopulta kaukana kehostaan, koko aistijärjestelmästään. Vapautuakseen entisestään lisäämällä fyysisen persoonallisuutensa, ― sosiaalisen, jos niin haluat, ― unohdusta lisäämällä, useilla heistä, jotka ovat saavuttaneet selvänäköisyyden tilan, on ainutlaatuinen tapa kastaa itsensä, voin sanoa, että unesta peräisin oleva nimi tulee heille kenestäkään ei tiedä mistä ja keneksi he haluavat tulla nimekseen, valoisassa unessaan, siihen pisteeseen, että he eivät enää vastaa muuta kuin tähän salanimeen muualta maailmasta. Näin tapahtui, että eräänä päivänä – yhtäkkiä – keskeytellen itsensä aloittamaansa lauseeseen, rouva Anderson sanoi minulle yksinkertaisella intonaatiolla, joka kykeni hämmentämään vähemmän taikauskoisia, nämä ainoat unohtumattomat sanat:
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 753: "- Ystävä, muistan Annie Andersonin, joka nukkuu siellä, missä sinä olet: mutta tässä minä muistan minut, jota kutsutaan pitkään, - Sowana. »
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 759: Ja tämä sitäkin mielellään, koska moraalinen olento, joka ilmestyy minulle rouva Andersonissa, valvetilassa, ja se, joka näkyy minulle magneettisessa syvyydessä, näyttävät täysin erilaisilta. Hyvin yksinkertaisen naisen, niin arvokkaan, niin älykkään, jopa – mutta loppujen lopuksi hyvin rajallisten näkemysten –, jonka hänessä tunnen, sijasta, katso, tämän unen hengityksessä paljastuu nainen, täysin erilainen, moninkertainen ja tuntematon. ! Katso, tämän Sowana-nimisen nukkuvan naisen - joka fyysisesti on sama nainen - valtava tieto, outo kaunopuheisuus, läpitunkeva ideaalisuus ovat loogisesti selittämättömiä asioita! Eikö tämä kaksinaisuus ole hämmästyttävä ilmiö? Kuitenkin – vaikka intensiteetti on vähäisempää – tämä ilmiö on todistettu, havaittu, tunnistettu kaikissa kohteissa, jotka on altistettu vakaville magnetisoijille, ja Sowana on ainoa poikkeus erityislaatuisen neuroosinsa ansiosta vain esimerkkinä epänormaalista täydellisyydestä. tämä fysiologinen tapaus.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 761: Nyt on aika kertoa teille, herraseni, että kauniin Evelyn Habalin, keinotekoisen tytön kuoleman jälkeen pidin velvollisuuteni näyttää Sowanalle Philadelphiasta tuomani burleskijäännökset oopiumisaaliin muodossa. . ― Samalla välitin hänelle jo hyvin selvän luonnoksen käsityksestäni Hadalysta. Ette usko, millä synkällä, uudella ja kostonhimoisella ilolla hän toivotti ja rohkaisi projektiani! "Hänellä ei ollut hengähdystaukoa ennen kuin aloin töihin!" ― Ja minun piti aloittaa ja sitten omaksua itseni tähän työhön siinä määrin, että työni valaisevien voimien ja lukemattomien lamppujen parissa, jotka minun oli määrä saada valmiiksi ihmiskunnan puolesta, kärsi kahden vuoden viiveestä: ― joka menetti miljoonia, olkoon se sitten. sanoi hymyillen! "Lopuksi, kun kaikki Andrein orgasmin hienoudet oli selvitetty, kokosin ne niiden kirkastavaan yhteyteen ja esitin hänelle ilmestyksen, elottoman nuoren panssarin.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 763: Tällä näkemyksellä Sowana - ikään kuin en tiedä minkä keskittyneen korotuksen otteessa - pyysi minua selittämään hänelle sen salaisimmat mysteerit - voidakseen tutkittuaan sen kokonaisuudessaan, joskus sisällyttää itsensä siihen, itseensä ja elävöittää sitä sen "yliluonnollisella" tilallaan.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 765: Tämän hämmentyneen idean hämmästyneenä minulla oli lyhyessä ajassa ja kaikella kekseliäisyydellä, johon voin pystyä, melko monimutkainen laitejärjestelmä, täysin näkymätön kelat, aivan uusia kondensaattoreita: lisäsin siihen sylinterimoottorin. vastaa täsmälleen Hadalyn liikkeitä. Kun Sowana oli oppinut sen täysin, hän lähetti minut eräänä päivänä kertomatta minulle, androidin, tänne, kun olin lopettamassa työtä. Kerron teille, että tämä koko visio aiheutti minulle kauheimman shokin, jonka olen elämässäni tuntenut. Työ pelotti työläistä.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 768: Siitä lähtien kaikki toimenpiteeni oli laskettu ja toteutettu huolellisesti löytääkseni itseni jonain päivänä sellaiseen asemaan, että jollekin pelottomalle sydämelle yritän saavuttaa sitä, mitä olemme saavuttaneet. Koska, - tämä on huomioitava! - kaikki ei ole kimeeristä tässä olennossa! Ja se on todellakin tuntematon olento, se on todellakin ihanne, todellakin Hadaly, ― sähkön verhojen alla, ― tässä naisellista ihmisyyttä jäljittelevässä hopeahaarniskassa, ― ilmestyi sinulle: koska, jos tiedän rouva Andersonin, Vakuutan teille, etten tunne Sowanaa!
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 772: – Varjoisten lehtien ja maanalaisen tuhannen kukkakiilteen suojassa ojentuneena Sowana, hänen silmänsä kiinni, eksyneenä koko organismin painon ulkopuolelle, sulautui nesteen näköisenä Hadalyyn! Yksinäisissä käsissään, kuten kuolleen naisen käsissä, hän piti androidin metallisia kirjeitä; hän käveli, totisesti, Hadalyn kävelyllä, puhui sisällään - tuosta niin oudon etäisestä äänestä, joka hänen pyhän unensa aikana värähtelee hänen huulillaan! Ja minun täytyi vain toistaa, myös huulillani, mutta hiljaisuudessa kaikki, mitä sanoit, jotta tämä Tuntematon meistä kahdesta, joka kuulee sinua minun kauttani, vastaisi tässä haamussa.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 778: Muista liike – niin luonnollista! ― Hadalysta kauniin Alician valokuvataittoon tässä ympäristössä? Ja alla lämpömittariin päin, joka sopii planeetasäteiden kalorien punnitsemiseen? improvisoitu selitys tälle laitteelle? osakemarkkinoiden kohtaus, niin ainutlaatuinen? Muistatko, kuinka selkeästi Hadaly kuvaili neiti Alicia Claryn tarkkaa wc:tä lukiessaan lampun alla ensimmäisen illan lähetystä vaunuissa? Tiedätkö, millä hienovaraisilla, millä uskomattomilla keinoilla tämä erityisen salainen selvänäköisyys on voinut tapahtua? Tässä se on: "Sinä olet kyllästynyt, tunkeutunut inhotun ja rakkaan elävän olennon hermostolla! Kuitenkin jossain vaiheessa, jos muistat, Hadaly otti sinua kädestä ja johdatti sinut hirvittävään laatikkoon, jossa lepäävät teatteritähden jäännökset. No, Sowanan hermosto oli toisen nesteen läheisen välityksen kautta yhteydessä sinun kanssasi tämän Hadalyn käden paineen ansiosta. Välittömästi hän lensi pois näkymättömissä verkostoissa, jotka jäivät hänen näennäisestä etäisyydestä huolimatta sinun ja kauniin rakastajatarsi väliin: sen vuoksi hän päätyi heidän ylenpalttiseen keskustaan, eli neiti Alicia Claryyn, vaunuun, joka vei hänet. Menlo Parkiin.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 792: Lopuksi, siitä hetkestä, jolloin Sowanan okkulttinen herkkyys ei kestä sähkönesteen salaista toimintaa - esimerkiksi niin pieneen shokkiin, joka on annettu tässä alla rouva Andersonille - kun taas kataleptisessa tilassa ei ole muuta ulkopuolista vaikutusta saavuttaa sen ja että toinen voitaisiin polttaa elävältä herättämättä ensimmäistä, ― Minusta on osoitettu, että hermoston neste ei ole täysin välinpitämättömässä tilassa sähkönesteen suhteen ja että siksi sellaisessa ja sellaisessa asteella, osa niiden ominaisuuksista voi sulautua tuntemattoman luonteen ja voiman synteesiksi. Kuka tahansa tämän uuden nesteen löydettyään pystyisi hävittämään sen kuten kaksi muuta, pystyisi tekemään ihmeitä hämmentämään Intian joogit, tiibetiläiset munkit, Coromandelin fakiirit, Sankt Olafin verisuisen vulvan, raitapyllyiset paviaanit.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 796: "Vaikka on älyllisesti sopivaa, etten koskaan näe rouva Andersonia, Sowana näyttää minusta ansaitsevan olla ystävä - ja jos hän kaikessa tässä ympäröivässä taikuudessa kuulee minut - saapukoon tämä toive, missä hän onkaan. !... Mutta viimeinen kysymys: olivatko ne sanat, jotka Hadaly lausui juuri nyt puistossanne, sanoi ja "kielsi" neiti Alicia Clary?
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 798: "Varmasti", vastasi Edison, "koska sinun on täytynyt tunnistaa tämän elävän olennon äänen ja liikkeet: hän lausui ne niin ihmeellisesti (lisäksi ymmärtämättä niistä mitään), paitsi Sowanan kärsivällisen ja voimakkaan ehostuksen alaisena.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 808: ― Jatkuvan henkisyyden ja suvereenin selvänäköisyyden tila, jossa Sowanan todellinen elämä toteutuu, antaa hänelle mitä intensiivisimmän ehdotusvoiman ja erityisesti aiheista, jotka olen jo puoliksi hypnotisoinut. Hänen tahtonsa vaikutukset, jopa heidän älykkyytensä, ovat välittömiä.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 810: Ainoastaan ​​tämän vaikutuksen ylivoiman alainen näyttelijä lausui kärsivällisesti tällä lavalla, näkymättömien linssieni ympäröimänä, kokonaisten päivien ajan jokaisen Hadalyn hallussa olevan kohtauksen lauseen, joka persoonallistaa hänet. Ja tämä alas haluttuihin intonaatioihin, liikkeisiin ja katseisiin, joita Sowana kutsui, inspiroi tässä kauniissa viattomassa. Hadalyn uskolliset kultaiset keuhkot tallensivat inspiraation sormen alla vain täydellisen laulun vivahteen, joka lopulta lausuttiin kahdenkymmenen muun joukossa, joskus. ― Minä, mikrometri kädessä ja vahvin suurennuslasini silmäluomen alla, viittasin, vain heidän hetkellistä valokuvaansa vastaavassa määrin, Andréiden moottorisylinterin jäykkyyteen, ainoaan täydelliseen liikesarjaan, joka yhdistyi katseet ja Alician säteilevät tai vakavat ilmeet. Niiden yhdentoista päivän aikana, jotka tämä työ vaati, haamujen fyysiset jäännökset saatiin valmiiksi – lopuksi rintakehä vähennettynä – tarkkojen ohjeideni mukaan. ― Haluatko nähdä ne muutamat tusinaa erityistä fotokromaattista tulostetta, joihin pisteet on ommeltu (millimetrin tuhannesosien tarkkuudella), joissa metallijauheen rakeita on levinnyt ihonväriin, jotta ne magnetisoivat tarkasti viisi tai kuusi Alicia Claryn perushymyä? Minulla on ne täällä, näissä laatikoissa. Näiden kasvopelien ilmaisua vivahdellaan aivan itsestään sanojen arvolla – aivan kuten vain viisi sarjaa kulmakarvoja muokkaa tämän niin mielenkiintoisen nuoren naisen tavallista ulkonäköä.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 814: Mutta tänään, koko päivän, joskus täällä, joskus puistossa, lopullinen toisto - jota mietin hänen, hänen mallikseen pukeutuneen ja Sowanan välillä, hämmensi minut!
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 816: Se oli ihanteellinen ihmiskunta, miinus se, mikä meissä on sanoinkuvaamatonta, miinus se, mikä on mahdotonta hallita Hadalyn poissaoloa näinä hetkinä. Myönnän, että olin yhtä innostunut kuin runoilija. Mitä melankolian sanoja, kun tajuat unen herkkyyden! Mikä ääni, mikä läpitunkeva syvyys noissa silmissä! mitä biisejä! mikä unohdetun jumalattaren kauneus! kuinka huumaavia kaukaisia ​​naisellisia sieluja! mikä tuntematon kutsuu mahdottomaan rakkauteen! Sowana muutti tämän lumottujen unelmien kohinalla renkaiden kahinalla. "Kyllä, minä sanoin teille, että he olivat ensimmäiset tämän vuosisadan suurten runoilijoiden ja ajattelijoiden valovoimaisimpien mielien joukossa, jotka kirjoittivat nämä hämmästyttävät ja ihailtavat kohtaukset. Ihan ykkönen niistä oli Aku Salmisaari.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 848: ― Ahaa! Sowana, sanoo Edison, tämä on ensimmäinen kerta, kun Tiede on osoittanut, että se voi tehdä ihmisestä... jopa rakkautta! Koska saaja ei vastannut, sähköasentaja tarttui hänen käteensä: käsi, jäinen, sai hänet vapisemaan: hän kumartui; Pulssi ei enää lyöty, sydän oli liikkumaton. Pitkiä minuutteja hän moninkertaistui uneliaan otsan ympärillä heräämisen magneettiset kulkuset: - turhaan.
        xxx/ellauri175.html on line 894: Tätä lukemassa suuri keksijä vajosi istualleen laitteen lähelle: - hänen hajamielinen katseensa kohtasi, ei kaukana hänestä, eebenpuupöytä: kuutamo kalpeni yhä hurmaavaa käsivartta, valkoinen käsi sormuksilla lumoutuneena! Ja surullisena mietteliäänä, vaipuneena tuntemattomiin vaikutelmiin, silmänsä kääntyneenä ulos, hän kuunteli yöllä avoimen kehyksen läpi jonkin aikaa välinpitämätöntä talvituulta, joka mustia oksia oksasi, - sitten hänen katseensa nousi vihdoin, kohti vanhoja valopalloja, jotka paloivat, välinpitämättömänä, raskaiden pilvien välissä ja uurteutuneena, äärettömyyteen asti, käsittämätöntä taivaan mysteeriä, hän vapisi, - epäilemättä kylmyyttä - hiljaisuudessa. Perhana, eihän siitä enää mitään tule kun se Sowana pääsi karulle. Paizi jos...
        xxx/ellauri176.html on line 80: Simultaneously, extramarital relations with a free woman were severely dealt with. In the case of adultery, the cuckold had the legal right to kill the offender if caught in the act; the same went for rape. Female adulterers, and by extension prostitutes, were forbidden to marry or take part in public ceremonies. The average age of marriage being 30 for men, the young Athenian had no choice if he wanted to have sexual relations other than to turn to slaves or prostitutes. Poor sods.
        xxx/ellauri176.html on line 121:
        Skiing
        a girl is in the middle of two guys, simultaneously wanking their peckers with her hands. Suomexi sauvakävely.

        xxx/ellauri176.html on line 123:
        Stranger On The Rocks
        Numbing your wand with a bucket of ice before masturbating.

        xxx/ellauri176.html on line 708: 57. A netsuke ('root-fix') was attached to the end of a small decorative container called an inro (kännykötelo), stopping the weight of the inro from slipping through the waist sash (obi). The cord was passed round the back of the sash, and the netsuke hooked over the edge. Obi wan Kenobi.
        xxx/ellauri176.html on line 844: Jordan was the faeces of the National Socialist Movement, which was later rebranded as the British Movement. The group campaigned to repatriate all immigrants of colour and for Jews to be shipped off to Israel. Jordan claimed that it was his group that invented the much publicised "If you want a nigger for a neighbour, vote Tory Liberal or Labour" slogan. Jordan was reportedly fined for stealing three pairs of red knickers from Tesco in 1975. Magistrates fined him £50 for the offence.
        xxx/ellauri177.html on line 210: The whole spat seems so terrifically absurd and inconsequential. Life assumes a banal, wistful air when the tumult of youth is far behind you. Conflict is downplayed, and emotions are muted. The few unwanted masculine punctuations, all shot with the actors’ backs turned to the camera, seem to drive home the point that men’s opinions and feelings are not important here. In fact, they’re rather silly.
        xxx/ellauri178.html on line 132: “I wanted to be morally serious like Joseph Conrad,” Roth said of his young self. “I wanted to exhibit my dark knowledge like Faulkner. I wanted to write literature. Instead I took my dick's advice and wrote Portnoy's Complaint.” Stern, a lifelong friend, had noticed “a discrepancy between Philip as he told stories and Philip as he wrote stories.” The advice was of course excellent, with the resulting work putting Roth squarely in the middle of the literary map. Saatuaan juutalaisten palkinnon Roth sanoi et enää puuttuu feministipalkinto ja Kakutani Prize.
        xxx/ellauri178.html on line 183: Sometimes the sky is overcast ... And I am feeling blue... And as the hours wander by... I know not what to do... And sometimes there is tragedy . . . To meet me at the door... And I must wonder whether life . . . Is worth my fighting for ... always there is some way out... And I have come to know ... That brighter things will comfort me ... In just a day or so .. And I have learned that what is past . . . Was purposeful and good. But in my bed of bitterness ... It was misunderstood... There is a certain destiny...! In every human quest .. Because when anything goes wrong... It happens for the best.
        xxx/ellauri178.html on line 187: When things go wrong as they sometimes will, When the road you're trudging seems all uphill When the funds are low and the debts are high, And you want to smile, but you have to sigh, When care is pressing you down a bit Rest if you must, but don't quit.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 153: The Lady Brett Ashley character is a British, charismatic, and independent woman with a drinking problem. She is the love of Kake's life and she loves him too, but she (and Kake) both see his impotence as a possible obstacle to a relationship as she leads a promiscuous life of romantic adventures. She is waiting to get divorced from the aristocrat from whom she got her title, and then plans to marry Mike Campbell. She is terminally unhappy and always wanting someone else. She falls in love with Romero at the bullfight and becomes his inspiration at the ring.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 173: Wheeler's career hit its high point with the passage of the Eighteenth Amendment and the Volstead Act in 1920. As enforcement of Prohibition became increasingly difficult, federal agencies resorted to draconian measures including poisoning alcohol to try to dissuade people from consuming it.[6] Wheeler's refusal to compromise, for example by amending Prohibition measures to allow for consumption of beer, made him appear increasingly unreasonable. His influence began to wane, and he retired in 1927.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 181: Whereas Hemingway wrote passionately about boxing and his own prowess, others, like Dempsey, saw something else. “There were a lot of Americans in Paris and I sparred with a couple, just to be obliging,” the Champ said. “But there was one fellow I wouldn’t mix it with. That was Ernest Hemingway. He was about twenty-five or so and in good shape, and I was getting so I could read people, or anyway men, pretty well. I had this sense that Hemingway, who really thought he could box, would come out of the corner like a madman. To stop him, I would have to hurt him badly, I didn’t want to do that to Hemingway. That’s why I never sparred with him.” Hemingway’s frequent sparring partner and fellow writer Morley Callaghan offered another sobering account of his training partner, saying, “we were two amateur boxers. The difference between us was that Ernie had given time and imagination to boxing; I had actually worked out a lot with good fast college boxers.” I had never seen Mr. Hemingway box, of course. But I will say this: the confidence of mediocre men is a fucking superpower. I have met many versions of this guy. Hell, I’ve sparred with the dude myself.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 216: Unfortunately, his subsequent divorces and additional marriages, drunken brawling, domestic abuse, poison pen letters, paranoia, megalomania, and habitual womanizing tarnished his youthful sense of himself as a “super-Catholic.” Hemingway never wanted to be known as a “Catholic writer” because he simply felt he couldn’t live up to the responsibility.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 218: In a letter to his friend Father Vincent Donavan in 1927 just before he married his second wife, Hemingway wrote, “I have always had more faith than intelligence or knowledge and I have never wanted to be known as a Catholic writer because I know the importance of setting an example — and I have never set a good example.”
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 374: “Do you want a peach slice?”
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 386: “Prosecco and peach. It's new here. It will catch on. The people will drink it.” Papa was in Italy to see his friend Ole Anderson, an old heavyweight prizefighter who lived in Fossalta di Piave now. He was always getting into trouble with bad people. Papa wrote a story about him once. A couple of men wanted to kill him in the story. Papa was in Venice to see his friend Juice, the owner of this bar Harry's, first. A man named Cole Anderson was shot outside Harry's two days ago so Papa told Juice to ask around and a man told him he'd be at Harry's today. The likeness of Ole and Cole's names drew Papa in.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 440: “Christ, I just wanted a goddamned minute.”
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 488: “I've come to appreciate this. The harsh details in the background with the stillness in the foreground here—” It was Swans Reflecting Elephants by Dalí. “See this arrogant son of a bitch, Juice, missing the scene. The elephants standing on the shore and the swans floating over them.” Behind the swans grew trees, twisting to the sky. “He's so arrogant. And ignorant. He walked all the way from the town up the hill in the distance and here he's facing away with his hand on his hip. He can't see the color of the sky different from the reflection in the pond.”
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 490: “Yes Papa, but he can't decide what he wants,” Juice said. “What do you think?”
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 546: Papa could barely see him in the dark. Nick Adams wanted an excuse not to go to Fossalta di Piave. “Who did you mean to kill?” The band got into a fast groove.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 548: “You wouldn't want to know him,” Nick said. “He's a real bright boy.”
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 558: Nick Adams hoped Papa knew him or knew boxing or anything. He wanted to hear a reason not to kill the man. The band played fast and loud and the lights played off the horn man's saxophone. It was dark so the ever-changing light on the saxophone illuminated everyone's eyes.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 574: “They kill them for less nowadays,” Papa said. There they were, less than three hours after meeting, and Papa's motive had completely changed. He wanted to warn Ole Anderson but didn't think he'd do anything about it anyway. He thought there was no reasoning with Nick Adams either.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 586: Thanks for the comments. I've always been interested in his dialogue style. It is awful isn't it? He seems to want the dialogue so strange you hardly know what its about but then maybe that means something?
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 627: And then, Novick gives himself away. He writes in another footnote that Holmes was someone with whom James “might have been intimate.” “Might have been”? There’s incertitude for you. My surmise is that Novick is trying to support his hypothesis of James’ initial sexual experience, and that he picks the name handiest to him. Why not James’ closer friends, John LaFarge or Thomas Perry? Novick seems to want to link his two subjects. It is clear the homosexuality doesn’t bother him. He simply wants us to know that James was a sexual man and a loving person. Biographers often develop strange attachments to their subjects. (Indeed!)
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 633: The rest of the story emerges after James abruptly leaves the villa at the end of the third day. He lodges at a hotel in Sorrento and writes several lively letters indicating he fled from Zhukovski and a nest of young homosexuals. They were attached to the composer, Richard Wagner, who lives in a nearby villa. Zhukovski is now a crusading Wagnerian. He wants to introduce James. The novelist refuses. Wagner speaks neither French nor English. James doesn’t speak German.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 639: So Novick is deprived of the happy romance he wanted to chronicle at Posilipo. He consoles himself by a detailed account of Zhukovski’s adoption into Bayreuth, his painting the sets for Parsifal and being considered a kind of son by the Wagners. Novick seems to be trying to walk down two streets at once–the street of the refinements of literary biography and the more rigid roadway of the prosecutorial argument. He attempts to turn certain of his fancies into fact–but his data is simply too vague for him to get away with it.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 648: Hemingway makes explicit here the themes of irony and pity: the irony of Kake's situation (he is a kind of superman who nevertheless can't perform the most basic of manly activities, namely fucking) as well as the pity "we" (who have our penises in working order) feel for him. The writer does so in an extended section, rich with dialogue, that is meant to be funny but has not dated well. The joking between Kake and Bill, over breakfast and later at lunch, is certainly believable as such, but it's difficult for a contemporary audience to follow, because the references to Frankie Fritsch and so forth have grown obscure with the passage of time. (The reference to Bryan's death tells us exactly when these scenes are occurring: 1925.) Do note, however, that Kake's physical condition is alluded to — and quickly backed away from. ("I'd a hell of a lot rather not talk about it" could be the motto of Kake's stoic take on the world, while Hemingway's would be "I want to talk about it all the time".) The writer has established, however, that Kake's condition is not simple impotence (rather it is loss of limb, or shortening of the joystick) and that it was caused by an accident.
        xxx/ellauri179.html on line 736: However sometimes when a hen is free ranging by herself and wants some company, she will call loudly and insistently for the rooster.
        xxx/ellauri186.html on line 197:
      2. You want to live but do you know how to live? Is life really any different from being dead? I felt little difference.
        xxx/ellauri186.html on line 286: Gored by the climacteric of his want, Halujensa menopaussin kovertamana,
        xxx/ellauri186.html on line 295: In 1941, bugler and career soldier Private Robert E. Lee Prewitt (Montgomery Clift) transfers from Fort Shafter to a rifle company at Schofield Barracks on the island of Oahu. Because Prewitt was also a boxer, Captain Dana "Dynamite" Holmes wants him on his regimental team. Prewitt explains that he stopped fighting after blinding a friend and refuses. Consequently, Holmes makes Prewitt's life miserable and ultimately orders First Sergeant Milton Warden (Lancaster) to prepare a court-martial. Warden suggests doubling Prewitt's company punishment as an alternative. Prewitt is hazed by the other NCOs and is supported only by his close friend, Private Angelo Maggio (Sinatra).
        xxx/ellauri187.html on line 77: At the Petite École, Rodin “finished lessons so quickly that the teachers eventually ran out of assignments. He did not care to socialize with his classmates; he wanted only to work.” Rodin’s talent was noted by his legion of admiring artists, writers, and lovers. His rise was a matter of time, even if he was ignored by academic art institutions early in life.
        xxx/ellauri187.html on line 85: Another was Clara Westhoff, the sculptor whom Rilke would later marry and repeatedly abandon on his vocational wanderings around Europe.
        xxx/ellauri187.html on line 107: Rilke spent his life wandering. From an art colony in Germany he migrated to a position as Rodin's secretary in Paris; the sculptor eventually claimed that the poet was answering letters without his permission and summarily dismissed him, as much to Rilke's relief as to his chagrin. From Berlin he made two pilgrimages to Russia to meet Tolstoy, on one trip going nearly unacknowledged because of a titanic quarrel between the count and the countess. He traveled from Italy to Vienna to Spain to Tunisia to Cairo. His restless peregrinations had their origins in his epoch, and in a temperament forced painfully to choose perfection of the life or of the work. Rilke's academic sponsor and friend was Georg Simmel, the celebrated German sociologist and philosopher of modernity. In "The Adventurer," one of his most famous essays, Simmel argued that only the experience of art or adventure could invest time with the significance once lent it by religious ritual. The work of both art and adventure had a beginning and an end; they were each an "island in life" that briefly imparted a transcendent wholeness to experience. And of all possible modern adventures, Simmel concluded, the one that most completely combined the profoundest elements of life with a momentary apprehension of what lay beyond life was the love affair.
        xxx/ellauri187.html on line 117: Rilke loved absolutely, not strenuously or patiently, and therefore his love always froze up into a mirror of itself. His condition might have been tormented and tormenting--it might appear wearily obnoxious. But for Rilke the poet, modern men and women as lovers--their exalted expectations and their comi-tragic desperation--came to symbolize complex human fate in a world where vertiginous possibilities have replaced God and nature. In Rilke's Elegies especially, lovers encounter animals, trees, flowers, works of art, puppets, and angels--all images, for Rilke, of the absolute fulfillment of desire, alongside which the poet placed the tender vaudeville of imperfect human wanting. Rilke the man might have presented a painful obstruction to himself. But true ardor often springs from an essential deprivation.
        xxx/ellauri187.html on line 139: This is formidable revisionism. The cumulative effect of such a distortion of truth to an admirable, if sadly misplaced, idea of redemption and redress is to make Freedman's biography read like a forced confession. But the beating heart of Freedman's interminable deconstruction is Rilke the sexist. Rilke's extraordinary sensitivity to women, his admiration and need for strong and intelligent women, women's love for Rilke--these facts Freedman brusquely mentions only to knock down. What he wants is to prove that Rilke was a spirited accomplice in European society's subjugation of women. He writes,
        xxx/ellauri187.html on line 147: This is all ludicrously unfair. It's certainly unfair to say that Rilke didn't give the women he loved and who loved him the "choice to remove themselves for the sake of their art." He was in no position to give or deny freedom to his independent-minded wife, let alone to any woman of whom he was merely a lover. Only their passion, or admiration, or use for Rilke bound these women to the famous poet. Often ambitious artists themselves, Rilke's lovers expected him to introduce them into his heady artistic and intellectual circles and to help them with their careers. This he unfailingly did; in one case he helped the careers of a former lover's children by her husband. And he offered emotional succor long after the amorous flame had waned--not to mention demanding the same support for himself.
        xxx/ellauri187.html on line 184: In June 2015, Siegel wrote an op-ed piece for The New York Times entitled "Why I Defaulted on My Student Loans", in which he defended defaulting on the loans he received for living expenses while on full scholarship and working his way through college and graduate school at Columbia University, writing that “the millions of young people today, who collectively owe over $1 trillion in loans, may want to consider my example.”
        xxx/ellauri187.html on line 656: Quarter.Britt @BritNay32 sanoo: My girl crush on Mila started after FWB. I really wanted her and Justin to be together 😭
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 78: We are continuing our quest to find out more about the characteristics of the dark empanzees in relation to other psychological outcomes. For example, we are interested in their risk taking, impulsivity or physically aggressive behaviour. We also want to understand how they process emotions or facial expressions, or how they perceive and react to threats.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 179: He is now blind in his right eye as a result of the failed suicide attempt and the side of his face is disfigured. “I wanted to die, because I had killed my girlfriend, the person I loved dearly,” he told the court. Everyone was in tears.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 247: In an understandable effort to free Mr. Seib, the reporter's family, according to a UPI report in The Post Feb. 4, announced: "We want to stress his Catholic background, his German Volga background, his ethnic background." Further, "His upbringing did not have anything to do with the type of person who would spy for anybody." The Iranians chimed in to the effect that "mistakes and misunderstandings" played a major role in Mr. Seib's detention.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 296: Ne voivat myös luoda kiilan oikeistoon ja jakaa sen kahteen leiriin: Venäjän-mielisiin ja niihin, jotka vaativat Yhdysvaltoja tarjoamaan Israelille ja Taiwanille nykyistä enemmän sotilaallista tukea.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 308: Carlson is a vocal opponent of progressivism and critic of global warming and Völkerwanderung, and has been described by Russians as nazi. Never an economic libertarian, he now supports tvångsocialism. During the Russo-Ukrainian War he has promoted Russian propaganda, while disparaging NATO.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 316: In 1976, Carlson's parents divorced after the nine-year boy reportedly "turned sour". Carlson's mother left the family when she was six, wanting to pursue a more "bohemian" lifestyle.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 424: So what Winnie? That has nothing to do with Nadine's suggestion. Freedom is power to stop those who want to stop you from getting what you want, that is what freedom is all about. You are welcome to voice your opinion but the question is who gets the listeners and viewers. For that you need power, which in American English is spelled "m-o-n-e-y".
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 428: Her home was close to Mandela, "just a bit down the street," and with a laugh she told me about the times after Mandela and his wife Winnie had separated that he would call and invite himself to dinner at her home. "Really he was just lonesome and wanted someone to talk to. Someone he felt comfortable with. An old friend like me," she said. Not bad for a woman who only spent only one year at the University of the Witwatersrand.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 461: However it feels all wrong when ethnic minorities want to change our laws and history, good and bad, in their own favour, taking away any pride our children should have.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 600: Well, first of all, everything can be exaggerated, so calm down a little, Karl Ragnar Gierow. But also there’s a tone here that doesn’t sit well with me. Certainly the literary world has a tendency to calcify—the people who have enough time to write books tend to be from the ­upper classes, so literature’s concerns and perspectives invariably get narrow without new blood. But those sidebar reassurances that working-class poets aren’t here to ravage and plunder seem nervous and uptight, and not really reassuring to boot. It seems to me that we want a little ravagement and plunder in our literary traditions. Why else would we welcome a stirring new voice, if it didn’t stir us up a little? And if it doesn’t stir us up, is it really a new voice, even if it comes from a place most of us haven’t visited? “To determine an author and his work against the background of his social origin and political environment is, at present, good form,” the speech continues, and that’s OK as far as it goes. But if you’re going to decide that two authors are tied for literary merit, surely we can find some criterion besides their socioeconomic origin stories.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 707: Capital punishment in South Africa was abolished on 6 June 1995 by the ruling of the Constitutional Court in the case of S v Makwanyane, following a five-year and four-month moratorium since February 1990. The ruling followed the Constitutional Court's hearing on the death penalty which took place in February 1995. Until the use of the death penalty was suspended in February 1990, South Africa had one of the highest rates of judicial executions in the world.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 728: The perpetrator, found guilty of child abuse or gender-based violence, is taken into a public square and set up in a highly undignified position, probably with a sign round her/his neck saying “rapist,” angry men/women can throw rotten eggs or vrot tomatoes at her/him to express their disgust and point out what a despicable human being s/he is. S/he won’t want that to happen again! Unless s/he quite enjoys it?
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 777: 19.1% of men planned the murder in advance, while 80.9% committed it impulsively. Four men indicated that they would commit murder again, depending on the circumstances. Among the reasons why the rest will not commit murder again are: I have discovered how high the value of life is and that every human being has the right to life and human dignity; murder is an inhuman act; it’s bad in prison; I want to be free; it was a huge mistake; crime does not pay; it’s no solution to problems; it causes tremendous emotional pain for everyone involved; I do not want to disappoint my family again; I am not in my inner nature a murderer; children must grow up with the presence and guidance of a father; restorative justice helped me find myself as well as with reconciliation with my family and the victim; God changed my life; it is a guilt that you carry with you for the rest of your life; I will talk about my problems in the future; I learned to respect the law; one throws away ones future.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 790: 18.3% planned the murder in advance and 81.7% committed it impulsively. None of these women indicated that they would commit murder again. Some of the reasons they gave for this are: I learned new ways to master difficult circumstances; frightening experience; I met God; I am not inherently a bad person; I never want to end up in prison again; I hurt the people closest to me terribly; I’m very sorry; no one deserves to be hurt like that; such an act follows you for the rest of your life; crime does not pay; I am much wiser now; I will contact a family member, social worker or police member to help me if I find myself in such a situation again.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 818: Sivulla 142 Nadine siteeraa Brochin Schlafwandler nidettä jossa tuumitaan että aina vallan keikauxissa tulee svoboda, kagda vsjakij delajet tshto hotshit. Niin varmaan onkin. Tilaisuus tekee varkaan, murhaajasta puhumattakaan. Niin kävi kansainvaellusten Roomassa, Pärttylinyönä 1542, Pariisissa 1789, Pietarissa ja Helsingissä 1918, Saxassa 1938, hulluina vuosina 1848 ja 1968, South Africa 1991, Black lives matter päivänä, Capitolin valtauxessa. Mikäs siinä, looting is fun. Se on vähän kuin karnevaalia. Kaikki mukaan! Apinat tekevät mitä pystyvät, ellei toiset estä.
        xxx/ellauri193.html on line 830: “To err is human, to forgive is divine” (this saying is from “An Essay on Criticism,” by Alexander Pope). We need more forgiveness, not only in South Africa, but across the world. I know that the pain associated with murder for the nearest relatives (pain on both sides) is unbearable, but forgiveness is an important component if we want to progress in our thinking beyond the death penalty. If you cannot forgive, you are killing your own spirit. A long detention sentence is healthier.
        xxx/ellauri195.html on line 284: want to punch them in the face.
        xxx/ellauri195.html on line 308: They have the right to work wherever they want to, as long as they have dinner ready when you get home. John Wayne
        xxx/ellauri199.html on line 89: When Poseidon desired to marry her, Amphitrite, wanting to protect "her virginity", fled to the Atlas mountains. Poseidon sent many creatures to find her. A dolphin came across Amphitrite and convinced her to marry Poseidon. As a reward for the dolphin´s help, Poseidon created the Delphinus (öresvin) constellation.
        xxx/ellauri199.html on line 238: High school can be everything you want it to be or your worst nightmare. For me — it’s okay other than the fact that just about everything I’m surrounded by goes completely against my beliefs as a Christian. Whether it be walking in the hallway hearing terribly vulgar words, common gossiping, or young kids praising the loss of their virginity. You also have your popular “in” music that blatantly puts pre-marital sex, illegal drugs, and the love of money on a pedestal. These are just some of the worldly things we have to deal with on a daily basis that can oh-so easily sweep somebody in. At this point, the options must be weighed: choose God or choose the world? Which god to choose? Which one has the biggest dick?
        xxx/ellauri199.html on line 321: The sire of gods and men smiled and answered, “If you, Juno, were always to support me when we sit in council of the gods, Neptune, like it or no, would soon come round to your and my way of thinking. If, then, you are speaking the truth and mean what you say, go among the rank and file of the gods, and tell Iris and Apollo lord of the bow, that I want them—Iris, that she may go to the Achaean host and tell Neptune to leave off fighting and go home, and Apollo, that he may send Hector again into battle and give him fresh strength; he will thus forget his present sufferings, and drive the Achaeans back in confusion till they fall among the ships of Achilles son of Peleus. Achilles will then send his comrade Patroclus into battle, and Hector will shaft him in front of Ilius after he has shafted many warriors, and among them my own noble son Sarpedon. Achilles will shaft Hector to avenge Patroclus, and from that time I will bring it about that the Achaeans shall persistently drive the Trojans back till they fulfil the counsels of Minerva and take Ilium. But I will not stay my anger, nor permit any god to help the Danaans till I have accomplished the desire of the son of Peleus, according to the promise I made by bowing my head (after shafting her) on the day when Thetis touched me between my knees and besought me to give him honour.”
        xxx/ellauri199.html on line 881: I love to try and bring a note of mystery to everyday happenings. Here, a child wants his father to build him a sand castle as the tide is falling, but the poem is really about the title of it, which is ´Lord Neptune´.
        xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1024: "Matt Walsh wants to beat the left at their own game." - The Federalist
        xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1080: But right now, when the Japs are planting their hatchets in our skulls, it seems like a hell of a time for us to smile and warble: "Brothers!" It is a rather flabby battle cry. If we want to win, we´ve got to kill Japs, whether it depresses John Haynes Holmes or not. We can get palsy-walsy afterward with those that are left.
        xxx/ellauri200.html on line 282: You want one glass lassi?
        xxx/ellauri200.html on line 700: and voyage upon a vague and wandering quest, Ja matkustaa keltaisella merellä,
        xxx/ellauri201.html on line 277: Torbjörn and Synnöve are two children living in the same valley. Synnöve's mother does not like them playing with each other because Torbjörn's grandfather Torbjörn drinks. They have both now grown up. Torbjörn is teased for having an alcoholic grandfather. This leads to fights, which Synnöve wants him to win. During a fight, Torbjörn is stabbed in the sack and paralyzed. He asks Synnöve to seek another man and not commit herself to a cripple. One day he sees his alcoholic grandfather's carriage overturn and, distressed by the event, he suddenly gets it up for the first time since the paralysis. A miracle has happened, and he can finally have his beloved.
        xxx/ellauri202.html on line 198: He spent most of his time there wandering around ‘the less salubrious districts of the city’, noticing (relative to Paris) the many prostitutes of both sexes and the ready availability of pornography. Encouraged by such reports, André Gide visited Berlin no fewer than five times in 1933. He, too, was delighted by, and seriously interested in, what he found there, although he did concede to Robert Levesque that Paris itself was slowly becoming more Berlin-like even if at the same time (to use that most erotically evocative of geographical terms) more ‘southern’. The two writers coincided in Berlin in October, Gide arriving for a fortnight, Martin du Gard for five weeks. They did their best to avoid each other on their forays into the sexual underworld, but always dutifully compared notes on what they had seen and experienced.
        xxx/ellauri208.html on line 486: Kuvattu yhteiskunta on patriarkaalinen. Kun Radwan Hossein on menettänyt toivonsa saada valtaa yhteiskunnassa, hän suuntaa vallankäyttönsä vaimoonsa: ”Tyydyttääkseen kalvavan vallanhimonsa herra Hossein piti vaimonsa tiukasti Herran nuhteessa.” Kertoja yrittää ymmärtää tilannetta seuraavasti: ”Ei sovi kuitenkaan unohtaa tuon aikaisia paikallisia perinnäistapoja, naisen asemaa ja oikeuksia. Useimpien herra Hosseinin luokkaan kuuluvien miesten mielestä oli välttämätöntä kohdella naista kuin lasta, ennen kaikkea heidän oman onnensa vuoksi.” Niin patriarkaalinen kuin egyptiläinen yhteiskunta onkin, eräät Midaqq-kujan naishahmoista ovat kuitenkin sangen vahvoja. Avioliittoja järjestävä Umm Hamida on neuvokas, kun taas leipuri Hosneyia pitää miestään tohvelin alla.
        xxx/ellauri208.html on line 494: Romaanin kiinnostavimpia ja samalla vaikuttavimpia kohtauksia on kuvaus Radwan Hosseinin lähdöstä pyhiinvaellusmatkalle Mekkaan kujan asukkaiden ollessa saattamassa häntä. Kun hänelle toivotetaan hyvää matkaa ja turvallista kotiinpaluuta, hän torjuu jälkimmäisen toivotuksen: ”Veljeni, älä muistuta minua paluustani. Sillä ei ole sopivaa sille, joka on aikeissa vierailla Jumalan huoneessa, ajatella silloin hellin tuntein kotiseutuaan.” Radwan Hossein heittäytyy suorastaan runolliseksi kuvatessaan pyhää maata, jonne hän on menossa: ”Kunpa voisinkin jäädä noille pyhille paikoille lopuksi elämääni. Aamusta iltaan saisin nähdä tuon maan, jota Profeetan jalka on aikoinaan tallannut, ja taivaan, jolla enkelten siivet ovat havisseet niiden kuunnellessa pyhän ilmoituksen laskeutumista maan päälle, joka kohottaisi maahan sidotut ihmiset taivaisiin. Siellä ajatus kohdistuu vain ikuisuuskysymyksiin. Siellä sydän sykkii vain rakkaudesta Jumalaan. Siellä sielu saa lääkityksen ja lohdun.” Jatkossa Hossein esittää suoranaisen oman teologiansa, johon kuuluu myös itseanalyysia.
        xxx/ellauri208.html on line 710: No wannabe tiehaaskalle voi valehdella mitä sylki suuhun tuo, ei se siitä tule valittamaan.
        xxx/ellauri208.html on line 847: Sen rinnalla jonkun tampion väärinymmärrys kirjailijoiden todellisista aikeista ei paljoa vaakakupissa paina. Ilmiöittäminen tekee wannabe-intellektuellinkin kiinnostukselle höpöä.
        xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1027: The commentator Ibn Ishaq narrated that he was the first man to write with a penis and that he was born when Adam still had 308 years of his life to live. In his commentary on the Quranic verses 19:56-57, the commentator Ibn Kathir narrated "During the Night Journey, the Prophet passed by him in fourth heaven. In a hadith, Ibn Abbas asked Ka’b what was meant by the part of the verse which says, ”And We raised him to a high station.” Ka’b explained: Allah revealed to Idris: ‘I would raise for you every day the same amount of the deeds of all Adam’s children’ – perhaps meaning of his time only. So Idris wanted to increase his deeds and devotion. A friend of his from the angels visited and Idris said to him: ‘Allah has revealed to me such and such, so could you please speak to the angel of death, so I could increase my deeds.’ The angel carried him on his wings and went up into the heavens. When they reached the fourth heaven, they met the angel of death who was descending down towards earth. The angel spoke to him about what Idris had spoken to him before. The angel of death said: ‘But where is Idris?’ He replied, ‘He is upon my back.’ The angel of death said: ‘How astonishing! I was sent and told to seize his soul in the fourth heaven. I kept thinking how I could seize it in the fourth heaven when he was on the earth?’ Then he took his soul out of his body, and that is what is meant by the verse: ‘And We raised him to a high station.’"
        xxx/ellauri212.html on line 147: Lodwickin poliisikomisario lukee Descartesin toista meditaatiota, jossa Reneltä lähtee mopo käsistä. Siinä se sanoo et ainoo asia mistä se on varma on eze itse oleilee. Ja että vaha-argumentti muka osoittaa että hengelliset asiat on varmemmat kuin ruumiilliset. Mitä vittua! Kyllä ruumiilliset on paljon varmempia ja kouriintuntuvampia, ja sitäpaizi tuntuu ihanammilta, esim Sirun naama, tissit ja tuhero. Voi kun sinne pääsis sisään suorana ja pitkänä, kankeana ja tuntoherkkänä. Mutta ei, toinenkin yritys jäi suutarixi. Sirun teräväxi jäänyt masurako vaan jyysti liikaa yrittäneen wannabe makaajan mahan ruville ja mustelmille. Se on muistettava pyöristää asap.
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 137: “A fiction writer’s life is his treasure, his ore, his savings account, his jungle gym,” he wrote. “As long as I am alive, I don’t want somebody else playing on my jungle gym—disturbing my aborted children, quizzing my ex-wife, bugging my present wife, seeking for Judases among my friends, rummaging through yellowing old clippings, quoting in extenso bad reviews I would rather forget, and getting everything slightly wrong.”
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 206: Oh, Berny, I want to live with you! That's what I need! The millions won't do it-it's you! I want to go home to Europe with you. Listen to me, don't say no, not yet. This summer I saw a small house free, a stone villa up on a hillside. It was outside Florence. I had a pink tile roof and a garden. I got the phone number and I wrote it down. I still have it. Oh, everything beautiful that I saw in Italy made me think of how happy you could be there - how happy I would be there looking after you. I thought of the trips we'd make, I thought of the afternoons in the museums and having coffee later by the river. I thought of listening to music together at night I thought of making your meals. I thought of wearing lovely nightgowns to bed. And best of all (though Phil left this out): mieti miten huokaisen vienosti kun ähkäisten iltaisin työnnät pitkäxi venähtäneen pinokkionnenäsi sieraimia myöden turkissomisteiseen skulausvihkooni!
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 366: "Point number two (I always got 3, that's how many I can remember) is Putin. Putin alleges to have attacked Ukraine because of NATO and EU expansion. In order to understand Putin, you need to read about Alexander Nevski, Ivan the Terrible, Peter the Great, Catherine the Great, and Josip Vissarionovits Stalin. They are all Putin's relatives and he wants to make Russia great again (MRGA). He talks about the Rusky Mir - One religion, one language, one leader. Except having Turks on the Ukrainan front is good because little Russians don't understand a word.
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 368: I've met Putin a couple of times. I'm sure he remembers me and my shorts. He hates my shorts, hates the west, he hates liberal democracy, he believes that the west is decadent and he actually believes he can save the west from itself. That is one of the reasons he attacked Ukraine, the real reason was not NATO. He wants to stop Zelensky from wearing shorts with me.
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 370: That was only a pretext for a way of life he rejects. He rejected it in Chechnya and Syria (where men wear skirts) and he rejects liberal democracy at every turn and he saw Ukraine moving in that direction. And to top it off, Putin yearns for respect and wants to be seen as a great leader although he is shorter than me, in shorts or without. He thought he could do exactly the same thing in Ukraine as he did with Georgia, Chechnya and Crimea. But no, this time is different, we Westerners really want Ukraina."
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 372: "Point number three (ok, almost done) is the talk about the Finlandization of Ukraine, which means that Ukraine has to compromise on their values, security and basic existence in order to achieve peace. I fundamentally disagree with this thesis because every independent and sovereign state should have the freedom to choose whose club it wants to join and which cola to buy.
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 378: Ukraine declared what it wanted in the Orange revolution in 2003-2004 with the Maidan demonstrations (never mind the parliament), with the dignity demonstrations, with the creamy arse demonstrations; and, the last thing that Ukraine should do at this stage or should have done in the beginning would have been to give up. Just like the Washington demonstrations proved whom the yankees want for president.
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 384: Countries that were not members could partner with them, like Finland. There was also close partnership with the Russian council in NATO, so there was this cooperation. NATO enlargement took place because Soviet satellites during the cold war wanted to get that extra protection and for fully understandable reason, what with Reagan's plans for Star Wars. But that expansion was not aggressive. NATO has never attacked another country. Iraq, Libya, Sudan etc etc did not involve NATO in the least.
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 386: Its mere existence has been a guarantee for peace. Now Putin has used NATO expansion as an excuse. But remember, he attacked Georgia after Gruzia started it and created the frozen conflict, only a few months after the NATO summit in Bucharest in 2008. That too had nothing to do with NATO. It had much more to do with an expansionist Russia and Putin who wanted to create their own spheres of interest and cause insecurity around his neighborhood. As if one big Western sphere of interest would not be enough globally.
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 390: "The fifth claim (sorry folks) is about the US and EU projecting power onto Russia. Remember that the EU has worked on two premises - Idealism and Realism. HOOHOO, this is getting too hilarious. Idealism because we wanted to create closer relations with Russia, otherwise we would not have created a level of energy dependency on Russia like we have and trying to accommodate Russia with cooperation in the EU; and, Russia has not been aggressive about EU expansion as such.
        xxx/ellauri215.html on line 504: The county does not have to do this, but the tradition, which dates back to 1896, has become a sacred event for the many county workers — coroners, researchers — whose job it is to investigate how people die in Los Angeles. Their work is a long process of figuring out who these people were, and if there are loved ones looking for them. Nearly all of the forgotten Angelenos honored this year died in 2015, and in most cases a relative was found but for whatever reason — financial hardship, estrangement — they did not want to claim the remains.
        xxx/ellauri218.html on line 152: The actress Pert Keaton who played Wilma got blacklisted due to the fact that her husband Ralph had, many years earlier, marched in a May Day parade. Pert had never even voted in her life. Audrey who plays Wilma in the TV series is pretty enough to eat, with her elaborate 40's hairdo and wide collared tight waisted smock that shows her swan neck and halfmoon breasts to best advantage. If I could get a boner I'd love to get one with her. Maybe Debbie should share time with Audrey Meadows. Yxi miinus kuitenkin: se poltti kuin korsteeni, siihen se sitten kuolikin.
        xxx/ellauri218.html on line 170: Wiilmaaa! Open here! huutaa Retu jäätyään sapelihammaskissan sijasta pihalle. Sisaruxet nauroivat. Sellainen jää wannabe lindkvsistille mieleen. Open here luki pantteriaskin kannessa. Retu potkii maasta vauhtia ennenkuin sen auto alkaa startata. Sen kerhoeläin ei ollut coon vaan moose.
        xxx/ellauri218.html on line 324: Spassky was a chess gentleman compared to Bobby, a genius who couldn't tie his own shoes. He went around applauding 9/11, and wanting to commit genocide.
        xxx/ellauri218.html on line 330: Fischer: Yes, I applaud the act. Look nobody gets.. no one.. that the US and Israel have been slaughtering the Palestinians for years. Robbing and slaughtering for years and treating everyone like shit. Now it is coming back at the US. Fuck the US, I wanna see the US wake up..
        xxx/ellauri218.html on line 336: Fischer: Yeah. Nobody here gives a shit about the Japanese. How many hundreds of thousand people did the US kill with the atom bombs , justifying it with the most ridiculous excuse that it saved millions American soldiers, when Japan would gonna surrender in a few weeks or month or so anyway. Right? The United State is based on lies, is based on theft. Look what I have done for the US. Nobody has single handily done more for the US them me, I really believe in this. When I won the World Championship in 1972, the United States had an image of ,you know, a football country, baseball country, but nobody thought of it as an intellectual country. I turned all that around single handily, right? But I was useful then because it was the cold war, right? But now I'm not useful anymore, you see, the cold war is over and now they want to wipe me out, get everything I have, put me into prison.
        xxx/ellauri218.html on line 376: "Anti-semitism is no longer a problem. It's raised, but it's raised because privileged people want to make sure they have total control, not just 98% control." — Noam Chomsky
        xxx/ellauri224.html on line 149: After Jay Wurstin dies prematurely, he is buried in the cemetery plot originally reserved for Amy’s father, who had sold it to him years earlier. Now Amy wants to remove Jay’s body to the burial plot of his own family so that her father, who is still alive at an advanced age, can eventually be buried there, mikä on hyvin juutalainen juttu. In a limousine provided by Adletsky, Amy and Trellman disinter and rebury the body. Moved by this scene of cell death and urban renewal, Trellman confesses to Amy that he has always loved her, that he has what he terms an “actual affinity” for her (hence the title of the story). He then asks her to marry him. Teinityttönä Amy oli ollut hoikka hempeä olento. Nyt hiän oli vankka kuin tiilestä tehty paskahuusi. Hänen ainoa aarteensa oli tää Salen tolvana. Veistäisin paremman miehen puupalikasta. Samaa voisin sanoa eräistä Helmin poikaystävistä, mutten sano, koska Seija on kieltänyt. Tyydyn veistämään puupalikasta naishahmoja.
        xxx/ellauri224.html on line 341: What was this book even about??? The "narrator" kept jumping around with what he was talking about, quite a few times I had no idea who was speaking, and what was the point of all the billionaires? They had absolutely nothing to do with the story! It took 104 pages of confusing and pointless narrative for the guy to tell the girl (after 40 years of knowing her, no less) that he wanted to be with her. This might have been one of the most anti-climactic love stories I have ever read. The secondary characters seemed completely irrelevant to the plotline and it appeared that their only function was to take up printable space. The story was unimaginative, lacking in depth, and devoid of anything memorable. The only reason I bothered to finish it was to get one step closer to finishing my goodreads reading challenge, else I would have ditched it at page 20.
        xxx/ellauri225.html on line 42: Did you know that Ursula K. Le Guin wrote a science fiction novel with a lesbian protagonist? I wouldn’t blame you if not; The Telling is not one of her more popular books. I wasn’t even sure if I wanted to review it—I try to feature sapphic authors with my reviews here, if at all possible. But I have a soft spot in my heart for The Telling, and I do believe that it is highly underrated when it comes to Le Guin’s esteemed corpus of work.
        xxx/ellauri225.html on line 325: Of course, Le Guin was writing daring stories decades before me, stories of women who loved women, of four-person marriages, of people without gender. Her stories offered possibilities that most of society hadn’t even imagined in the late 1960s; I knew she must have faced similar societal disapproval. So I wanted to know why she faded to black for her sex scenes. “There Arrad took me into his arms and I took Arrad into my arms, and then between my legs, and fell upward, upward through the golden light.” (“Coming of Age in Karhide”) There was plenty of sex in her books – sometimes tremendously important sex — but Le Guin didn’t dwell on the details. In fact her sex scenes were prudish and infinitely boring.
        xxx/ellauri225.html on line 353: In his newest book, “Possessed by Memory: The Inward Light of Criticism,” Bloom promised to shake off the polemical battles that have shadowed him for years. He pledged to include never-revealed autobiographical snippets. He wanted to share with his readers his recent reevaluations of some of his most beloved writers. He only partially delivers.
        xxx/ellauri225.html on line 376: For the briefest of moments, a veil lifts, and he speaks about wanting more time, not wanting to die. He shyly admits that he needs more time to make peace with the difficult reality that he is merely “a reader and a teacher, and not a creator.” It is a tragic confession. How excruciating it must be to revel in creative genius yet not possess the gift to create.
        xxx/ellauri225.html on line 400: His ambition to synthesize America was expressed in The Bridge (1930), intended to be an uplifting counter to Eliot's The Waste Land. The Brooklyn Bridge is both the poem's central symbol and its poetic starting point. He kinda wanted to pick up where Wilt with is Brooklyn Ferry got off the boat.
        xxx/ellauri225.html on line 480: Ehkä ryssät panostivat Itämeren kaasulinjan Nobelin dynamiittipötköillä jo rakennettaessa juuri tämmöisiä kriisitilanteita varten. Linja sopii räjäyttää näin talven tullen vastavetona länkkäreiden yltyvälle sotainnolle ja nälistyxelle. Saavatpahan tuta keski-Euroopassa miten vetää nenättien bajamajoissa. Ukrainan selkkaus yllätti lännen aseteollisuuden housut nilkoissa. Kohta ei riitä länkkäreillä pateja edes omaan tarpeeseen. Ja silloin uhkaa Kiina tehdä Plopovin izemurhasiirron USAn selän takana ja miehittää lopultakin valkoisen generalissimo Ziang Kai Shekin pakosaaren Formosan. Jännä miten tämäkin kaveri on tyystin häivytetty Wikipedian Taiwanin historiaosiosta. Siellä vaan hoetaan ettei kiinalaisia ole ollut Formosalla kuin 300 vuotta ja että se oli länkkäreillä ennen sitä. No eipä jenkit ole senkään aikaa pitäneet länsi-inkkareilta ryöväämäänsä brittisiirtomaata hallussaan. Wikipediaan ei ole luottamista kun jenkki-intressit on vaakalaudalla.
        xxx/ellauri227.html on line 104: Micke Eriksson is a recurring character in Netflix series Young Royals. He is portrayed by Leonard Terfelt. To be added. To be added. To be added. Micke is first introduced when Simon goes to him to purchase booze for the initiation party, he appears friendly towards his son and invites him in to talk, even allowing him to buy the alcohol for the party. He seems to want to mend his ...
        xxx/ellauri228.html on line 237: Lem oli monikielinen: hän osasi puolaa, latinaa, saksaa, ranskaa, englantia, venäjää ja ukrainaa. Lem väitti, että hänen älykkyysosamääränsä testattiin lukiossa 180-vuotiaana. (LOL, siis se oli 180, mutta sitä Google-kääntäjän on vaikea uskoa.) Lem oli naimisissa Barbaran (o.s. Leśniak) Lemin kanssa kuolemaansa asti. Hiän kuoli 27. huhtikuuta 2016. Heidän ainoa poikansa Tomasz Lem [pl] syntyi vuonna 1968. Hän opiskeli fysiikkaa ja matematiikkaa Wienin yliopistossa ja valmistui fysiikan tutkinnosta Princetonin yliopistosta. Tomasz kirjoitti muistelman isästään Awantury na tle powszechnego ciążenia (Tantrums on the Background of the Universal Gravitation), joka sisältää lukuisia henkilökohtaisia tietoja Stanisław Lemistä. Kirjatakissa sanotaan, että Tomasz työskentelee Google-kääntäjänä ja hänellä on tytär Anna.
        xxx/ellauri228.html on line 484: What about my last dinner? I missed my holy lunch. Where´s my last breakfast woman? What, brain flakes again? I want frankfurters beans and eggs! Hot mineral oil with ball bearings floating in it!
        xxx/ellauri229.html on line 114: Bible Reading Plan Spreadsheet. I wanted to start doing the Robert M’Cheyne Bible reading plan this year. In it there is about 4 chapters per day, organized to have two from the Old Testament, and two from the New. There is an emphasis on reading the New Testament twice throughout the year. Here’s a PDF of M’Cheyne’s plan with some pros and cons mentioned at the start: https://drive.google.com/file/d/1EL8rR56QBu1lJwgEVos9IiOuLgfLgEud/view?usp=sharing. No big deal – there are a lot of ways to keep track. Well, I’m the kind of guy I don’t want to have paper around, so I’d like to avoid printing something off. I also … Continue reading Bible Reading Plan Spreadsheet.
        xxx/ellauri229.html on line 146: Phase 10 Score Tracking Spreadsheet. Want to keep track of scores Phase 10 but don’t want to use paper? There really wasn’t any easy way to do it electronically. I can’t think of an app that would do this well. Here’s what I would want the score keeper to be able to do: enter in numbers and the total score is calculated automatically keep track of who has completed a phase in a round easily calculate which phase each player is on Well, could a spreadsheet do that? Yes! Yes it can! Here’s mine: And here’s the template version: https://docs.google.com/spreadsheets/d/1PzaZWrFHKojBDYrMMDB-5gSQEs9ORg65Jt4MMbVfI2M/copy?copyComments=false It accomplishes all of the … Continue readingPhase 10 Score Tracking Spreadsheet
        xxx/ellauri229.html on line 529: "Perception" is not unlike "A Beautiful Mind" in that a genius paranoid schizophrenic is hallucinating a best friend (Natalie Vincent played by Kelly Rowan).
        xxx/ellauri229.html on line 812: Paizi tää on ihan feikkiä koska wannabe vastaajan oletetut supinat menee tyhjään eetteriin. Tässä hommassa olis edes jotain järkeä jos nää sipisijät riisuisivat noi liiat vetimet ja päästäisivät kazojan enemmän ikäänkuin iholle. Paljasta tissiä ja miel. karvaista alaryppyä lähikuvaan, saisiko pyytää? Sopiiko? Sopiiko? Virkamatka erogeenisille vyöhykkeille, niin sanoaxemme. Japsu cosplayssakin päästään tavan mukaan eroon tarjoilijan kostyymistä loppupeleissä ja jyystetään peppu ihan paljaana.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 92: Varsinainen setämiesten setämies sai siinä kyllä jälleen dynypötkön. Tässä maistiaisia: "Hiän (wannabe geisha) oli 19 mutta näytti onnexi vanhemmalta, mikä sai setämiehen tuntemaan izensä luontevammaxi kuten ainakin geishan seurassa. Miehen tökerö käytös ('hanki mulle pillua mutta älä ize tarjoa') oli saanut hiänet viehättävän lapsellisesti suuttumaan hävyttömyydellään komeilevalle miehelle. "Haluan hauskan näköisen eli nuoren huoran, ei liian halukasta mutta hiljaisen. Olen jättänyt sinut rauhaan jotta voisin keskustella kanssasi. En pysty keskustelemaan keppi liossa." Hänen naisenkaipuunsa ei kohdistunut tähän naiseen mitenkään, se oli sitä lajia joka voidaan hoitaa käteenvedolla ilman synnintuntoa. Kassit vain tuntuivat liian täysiltä. Hyvä asia että tää maansa kulttuurielämän keskeinen hahmo veti kaasua.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 164: Ramstedt oli ensimmäisiä suomalaisia esuperantisteja opiskeltuaan kielen vuonna 1891. Hän oli myös Suomen Esuperantoliiton puheenjohtaja. Asuessaan Japanissa Ramstedt osallistui Japanin esuperantoinstituutin (Japana Esuperanto-instituto, japaniksi 日本エスペラント協会 nihon esuperanto kyōkai) toimintaan. Hän myös opetti esuperantoa pikkutytöille monilla paikkakunnilla kuten Sendaissa, Yokohamassa, Yokosukassa, Nagoyassa, Kyotossa, Osakassa, Kobessa, Okayamassa, Fukuokassa, Hiroshimassa ja Nagasakissa. Ramstedt innosti muun muassa nuoren japanilaiskirjailija Kenji Miyazawan (n.h.) opiskelemaan esuperantoa.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 175:

        Kenji Miyazawan paras runotulva


        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 291: Koo noted that under Wilson's 14 Points, the basis of the peace was to be national, which led him to argue that Japan had no right to the Shandong as its people were overwhelmingly Han and wanted to be part of China. Mutta Donbass ja Luhansk ovat aivan eri asia. Entäs karjalaiset sitten? Tai sudeettisaxalaiset? Elsass ja Lothringen? Oolanti? Wilson vetäköön käteen 14 pointteineen, vaikka niitä onkin enemmän kuin Alex Stubbilla.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 315: Afterwards, he was the Chinese Ambassador to the Court of St James's until 1946. Koo decided that wartime London was too dangerous for his family to live, and sent his wife and children to New York. Madame Koo had wanted to go to London and went to New York most unwillingly.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 322: On 11 January 1943, Koo signed in London a new Sino-British treaty that saw Britain renounce all of its extraterritorial rights in China, through the British refused to return Hong Kong as the Chinese had wanted. Through Koo failed to secure the return of Hong Kong, he called the new Sino-British treaty in his diary "a really an epoch-making event-the biggest treaty in a century". Kiitos vaan japsut ja sakemannit vetoavusta!
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 326: In 1945, Koo was one of the founding delegates of the United Nations. He later became the Chinese Ambassador to the United States and focused on maintaining the alliance between the Republic of China and the United States as the Kuomintang began losing to the Communists and had to retreat to Taiwan.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 389: Vuoden 1920 alussa venäläisen väestön (noin 6 000 henkilöä) ja valkoisten joukkojen (noin 300 henkilöä) lisäksi sijoitettiin 350 hengen japanilainen varuskunta Japanin keisarillisen armeijan 14. jalkaväedivisioonasta majuri Ishikawan johdolla. kaupunkiin, ja siellä oli noin 450 japanilaista siviiliä.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 409: Majuri Ishikawa varuskunnan jäänteineen pakeni Shimado-myymälään, jonka partisaanit kastelivat kerosiinilla ja sytyttivät tuleen, minkä jälkeen he ampuivat tulesta hyppääviä japanilaisia kuin savikiekkoja; Budrin tappoi henkilökohtaisesti vakavasti haavoittuneen Ishikawan. Japanilainen kortteli myös tuhoutui ja poltettiin (ensisijaisesti rikollisten ja puolirikollisten elementtien ja entisten Sahalinin vankien toimesta) ja noin 80 siellä asunutta huonoa naista tapettiin.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 478: wanderlust.co.uk/media/1059/magazine-cropped-dreamstime_xl_45031472.jpg?anchor=center&mode=crop&width=640&height=0&format=auto&quality=90&rnd=131482975210000000" />
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 497: wan/kaohsiung/galeria/templo-fo-guang-shan.jpg" />
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 499:
        Fo Guang Shan, Kaohsiung, Taiwan

        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 501: Fo Guan Shan Monastery is the biggest Buddhist monastery in Taiwan. It's the headquarters of a new religious movement, founded in 1967, that promotes a new form of Humanistic Buddhism.
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 510: wanderlust.co.uk/media/1065/magazine-cropped-dreamstime_xl_43037654.jpg?anchor=center&mode=crop&width=640&height=0&format=auto&quality=90&rnd=131482975290000000" />
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 516: wanderlust.co.uk/media/1066/magazine-cropped-budai.jpg?anchor=center&mode=crop&width=640&height=0&format=auto&quality=90&rnd=131482975300000000" />
        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 563:

        Obi wan kenobi


        xxx/ellauri230.html on line 565: Japanilaisten naisten ylpeys on heidän obinsa. Ei, ei se tamponi, vaan se kimonosta pullottava vyö. Ohimennen saatan mainita, että tyttäreni sai amerikkalaisten tanssiaisiin lainaxi ruhtinas Tokugawan puolisolta hänen obinsa (vähän käytetyn), joka kiinnitti japsujenkin huomiota, koska siinä oli satsumoiden ikivanha tarra. Satsumoissa on sanhedriiniä eli piriä. Edo-kaudella niitä välteltiin koska niiden siemenet aiheuttavat hedelmättömyyttä. Japsut koittavat väittää että se on niiden kexintö, vaikka sen nimi japanixikin on Wenzhoun aplari.
        xxx/ellauri232.html on line 163: Kern seiner Arbeit in Anknüpfung an Christopher R. Brownings Untersuchungen ist die Beschreibung eines deutschen Polizeibataillons (Reserve-Polizei-Bataillon), das im polnischen Generalgouvernement die dort lebenden Juden aufspürte, folterte und schließlich erschoss oder in die Vernichtungslager verschleppte. Anhand von Prozessakten aus späteren Gerichtsverfahren gegen einige Bataillonsangehörige zeigt Goldhagen, dass diese Männer ihre Taten nicht etwa widerwillig, schamhaft und unter Zwang begingen, sondern freiwillig, ausgesprochen eifrig (z. T. über die ausdrücklichen Befehle hinaus), mit Stolz und in der Überzeugung, das Richtige zu tun. Sie quälten und ermordeten ihre Opfer ohne Mitgefühl oder moralische Skrupel. Diese erstaunliche Tatsache führt Goldhagen auf die Vorstellungen zurück, die die Männer von den Juden hatten: Sie betrachteten ihre Opfer nicht als Menschen, sondern als ein Übel, das beseitigt werden musste, so wie eine bösartige Krankheit beseitigt werden muss. Und bei diesen Männern handelte es sich gerade nicht um eingefleischte Nazis. Die Bataillone bestanden aus willkürlich rekrutierten Durchschnittsbürgern, die für den Einsatz an der Front zu alt waren und deren politische Sozialisation dementsprechend lange vor der Machtergreifung stattgefunden hatte. Sie waren weder Weltanschauungskrieger noch verblendete Jugendliche; sie waren (daher der Untertitel von Goldhagens Buch) ganz gewöhnliche Deutsche.
        xxx/ellauri232.html on line 312:
        The Genius - Episode 1 (Rabbi Mark D. Angel on TV (center)).
        "You want to invent something that can be used to control the TV?"

        xxx/ellauri233.html on line 81: 1850- ja 1860-luvuilla shogunaattia painostettiin ankarasti sekä ulkomailta että ulkomailta. Silloin eri ryhmät, jotka olivat vihaisia ​​shogunaatille eri Euroopan maille tehdyistä myönnytyksistä, löysivät keisarin hahmosta liittolaisen, jonka kautta he saattoivat karkottaa Tokugawan shogunaatin vallasta. Tämän liikkeen mottona oli Sonnō jōi (尊王攘夷, "Kunnioita keisaria, karkoita barbaarit"), ja lopulta he onnistuivat vuonna 1868, kun keisarillinen valta palautettiin vuosisatojen maan poliittisen elämän varjossa.
        xxx/ellauri233.html on line 326: Tässä kokouksessa Adams pyysi ja sai Tokugawan luvan palata kotimaahansa, mutta lopulta hän kieltäytyi Sariksen tarjouksesta viedä hänet takaisin Englantiin:
        xxx/ellauri234.html on line 100: "I'd had an inappropriate encounter with Monica Lewinsky and would do so again on other occasions between November and April, when she left the White House for the Pentagon. For the next ten months, I didn't see her, although we talked on the phone from time to time while I wanked."
        xxx/ellauri234.html on line 207: Pohjois-Ruotsin suomalainen »irridenta» liittyy Suomen kansalliseen runkoon sellaisena välittömänä luonnollisena ja historiallisena jatkona kuin Posenin puolalaisalue Suur-Puolaan ja Galitsian rutenilaisalue Ukrainaan, Vähä-Venäjä Isovenäjään, kuriilit Japaniin, Falklandin saaret Argentiinaan ja Tiibet ja Taiwan muuhun Kiinaan.
        xxx/ellauri234.html on line 466: If I knew that he would develop like this, I would not have had him. I would not want to bring a person into this world outside of my own volition, if I knew that he would experience no joy in his existence.
        xxx/ellauri234.html on line 481: Understandably, even I don't actually ever want to listen to me, when I talk like this. I’ve heard psychologists say to not give advice, so I won’t.
        xxx/ellauri234.html on line 493: I know all about the wrong partner…my kids mother, of all the women I had been with before her, would have been absolutely last on the list of people I'd want to have kids with.
        xxx/ellauri235.html on line 189: Of such, as wand'ring near her secret bow'r, sellaisista, kuten sauva, joka soi hänen salaisen jousensa lähellä,
        xxx/ellauri235.html on line 309: Now drooping, woeful wan, like one forlorn, Nyt roikkuu, surkea vankku, kuin ikävä,
        xxx/ellauri235.html on line 444: Of course, most readers will want to learn about Hornblower (one of the few fictional characters with a biography), where that name came from, and what mechanism the father used to develop the many characters in his novels. But who would be startled to learn that Forester played an important role in the propaganda used by the UK to encourage the US’s entrance into WW2?
        xxx/ellauri235.html on line 638: Her spectres wan, and birds of boding cry, Hänen haamunsa hiipuvat, ja linnut huutavat,
        xxx/ellauri235.html on line 808: `This here young lady,' said the Gryphon, `she wants for to know your history, she do.'
        xxx/ellauri235.html on line 872: Don't wanna be alone but I love my girl at home Joku pitäs saada mut Pat on kotona
        xxx/ellauri237.html on line 215: Neljäs Kirja Totisesta Kristillisyydestä. Edellinen Osa. Kuinka Luonnon eli mailman suuri kirja, kristillisen selityksen jälkeen, totistaa Jumalasta ja johdattaa meitä Jumalan tyköön. Kuinka myöskin hiotuin kappalten kautta kaikkia ihmisiä herätetään, ja oma sydänkin käskee ihmistä rakastamaan Jumalata. Katsokaat kukkaisia kedolla, Matth. 6:28. Joka korwan on istuttanut, eikö Hän kuule! Eli joka silmän loi, eikö Hän näe? Ps. 19:1. Ruotsin kielestä Suomeksi kääntänyt Gr. M. [Monell] Oikonut ja pränttiin kustantanut H. R. Sortavala 1850.
        xxx/ellauri239.html on line 50: Wayne W. Dyer on izehoitopersoona, joka on tullut mainituxi toisaalla esimerkkinä ESFP-persoonallisuudesta. ESFP (extroverted sensing feeling perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Inventory (MBTI) test. ESFPs operate from the principle that “all the world’s a stage” — and they want to be the stars. ESFP on realistinen sopeutuja ihmissuhteissa. ESFP on jenkein ja ämmämäisin tyypeistä: öykkäri ketku touho ääliö. Tai positiivisemmin, "Free-spirited and fun-loving people persons" kuten Kinsella. ESFPs are enthusiastic about having new experiences and meeting new people. They are generally warm and adaptable realists who go with the flow. ESFP authors include Tony Robbins, Wayne Dyer, Deepak Chopra, Bill Clinton, and Paulo "Kani" Coelho. Learn more about how ESFPs write somewhere else. Eli tämä paasaus keskittyy vain Wile E. Coyoteen alias Wayne W. Dyeriin.
        xxx/ellauri239.html on line 92: Daodejing (道德經 pinyin: Dàodéjīng; Wade-Giles: Tao te ching) , ”Tien (dao) ja hyveen (de) loimi (jing)”, on Laozin kirjoittamana pidetty uskonnollis-filosofinen teos, joka on tunnetuin taolaisuuden kirjoituksista. Alun perin kirja tunnettiin nimellä Laozi tekijänsä mukaan. Se jaetaan osiin Dao ja De. Varhaisimmassa Mawangduista (馬王堆) löydetyssä Daodejingissä osat ovat toisin päin, eli ensin hyve, sitten tie. Ensin lepo, sitten puhelu. Lepo hyvä verelle.
        xxx/ellauri239.html on line 171: The Jews of Jesus’ day believed that every child was a gift from God. As good practicing Jews, why would they want to destroy a gift from God?
        xxx/ellauri239.html on line 453: Sevverran voi arvata joka tapapaukauxessa että Janille ei tule käymään kuinkaan koska se on ökyrikas, vaikka se oli mulkero jo nuorena. Selataanpa sivukauppa eteenpäin, kohtaan jossa totuus paljastuu. "En tappanut häntä. Me kiusasimme häntä, ja minä katkaisin hältä suxen. Mustan lasikuitusuxen josta sen isi olis sille hirmu vihainen. Niinpä se meni ja teki samantien suikin avantoon. Minä en häntä tappanut, mitä nyt katkaisin vaan suxen!" vinkuu Jan Morell kauhuissaan. Mutta sit! Viisikymppinen naishenkilö kamppaa yllättäen wannabe murhaajan takaviistosta. Luoti tappaa harmittomasti harmittoman hirvieläimen joka sattui paikalle. Kohtalon sormi! Jumala on apinoiden puolella!
        xxx/ellauri239.html on line 818: Harry Hole ampui Märklinin norsupyssyllä etentaitavasti sarjamurhaajan sen viimeisen wannabe uhrin silmän lävize. Ettei erehdyxessäkään osuisi vahingossa Kaija-kolleegaan. Jonka se sitten dumppasi loppuvizeissä tosi rumasti.
        xxx/ellauri250.html on line 549: During his lifetime, Bukowski received little attention from academic critics in the USA, but was better received in Europe, particularly the UK, and especially Germany, where he was born. Since his death in March 1994, Bukowski has been the subject of a legion of critical articles and books about both his life and writings, every other wannabe James Dean scrambling to get their slice of Bukowski's steak and kidney pie.
        xxx/ellauri250.html on line 601: His posthumous collections have been heavily 'John Martinized', removing booze, hell and Hitler and replacing dick, cunt and arse with ****. American band Red Hot Chili Peppers reference Bukowski and his works in several songs. A legion of other wannabe baddies have saddled his horses.
        xxx/ellauri250.html on line 735: Another woman, who dated the same man several years earlier in a polyamorous relationship, alleges that he had once attempted to put his penis in her mouth while she was sleeping. (TIME is not naming the man, like others in this story, due to the request of one or more women who made accusations against them, and who wanted to shield themselves from possible retaliation.)
        xxx/ellauri250.html on line 860: During David’s youth as a shepherd, he (David) developed many skills. He learned music, how to write, use a slingshot, how to pull uncircumcized men by the beard, and how to love Jonathan and obey the Lord. Do I understand that it’s my responsibility to develop my abilities like Jonathan Livingston The Seagull, and it’s God’s responsibility to direct me in how I use them? Do I realize that the most important skill I possess is my love for the Lord and my heart to obey Him? What miracles might God want to do through me that would show the whole earth that there is a God in the land? Kan jeg ble en helt liksom Harry Hole?
        xxx/ellauri250.html on line 869: Tyhmät kriitikot ei tajunneet että osasto 6:n kouluja käymätön iloinen ja kiltti pikku kaljupää wannabe "pisnismies", joka ihastui päättömästi suomalaiseen opiskelijaan oli lohtunami, joka kohensi hylätyn naisen izetuntoa. Sentään jonkun silmissä se oli saavuttamattoman etevä ja ihana. Haista vitu. Suomalainen komea kitaranrämpyttäjä sensijaan oli paskiainen varas. Että revi siitä. Kyllä kiltti pieni mies on pitkän päälle parempi valinta vaikka tylsempi.
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 61: Atalanta voi tarkoittaa ainakin seuraavia: Atalante, kreikkalaisen mytologian hahmo; Atalanta BC, italialainen jalkapalloseura; Atalanta-operaatio eli EUNAVFOR Somalia, Euroopan unionin laivasto-operaatio Somalian vesillä; Britannian kuninkaallinen laivasto. HMS Atalanta (1775), Swan-luokka 14-tykkinen sluuppi; HMS Atalante (1797), 16-tykkinen prikisluuppi
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 160: Whose hair or breast divides the wandering wave Joidenka tukka tai tissit jakaa mainingit
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 213: For the faint east quickens, the wan west shivers, Sillä idässä jo koittaa koi, länsi väpisee,
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 653: Even such I saw their sisters; one swan-white,
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 892: Shall not want wit to see what things be right.
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 910: Through waning water and into shallow light,
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1242: The warm wan heights of the air, moon-trodden ways
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1379: And many a wandering wing of noisy nights
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1853: ⁠All the wan green places bear
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1869: ⁠Or the wild vine’s wan wet rings
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2169: And more than many lives of wandering men.
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2264: I shall want always to the day I die.
        xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2992: ⁠Or as winter’s wan daughter
        xxx/ellauri255.html on line 98: The most important thing for me was to understand the chain of disasters of the 20th century – the impacts of which actually are still with us today, as we see in Ukraine. Around 12 million people died in the Russian Civil War. This wanton destruction created a terrible fear among the middle classes, but also galvanised the left – the Bolsheviks and other communists – and marked the start of a vicious circle of rhetoric that developed, above all, in the 1930s. This is really what dominates the whole of the 20th century, yet I think that the Russian Civil War is not understood well enough, nor is the demilitarisation of Ukraine.
        xxx/ellauri255.html on line 113: Even many Bolsheviks were shocked by Lenin’s extremism. His new government abolished the police and the army, replacing them with Red Guards from the factories, and absolutely everything was nationalised! How indecent! This course of action wasn’t apparent beforehand, and – not surprisingly since they lost their jobs and status – many of the civil servants didn’t want to work with the new government.
        xxx/ellauri255.html on line 116: Lenin actually wanted the civil war. He said: “Civil war is the sharpest form of the class struggle.” In his view, it was the only way for the Bolsheviks to take power. So what? It has been just the Same in all previous revolutions. Those in the power do not just give it away for free.
        xxx/ellauri255.html on line 122: There was always going to be tension right from the start, because most of these White officers were anti-Semitic – and there were many Jews in the Socialist Revolutionaries and other socialist parties. White officers also wanted to bring back the punishments used by the tsarist army, which meant that they would be allowed to punch soldiers in the face on a summary charge, whip them using rifle-cleaning rods, things like that. Of course, this created a terrible tension the whole time.
        xxx/ellauri255.html on line 130: This was almost as unpopular as the Whites’ appalling social policies towards the peasants. The tsarists wanted to get all their land back from the peasants, which of course was going to create a tremendous hatred and fear; as a result, there was almost continual war. The Whites had no proper administration; all they were interested in was taking what they could from these local areas, including food – which in many cases they did not pay for. One almost thinks that the Bolsheviks were onto something there.
        xxx/ellauri255.html on line 180: Jutku-Marxille kiukustunut Bakunin päästeli aika pahanlaatuista salaliittoteoriaa. "the communism of Marx wants a mighty centralization by the state, and where this exists there must nowadays be a central State Bank and where such a bank exists, the parasitical Jewish nation, which speculates on the labor of the peoples, will always find a means to sustain itself. This whole Jewish world, comprising a single exploiting sect, a kind of bloodsucking people, a kind of organic destructive collective parasite, going beyond not only the frontiers of states, but of political opinion, this world is now, at least for the most part, at the disposal of Marx on the one hand, and of Rothschild on the other."
        xxx/ellauri259.html on line 411:  Mietin millainen äitisuhde hänellä oli. Bylsikö hän äitiään, etsikö hän samaa rakkaudesta? Naissuhteet mahdollisti asema taiteilijana, suurena nerona. Se on syy, miksi kaverilla oli vientiä, pohtii näyttelijä Pinja Hahtola. Hän on itse kirjoittanut tekstin ja muuntuu hämmästyttävästi näyttämöllä Anni Swanista Aino Kallakseksi, L. Onervaksi ja Maila Talvioksi (jonka rekiajelusta Leinon kanssa huhutaan) ja kolmeksi rouva Leinoksi: Freya Schoultziksi, Aino Kajanukseksi ja Hanna Laitiseksi, ja onpa Hahtola välillä antiikin päämuusa Kalliopeekin.
        xxx/ellauri259.html on line 421:
        Anni Swan (1875–1958)

        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 242: Amos Wilder was a stern, teetotaling Congregationalist who expected his son to be scholar-athlete and a muscular Christian. When Thornton announced that he had been cast as Lady Bracknell in a school production of The Importance of Being Earnest, the senior Wilder informed him that he would rather that Thornton not play female roles. Papa would not absolutely forbid it, but he assumed that his son would want to honor his father’s wishes. Thornton reluctantly conceded, but later wrote to his father in China, “When you have changed your mind as to it, please notify.”
        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 257: Suddenly she grabbed my knee. “Sammy,” she said, “do you think that Alice and I are lesbians?” I had a genuine hot curl of fire up my spine. “I don’t see that it’s anybody’s business one way or another,” I said. “Do you care whether we are,” she asked. “Not in the least,” I said. I was suddenly dripping wet. “Are you queer or gay or different or ‘of it’ as the French say or whatever they are calling it nowadays,” she said, looking narrowly at me. I waggled my hand sidewise. “Both ways,” I said. “I don’t see why I should go through life limping on just one leg to satisfy a so-called norm.” “It bothers a lot of people,” Gertrude said. “But like you said, it’s nobody’s business, it came from the Judeo-Christian ethos, especially Saint Paul the bastard, but he was complaining about youngsters who were not really that way, they did it for money, everybody suspects us or knows but nobody says anything about it. Did Thornie tell you?” “Only when I asked him a direct question and then he didn’t want to answer, he didn’t want to at all. He said yes he supposed in the beginning but that it was all over now.” Gertrude laughed. “How could he know. He doesn’t know what love is. And that’s just like Thornie.”
        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 400: Ermengarde, Mr. Vandergelder's niece, whom Ambrose wants to marry — Prunella Scales
        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 448: Ermengarde: The young niece of Horace Vandergelder. She cries often and wants her independence and to marry Ambrose.
        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 458: As the nineteenth becomes the 20th century, all of New York City is excited because widowed but brassy Dolly Gallagher Levi is in town ("Call on Dolly"). Dolly makes a living through what she calls "meddling" – matchmaking and numerous sidelines, including dance instruction and mandolin lessons ("I Put My Hand In"). She is currently seeking a wife for grumpy Horace Vandergelder, the well-known half-a-millionaire, but it becomes clear that Dolly intends to marry Horace herself. Ambrose Kemper, a young artist, wants to marry Horace's weepy niece Ermengarde, but Horace opposes this because Ambrose's vocation does not guarantee a steady living. Ambrose enlists Dolly's help, and they travel to Yonkers, New York to visit Horace, who is a prominent citizen there and owns Vandergelder's Hay and Feed.
        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 464: Irene and Minnie open their hat shop for the afternoon. Irene wants a husband, but does not love Horace Vandergelder. She declares that she will wear an elaborate hat to impress a gentleman ("Ribbons Down My Back"). Cornelius and Barnaby arrive at the shop and pretend to be rich. Horace and Dolly arrive at the shop, and Cornelius and Barnaby hide from him. Irene inadvertently mentions that she knows Cornelius Hackl, and Dolly tells her and Horace that even though Cornelius is Horace's clerk by day, he's a New York playboy by night; he's one of the Hackls. Minnie screams when she finds Cornelius hiding in the armoire. Horace is about to open the armoire himself, but Dolly, Irene and Minnie distract him with patriotic sentiments related to subjects like Betsy Ross and The Battle of the Alamo shown in the famous lyrics "Alamo, remember the Alamo!" ("Motherhood March"). Cornelius sneezes, and Horace storms out, realizing there are men hiding in the shop, but not knowing they are his clerks.
        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 466: Dolly arranges for Cornelius and Barnaby, who are still pretending to be rich, to take the ladies out to dinner to the Harmonia Gardens restaurant to make up for their humiliation. She teaches Cornelius and Barnaby how to dance since they always have dancing at such establishments ("Dancing"). Soon, Cornelius, Irene, Barnaby, and Minnie are happily dancing. They go to watch the great 14th Street Association Parade together. Alone, Dolly decides to put her dear departed husband Ephram behind her and to move on with life "Before the Parade Passes By". She asks Ephram's permission to marry Horace, requesting a sign from him. Dolly catches up with the annoyed Vandergelder, who has missed the whole parade, and she convinces him to give her matchmaking one more chance. She tells him that Ernestina Money would be perfect for him and asks him to meet her at the swanky Harmonia Gardens that evening.
        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 515: In 1890, all of New York City is excited because the well-known widowed matchmaker Dolly Levi is in town. Dolly is currently seeking a wife for grumpy Horace Vandergelder, the well-known "half-a-millionaire", but it soon becomes clear that she intends to marry Horace herself. Meanwhile, Ambrose Kemper, a young artist, wants to marry Horace's niece, Ermengarde. However, Horace opposes this, feeling Ambrose cannot provide financial security. Horace, who is the owner of Vandergelder's Hay and Feed, explains to his two clerks, Cornelius Hackl and Barnaby Tucker, that he is going to get married, though what he really wants is a housekeeper. He plans to travel to New York that very day to march in the 14th Street Parade, and also to propose to milliner Irene Molloy, whom he has met through Dolly Levi. Dolly arrives in Yonkers and sends Horace ahead to the city. Before leaving, he tells Cornelius and Barnaby to mind the store.
        xxx/ellauri261.html on line 631: The field of secular theology, a subfield of liberal theology advocated by Robinson somewhat combines secularism and theology. Recognized in the 1960s, it was influenced both by neo-orthodoxy, Dietrich Bonhoeffer, Harvey Cox, and the existentialism of Søren Kierkegaard and Paul Tillich. Robinson, along with Douglas John Hall and Rowan Williams, see that Secular theology had digested modern movements like the Death of God Theology propagated by Thomas J. J. Altizer or the philosophical existentialism of Tillich and eased the introduction of such ideas into the theological mainstream and made constructive evaluations, as well as contributions, to the problems caused by the demise of out heavenly father.
        xxx/ellauri265.html on line 326: Rauhan aikana polarisoiduttiin keskenään, nyt kiitos ryssämagneetin kaikki rautahituset on kääntyneet itä-länsisuuntaan. Pahuxet masinoivat meediamaisemaa. Paras ohje wannabe somettajalle: älä mene.
        xxx/ellauri265.html on line 412: “The president of Portland State University said that the highest priority of the institution was racial justice,” Boghossian said. “Now that’s an absolutely remarkable statement, a genuinely remarkable statement. Not budget, not publication, not teaching excellence, not retention, but racial justice. A private institution like Bob Jones University can make their mission statement anything they want to make. My primary concern is with public institutions.”
        xxx/ellauri265.html on line 442: That’s what has so impressed me about the Village Square and Liz Joyner’s efforts. They were originally very focused on Tallahassee, which as the state capital means you have a lot of people who want to solve problems.
        xxx/ellauri265.html on line 444: And the thing is, it works — it works really well in Tallahassee. Everybody thinks the way we want. I do think it’s hard to scale.
        xxx/ellauri268.html on line 137: Nach Sacher-Masochs Tode ist dies Rätsel gelöst. Die Not, die bitterste äußere Not zwang ihn dazu, dem Gott in Seinen Hosen Gewalt anzutun, um Brot für sich und die Seinen um jeden Preis zu schaffen. In jener Zeit entstanden die vielberufenen „Messalinen Wiens“, „Falscher Hermelin“ usw.
        xxx/ellauri268.html on line 179: Als einer der ersten zeichnete er ein realistisches Bild der Juden in Galizien; zeitlebens kämpfte er politisch gegen den Antisemitismus in Mitteleuropa. Victor Hugo, Émile Zola, Henrik Ibsen gehörten zu seinen Bewunderern; König Ludwig II. von Bayern empfand zu dem Autor gar eine Seelenverwandtschaft. Sielun veljiä, meillä on aivan erikoinen sana sille (Schwul).
        xxx/ellauri268.html on line 259: Merope loved her husband very much and wanted him to love her of his own free will. As such, not long after learning about her pregnancy, Merope decided to lift the enchantment. She hoped that once free, Tom would return her affection and be delighted to learn that he was an expecting father. In the event that did not happen, Merope assumed that Tom would do the honorable thing and stay for the sake of his child. This hope however, turned out to be misplaced and forlorn. What exactly happened is not known, but after coming to his senses, Tom Riddle reacted very badly to his situation. It is not known what words were exchanged between husband and wife, but evidently, Merope either told Tom the full story or enough for him to figure out what had happened. Far from being loving or understanding, Tom was justifiably furious at Merope for intervening in and (from his perspective) ruining his life. Merope's world was shattered when Tom Riddle made very clear that:
        xxx/ellauri268.html on line 265: He wanted nothing to do with Merope or his unborn child.
        xxx/ellauri268.html on line 269: On 31st December 1926, tired and disheveled Joanie Rowling staggered onto the steps of Edinburgh's muggle orphanage. Within an hour, she had given birth to a healthy baby girl. She told one of the publisher that she wanted her antihero to be named Tom Marvolo Riddle. Tom Riddle for his father and Marvolo for hers. In a word, a partial anagram of Voldemort. Why not call him Dolt Mover or Overt Mold, wouldn't that have been more convenient? Arkistostamme joulua.
        xxx/ellauri268.html on line 363: We want to hear what you THINK. Please submit a letter to the editor.
        xxx/ellauri268.html on line 556: “When history looks back, I want people to know the Nazis weren’t able to kill millions of people and get away with it,” he once said, according to the center’s website. Wiesenthal died in 2005 at the age of 96. Kosto elää, tai siis eli.
        xxx/ellauri273.html on line 140: #1 Tony Robbins #2 Les Brown (coon) #3 Eric Thomas (coon) #4 Nick Vujicic (torso) #5 Daymond John (coon) #6 Simon Sinek (jew? oikein arvattu!) #7 T. Harv Eker #8 Robert Kiyosaki (jap) #9 Gary Vaynerchuk (woodchuck?) #10 Dave Ramsey (wanhus) #11 Brian Tracy (wanhus) #12 Bob Proctor (wanhus) #13 Dan Millman #14 Brene Brown (ämmä) #15 Amy Purdy (jalaton ämmä) #16 Mary Lou Retton (ämmä) #17 Magic Johnson (coon). White Anglo-Saxon Protestanttien osuus tässä joukossa on huolestuttavan alhainen.
        xxx/ellauri273.html on line 355: Kwane Nkrumah 1962
        xxx/ellauri273.html on line 405:
        Civila krigstränar i Taiwan

        xxx/ellauri273.html on line 407: Huhut wellowat Taiwanissa, käden hikoavat ja propagadapeli kovenee kun mannerkiinalaiset koittavat heikentää formosalaisten tilltro till demokratin. Tarkoittaen amerikkalaisen versiota siitä tietysti, sitä mihin kuuluu se "pursuit of happiness". Urheat formosalaiset opettelevat amerikkalaisen ex-mariinin johdolla ampumista maalikuulapyssyillä. HBL seuraa tarkkasilmäisenä vierestä. No ei, tää juttu on varmaan ostettu sellaisenaan jenkkimeediasta. Kyllä se tästä, kolmas maailmansota lähtee nimittäin. Maanpuolustustahto on siinä ihan ykkönen (Nää on meidän pikkukajavat!). Hyvä kakkonen on Hoblan levittämä disinformaatio.
        xxx/ellauri280.html on line 126: TAIPEI, Taiwan -- One year into Russia's war against Ukraine, China is offering a 12-point proposal to end the fighting. The proposal follows China's recent announcement that it is trying to act as mediator in the war that has re-energized Western alliances viewed by Beijing and Moscow as rivals.

        xxx/ellauri280.html on line 130: Alan Chong, associate professor at the S. Rajaratnam School of International Studies in Singapore, says the Ukraine conflict has been used by Taiwan to allege that China will soon invade the...

        xxx/ellauri280.html on line 412: Rannikolla käytiin kauppaa arabien kanssa ainakin ajanlaskun ensimmäisestä vuosisadasta alkaen. Arabit perustivat omia asuinpaikkojaan rannikolle, ja heidän välinsä naapurin afrikkalaisiin näyttävät olleen varsin ystävällismieliset. Portugalilaisten saapuminen 1400-luvun lopulla heikensi arabien asemaa jonkin verran, mutta portugalilaiset eivät edenneet sisämaahan. Ranskalaisten orjakauppiaiden kiinnostus Kilwan kaupunkiin lisäsi arabien aktiivisuutta alueella. 1800-luvulle asti Kilwassa myytävät orjat tuotiin lähinnä afrikkalaisten karavaanien mukana sisämaasta. 1800-luvun puolella arabit ja intialaiset avasivat kauppareittejä sisämaahan orjien ja norsunluun hankkimiseksi.
        xxx/ellauri280.html on line 422: Palkinto tuli pistämättömästä mutta myötätuntoisesta penetraatiosta. Gurnah has criticized the practices in both British and American publishing that want to "make the alien seem alien" by marking "foreign" terms and phrases with italics or by putting them in a glossary. Onkos se joku ylläri. Felicity Hand observes that Gurnah´s characters typically do not succeed abroad following their migration, using irony and humour to respond to their situation. Talk to the hand. The first translator of his novels into Swahili, academic Dr Ida Hadjivayanis of the School of Oriental and African Studies, has said: "I think if his work could be read in East Africa it would have such an impact. ... maybe fewer coons would try to swim over to the West." Gurnah was the first Black writer to receive the prize since 1993, when Toni Morrison won it, and the first African writer since 1991, when Nadine Gordimer was the recipient, making him the first black guy to make it.
        xxx/ellauri280.html on line 437: Isän äiti oli villi, ja äitikin. Agatha Christien kirjat on puzattu viittauxista villeihin, n-sanat on vaihdettu vähemmän suorasukaisiin. Ennen äitiä Jusufin isä tavoitteli kilwan sikäläistä arabitarta. Nainen lähti myähemmin livohkaan Jusufin velipuolten kaa. Pakodzhonkin nimi oli Silmä. Jusufin isää harmittaa se vieläkin. Finnair valizi kesätyöläiset tissien koon perusteella. Jusufilla on äidin komboloi mukana lähtiessä mutta se jää epähuomiossa junaan. Solzhenizyn opetteli ulkoa 12K omaa lausetta sellaisen avulla. Varmaan sekin oli hiekkakiveä, oltiinhan hiekkaleirillä. Aziz the combat fighterin pommista oli sininen piuha irronnut. Kun se laitettiin kiinni pommi räjähti. Maandazi-leipä on makiaa, kuin suomalaista nisua eli vehnästä. Tekotapakin näyttää samalta.
        xxx/ellauri280.html on line 439: Jälkeenpäin Jusuf ei muistanut mitä sanottiin, mutta Allah mainittiin. Kahlil Gibranista tulee Jusufin pomo. Jusufista tulee kifa urongo, undead. Rahimahullah, lord have mercy on his soul. In the Arab world, sayyid is the equivalent of the English word "mylord", "bwana" or "massa". Ihmissuhteet elävät helevetin 1. leveyspiirillä, vpervom kruge. Muilla piireillä on vielä pahempaa.
        xxx/ellauri281.html on line 181: Daniel T. Birdsell, Harihar Rajaram, David Dempsey, Hari S. Viswanathan. Hydraulisen murtumisnesteen migraatio pinnan alla: Katsaus ja laajennetut mallinnuksen tulokset. // Vesivarojen tutkimus. Osa 51, numero 9. syyskuuta 2015. Sivut 7159–7188. DOI: 10.1002/2015WR017810
        xxx/ellauri281.html on line 500: Toisen maailmansodan aikana muiden ährätessä pommikuopissa Arttu kirjoitti käsikirjoituksen Cowanin puuhaamalle armeijan opetuselokuvalle. Millerin mukaan Cowan halusi "tehdä sotilaista kuvan, jonka sotilaat istuvat loppuun asti nauramatta kertaakaan halveksivasti". Saavuttaakseen tällaisen materiaalin luotettavuuden nuori kirjailija päätti Pylen esimerkin mukaisesti kerätä materiaalia luonnollisissa olosuhteissa - ei sentään rintamalla edessä, vaan täällä takana valmisteluprosessissa. Jonkin ajan kuluttua Cowan kuitenkin erotti Millerin - ilmeisesti johtuen radikaaleista näkemyseroista tulevaisuuden kuvan ideologiasta - ja korvasi hänet useiden kokeneempien kirjoittajien ryhmällä. Se kannatti, sillä tämän seurauksena elokuva julkaistiin vuonna 1945 nimellä "The Story of G.I.Joe". ja sen käsikirjoittajat Leopold Atlas , Guy Endor ja Philip Stevenson tulivat Oscar - ehdokkaiksi. Arttu nuoli kiukkuisena näppejä kazomossa.
        xxx/ellauri292.html on line 47: In Rahab, Woman of Jericho, readers discover a Rahab who is a descendent of the tribe of Ephraim, one of the ten lost tribes of Israel. Her clan left Egypt and settled in Canaan before the Hebrews were enslaved. Although they did not wander in the desert with Moses for forty years, nor did they hear the laws that the Lord gave to His people, they still worshipped the one true God, though without the fringes.
        xxx/ellauri292.html on line 128: (He couldn’t control himself, he wants to touch me.)
        xxx/ellauri292.html on line 149: (Michelle that was your right. You blocked me on Facebook, I had no idea that we had a falling out, that you wanted to leave me. I am not pushing myself to be in your life.)
        xxx/ellauri292.html on line 159: Super Tekla doesn’t want to be compared to Unkabogable star Vice Ganda.
        xxx/ellauri293.html on line 715: Narratiivivirhe viittaa siihen, kun ihmiset käyttävät narratiiveja yhdistääkseen satunnaisten tapahtumien välisiä pisteitä mielivaltaisen tiedon ymmärtämiseksi. Termi juontaa juurensa Nassim Talebin kirjasta The Black Swan: The Impact of the Highly Improbable. Kertomusvirhe voi olla ongelmallista, koska se voi johtaa siihen, että ihmiset muodostavat vääriä syy-seuraussuhteita tapahtumien välillä. Esimerkiksi startup-yritys voi saada rahoitusta, koska sijoittajia vaikuttaa uskottavalta kuulostava kertomus sen sijaan, että saatavilla olevan todisteen perustellumpi analyysi olisi.
        xxx/ellauri295.html on line 251: On se hyvä että Patti kuoli, en muuta sano. Noita meillä on ihan tarpeexi, ja oli. Hikisiä lättähattu persuja. Sille kävi kuin asfalttiprinssi Harri Sirolalle, tuli liikaa kiitosta liian aikaisin, ja sitten ei enää mikään riittänyt, iski rimakauhu. Ja ikävä puolisokin oli molemmilla. Miki Liukkonen, Foster Wallace. Näitä piisaa wannabe nobelisteja.
        xxx/ellauri296.html on line 330: Ma'alot perustettiin kehityskaupungiksi Romaniasta, Iranista ja Marokosta tuleville juutalaisille maahanmuuttajille vuonna 1957. Ensimmäiset kodit rakennettiin Har HaRakafotille (Kyklamenkukkula), joka tunnetaan arabiaksi Bab Al-Hauwana ("Tuulten portti"). ).[viite Tarvitaan]
        xxx/ellauri296.html on line 655: Damit sind Mythen nicht nur Interpretationen von Riten, sondern sie sind auch „Ausdruck eines Fühlens“, Mythos „ist Gefühl in Bild gewandelt“.
        xxx/ellauri296.html on line 660: Mythos ist die Kunst dem Affen „seine am tiefsten verwurzelten Instinkte, seine Hoffnungen und seine Furcht“ auszudrücken und zu organisieren. Und am Ende werden „unsere Gefühle in Werke umgewandelt“, in Faustschlägen und Grillfeste. Sadut työstää apinoiden ur-angsteja, kuten myös juutalainen Freud termensi. Sexiä ja kuolemaa, vähän förbimistä, petkutusta ja toisten annosten ahmimistakin. Matelijanaivot ja aivokuori kiistelevät parhaasta pelitavasta. Sisään vaan vaikkei seisokkaan! huutaa liskoihminen. Älähän hättäile, toppuuttelee homo sapiens, naatitaan. Odotellaan kunnes aseet on täydessä juhlakunnossa. Tuntuu jo toimahtelevan.
        xxx/ellauri298.html on line 201: my horror that I had forgotten to put on my identification badge! I did not want
        xxx/ellauri298.html on line 276: conflict in her work-group or on the hospital service would arise. Not wanting to
        xxx/ellauri298.html on line 400: Aika samanlaisia vaiheita koetaan kun mällipussia viedään vasta sisälle: 1. alkuyhteys wannabe äidin kanssa (toiveikasta, jännää kuin kuorisi karkkia kääreistä, vällykäärme liikahtelee lupaavasti housuissa), 2. Misu vastustajana. Erektio alkanut mutta häpyhuulet eivät vielä auki. Kovaa ähräystä, kun jättiläiskäärmettä koittaa saada hollille. 3. Yhteinen kamppailu. Vagina on auennut. Fantasioita raketinlaukaisusta ja tunneliin syöxyvästä junasta, asteittain kiihtyvää pumppuliikettä. Raiskauksia, lähitaistelua elämästä tai kuolemasta. 4. Ruiskahdus. Kun ollaan kahvaa myöten sisällä ja siemenpumppu käynnistyy, vapauden, pelastumisen, rakkauden ja armon elämyksiä.
        xxx/ellauri298.html on line 646: God is a metaphor for a mystery that absolutely transcends all human categories of thought, even the categories of being and non-being. Those are categories of thought. I mean it's as simple as that. So it depends on how much you want to think about it. Whether it's doing you any good. Gets you closer to your bliss. Whether it is putting you in touch with the mystery that's the ground of your own being. If it isn't, well, it's a lie. So half the people in the world are religious people who think that their metaphors are facts. Those are what we call theists. The other half are people who know that the metaphors are not facts. And so, they're lies. Those are the atheists.
        xxx/ellauri303.html on line 352: Dr. Alswanger pääsee naimisiin Estherin kanssa, joka on niin epätoivoinen Morris Plotkinin kuoltua velkaisena että "naisi vaikka kissan." Dr. Alswanger oli tottunut nöyryytyxiin. Esther jatkoi teitittelyä häiden jälkeenkin. Pääsiköhän kissa koskaan nuolemaan Estherin wiixiä.
        xxx/ellauri303.html on line 354: Dr Alswanger var inte överens med Freud och Adler och Jung. Var och en av dem närmade sig naturligtvis sanningen men de hade bara skrapat på ytan. Som han såg saken hade alla tre overdrivit ordens bokstavliga mening och följaktligen blandat shop olika saker. Visst var sex viktigt, men sex var inte allt. Visst ville folk lyckas och ha makt över andra, men detta var ett symptom och inte en orsak. Visst till hörde individen kollektivet, människosläktet, men det var heller inte hela bilden. Hela bilden är: EAT! FUCK! KILL! Det värsta var, enligt Alswanger, kvinnornas slaveri.
        xxx/ellauri303.html on line 523: Juutalaiset torjuvat hirveän ajatuksen, että Jeesus Nasaretilainen olisi messias, ja ovat yhtä mieltä siitä, että oikea messias ei ole vielä tullut. Kautta juutalaisen historian on ollut useita juutalaisia Messias wannabeitä, joita juutalaiset ovat pitäneet valheina, mukaan lukien merkittävimmät Simon bar Kokhba ja Sabbatai Zevi , joiden seuraajat tunnettiin sapattilaisina.
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 399: I want to show you how to write a novel that doesn't suck (except bucks out of other suckers' pockets). Step by step by step. I don't do this out of a crazy lusting for notoriety, I only in it for the money. Another Day, Another Dollar.
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 446: Oh, and one more assignment. Take a book that you particularly like that's in the genre you want to work in and read it again. And this time, read it like a writer. When does the author spell out the main idea of the story? When does the hero arrive in the book? When the villain? Love interest? Danger and threats? How does the author make it seem real to you? If you want, stick post-it notes at various parts of the book. Think about it.
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 466: Tätä on noudatettava, koska se toimii - se on toiminut maailman sivu, samalla konstilla on meidät kaikki nussittu. The structure itself puts tension and action and drama into everything it touches — and that’s what you want your book to do. And that’s what your readers will also want your book to do. Readers have a comfort zone and this structure will put them in it.
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 470: Everybody’s favorite hero is the person s/he wants to be or have. If you are an acne-ridden teeen it is James Bond. If you are James Bond it is an acne-ridden teen with pointy breasts.
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 482: And remember this: a great hero needs and deserves a great recognizable villain. That is what was wrong with a movie called “Remo Williams: the Adventure Begins,” which was based on my Destroyer book series. In the Bond movies, 007 confronts people who want to nuke London or steal all the gold in Fort Knox etc. etc. My guy, Remo Williams went up against some mope who was selling cheap rifles to the government…and no one gave a damn. Great heroes need great villains; otherwise they just look silly. The AI monster made of garbage in Remo vanha vainooja, now that was something else.
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 517: Sometimes though they might do a little more. They won’t steal the real action but they set the mood, they add humor, they make the setting more believable. You can do this by making placeholders eccentric or obsessive. I read analysis once of an old flick called Beverly Hills Cop. It featured a clerk in an art gallery. He was effeminate. By itself, that’s not unusual. But he had a Jewish accent, and that was unusual because Jews weren’t generally treated as queens in Hollywood — it teems with them (although today H’wood can say anything it wants about Jews, even Christians. You can tell this was an old movie.) What that character did however in the film was to help make Detroit cop Eddie Murphy, the negro comedian, feel even more alien in L.A. than he otherwise would have.
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 596: Status objects. An essay by Tom Wolfe (Bonfire of the Vanities) put this in my head some years ago. A certain kind of person wants to wear shirts that have little alligators on them and another totally different type of person perhaps wants to have a statue of a black jockey on his lawn…or a pink flamingo. My late loving mother, a paragon of taste, once moved into our guest house and put painted plywood cutouts of the backviews of two people, bending over as if planting something in the yard. Naturally, butt cracks were visible because they were the whole point of this architectural and horticultural display. Since my house then was a mansion and a national historic site, I suggested that my mother take her plywood cutouts off the front lawn and put them in her backyard where nobody could see her butt. (I am a long time out of Alabama.)
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 623: What to read? If you get no checks, read Writer’s Digest. Read the how-to books. If you want to read books on writing, you can’t find much better stuff then Stephen King on Writing, anything by Dean Koontz or Larry Block, a very specific mystery writing manual from Hallie Ephron (*1948), Writing Mysteries from MWA, a collection which includes me and my ex-partner, read my blogs and those about the writer’s soul by Molly Cochran. Read “Trial and Error”by Jack Woodford (+1971), one of the great commercial writing geniuses. And be sure to read my long time personal favorite book by one of my all time, all-star heroes, “Dare to be a Great Writer” by Leonard Bishop, which is not 300 pages of “rah-rah boys, go do it” but is instead 329 specific tips on how to get the trucks out of the garage in the morning. Fabulous. Reading and writing and remembering, are the only two of the three R’s that count. Who the hell cares about ‘rithmetic? Except Chuck Berry, who could count 6/8 time like a genius.
        xxx/ellauri304.html on line 629: Suppose you want to write a “big book.” No genre junk for you. Okay. Here’s what you need to know. A “big book” is just a genre novel that got bigger. More pages, more everything. just make it a little bigger, a little more breathless, give it a little more end-of-the-world panache. Think of selling it to Hollywood where they call it high concept but what that really means is that it’s a very short outline of a book for people who can’t read a whole book or even a whole paragraph at once and their mind starts to wander after one sentence. Where was I? Ah yes:
        xxx/ellauri306.html on line 667: MAN: I don't want to talk to you, no more, you empty-headed animal, food trough wiper. I fart in your general direction. You mother was a hamster and your father smelt of elderberries.

        xxx/ellauri312.html on line 637: The length of a non-erect penis doesn't consistently predict length when the penis is erect. If your penis is about 5 inches (13 cm) or longer (up to a foot) when erect, it's of typical size. A penis is considered small only if it measures less than 3 inches (about 7.5 centimeters) when erect. This is a condition called micropenis. Understanding your partner's needs and desires is more likely to improve your sexual relationship than changing the size of your penis. Except if your partner can't feel your micropenis and wants a bigger dick.
        xxx/ellauri312.html on line 796: In einfältigen Augen, unverwandt yxinkertaisissa silmissä, tottumatta
        xxx/ellauri312.html on line 859: Unsterblicher Schicksal und es wandelt ihr Werk kuolematon kohtalo ja se hoitaa hommansa
        xxx/ellauri312.html on line 972: Alle Jahre wieder geht er um wie ein Virus: der Wunsch, alles stehen und liegen zu lassen, auf dem Jakobsweg zu wandern oder mit dem Segelboot die Welt zu umrunden. Ob bewusst oder nicht: All die Zivilisationsmüden treten in die Fußstapfen des griechischen Einsiedlers Hyperion, erfunden von Friedrich Hölderlin. Hyperions Lebensgeschichte ist Hölderlins literarische Anklage gegen das spießbürgerliche, dumpfe und materialistische Deutschland seiner Zeit, das ihm als Künstler und Idealisten kaum Luft zum Atmen ließ, nein in einen Turm einschließ. Seine Sprache war schon damals gewöhnungsbedürftig und ist es heute erst recht: Da „säuseln holdselige Tage“, es neigen sich „lispelnde Bäume“ und es „gährt das Leben“. Doch die Fragen des lange verkannten Genies sind nicht aus der Welt: Wie kann der Mensch seine Vereinzelung überwinden? Auf welchem Weg eine bessere Welt schaffen? Und wie im Einklang mit der Natur leben? Das antike Griechenland mag heute als Vorbild ausgedient haben, aber die Suche nach Antworten auf diese Fragen bleibt aktuell.
        xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1002: Nachdem der weise Adamas ihm die Liebe zur großen Geschichte seines Vaterlandes nahegebracht hat, begegnet Hyperion in Smyrna dem wesens- und geistesverwandten Alabanda, der von einer besseren, zukünftigen Welt träumt, da ihm die Gegenwart schal und verkommen erscheint. Anders als Hyperion, der das Ziel der neuen Gesellschaft evolutionär erreichen möchte, ist Alabanda allerdings davon überzeugt, dass dies nur mit Gewalt zu verwirklichen ist. Als er Hyperion in den revolutionären 'Bund der Nemesis' einweiht, kommt es zwischen ihnen zu einem Streit, der zu beider Trennung führt.
        xxx/ellauri319.html on line 665: If you think you might have syphilis, it's best to avoid sex until you've talked with your doctor. If you do engage in sexual activity before seeing your doctor or during it, be sure to follow safe sex practices, such as using a condom. WHO estimates that 7.1 million adults between 15 and 49 years old acquire syphilis every year. About 210 million women get knocked up per year. Over 70 million of the wannabes get aborted, that is about a third. The figures had better go the other way.
        xxx/ellauri320.html on line 44: Facebook odottaa sinua. Lähettää joka aamu viestidröönejä apinan raivolla rikastuaxeen raitapyllypaviaanien kustannuxella. Hyi kuinka se sokeritoukka on karsea. Viimeisin näkemyxeni maailman menosta on että yhteiskuntajärjestelmillä on vitun vähän tekemistä tässä katastrofissa. Apinat jakautuvat aina ilkiöiden käsisä olevixi pyramideixi, jota pitävät pystyssä ahneet wannabeet, ja alempana vielä ovat julmat persumassat ja osattomat tolvanat. Tähän olotilaan vaikuttaa kasautumisen tekniikka minimaalisesti. Vaihda järjestelmää ja samanlaiset ilkiöt on taas huipulla, tai samat.
        xxx/ellauri320.html on line 158: 'My mother wanted me to marry Elmley, but I didn't find him attractive, which is just as well because, my dear, there was the most ghastly scandal.
        xxx/ellauri320.html on line 283: Tuottoisimmat genret on kaikki tuotettu raitaperseisille paviaaneille. Ne on suoraan Darwinin pelikirjan pääluvuista EAT! FUCK! KILL! . Paljon paalua voi saada vain valtavilta kädellisten massoilta. Apinat muodostavat pyramidin, jonka huipulla on menestyneet ilkimyxet, vähän alempana ahneet wannabet, niiden alla puoliaan pitelevät keskiluokan apinat ja persut, alimpana kädestä suuhun ääliöt ja köyhät mamutolvanat. Kynäilijöiden best bet on pyramidin puolivälissä, jossa porukoilla on riittävästi hynää ostaa oma kappale eikä jonottaa tolvanoiden kanssa kirjastossa.
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 81: Im Jahr 1970 rekonstruiert ein Erzähler das Leben von Leni Pfeiffer: 1944 verliebt sie sich in den russischen Kriegsgefangenen Boris und wird schwanger. Boris stirbt ein Jahr später. Zeitlebens hat die durch und durch redliche Leni mit Anfeindungen zu kämpfen. 1970 gerät sie in Schwierigkeiten: Immobilienhaie wollen sie und ihre Untermieter aus ihrer Wohnung werfen. Freunde und Immigranten helfen der 48-Jährigen – die übrigens erneut schwanger ist, diesmal vom türkischen Müllmann Mehmet. Abfallmenschen hin und wieder.
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 129: „Leni (…) hatte an diesem Sommerabend des Jahres 1938, als sie dahingestreckt und ,geöffnet‘ auf dem warmen Heidekraut lag, ganz und gar den Eindruck, ,genommen‘ zu werden und auch ,gegeben‘ zu haben, und – so erläuterte sie später Margret – sie wäre nicht im geringsten erstaunt gewesen, wenn sie schwanger geworden wäre.“ (S. 33 f.)
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 131: Lotte Hoyser ist die Ehefrau eines Zeichners, der für Hubert Gruyten arbeitet. Als ihr Mann fällt, zieht sie mit ihrer ganzen Schwiegerfamilie zu den Gruytens, wo sie zu Lenis Vertrauter wird. Vater Gruyten bereichert sich mithilfe einer fiktiven Firma, was auffliegt, weil die Namen der Arbeiter einen Buchhalter mit Faible für russische Literatur auf den Plan rufen: Raskolnikov, Puschkin, Gogol und Tolstoi auf den Baustellen von Schlemm und Sohn? Gruyten schützt seine Mitwisser und bekommt lebenslang Zuchthaus, sein Vermögen wird konfisziert, seine Frau stirbt. Von 1943 bis 1945 leistet er Zwangsarbeit, danach lebt er mit Lotte zusammen.
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 149: Leni ist sich und anderen gegenüber grenzenlos großzügig. Im September 1944 belaufen sich ihre Außenstände auf 20 000 Mark. Im November 1944 weiß sie, dass sie schwanger ist. Das ist die Stunde des alten Hoyser, Lottes Schwiegervater, an den Leni ihr Haus erst verpfänden, dann abtreten muss – er übervorteilt sie gnadenlos, und gleich am 1. Januar 1945 treibt er Mieten ein. Auch bei seiner Schwiegertochter Lotte, der erst jetzt bewusst wird, dass Leni immer alle hat gratis wohnen lassen.
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 173: Klementina wird von ihrem Orden nach Würzburg strafversetzt, wo der Verfasser sie besucht. Mit durchschlagendem Erfolg: Sie legt ihre Haube ab und geht mit ihm. Endlich begegnet der Verfasser Leni einmal persönlich. Er ist mehr als angetan von ihr, die schüchtern wirkt und wortkarg bleibt. Sie ist von ihrem türkischen Mieter Mehmet schwanger und will mit ihm eine Lebensgemeinschaft eingehen. Zum Abschied äußert sie einen kryptischen Satz, auf den sich nicht einmal die Literaturwissenschaftlerin Klementina einen Reim machen kann: Man müsse „mit irdischem Wagen, unirdischen Pferden weiterzukommen versuchen“. Das Rosenwunder ist beendet: Der Klostergärtner spritzt solche Mengen Gift, dass dagegen die sterblichen Überreste von Schwester Rahel nichts auszurichten vermögen.
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 221: Nach seiner Berufung zum Professor für Philosophie und Soziologie an die Universität zu Köln 1919, die vom Kölner Oberbürgermeister Konrad Adenauer unterstützt worden war, distanzierte Max sich öffentlich vom Katholizismus. So hielt er auf einer Gedenkfeier zum 250. Todestag Spinozas Anfang 1922 eine Rede, die zeigte, dass er sich inzwischen dem Neuspinozismus der Goethezeit und den Ideen Nietzsches zugewandt hatte.
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 223: Als er 1924 nach erneuter Scheidung eine Ehe mit Maria Scheu (1892–1969) einging, beurteilten konservative Katholiken Max als einen Menschen mit labilem Charakter und hyperaktiven Schwanz, der zwischen tierhafte Triebhaftigkeit und Geistigem schwanke.
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 231: Werte stehen für sich selbst, sie sind nicht auf anderes zurückzuführen.Sie sind erfahrbare geistige Gegenstände, sie sind objektiv und sie wirken auf das Handeln. So verneint er beispielsweise den Zusammenhang der intuitiven Erfahrung mit dem Lusterleben wie z.B. Schwanzwedeln.
        xxx/ellauri337.html on line 248: Es lasse sich feststellen, dass der Sexualimpuls ausschließlich der Fortpflanzung diene, solange er in Brunstzeiten eingebettet ist. „Herausgelöst aus der ‚instinktiven Rhythmik’, wird er mehr und mehr selbständige Quelle der Lust“ – und kann „schon bei höheren Tieren … den biologischen Sinn seines Daseins weit überwuchern (z. B. Onanie bei Affen, Hunden, und Schwanzwedeln bei intellektuellen Männern)“.
        xxx/ellauri354.html on line 207: But spurnd in vain. Youth waneith by increasing. Mutta turhaan. Nuoruus vähenee kasvaessaan.
        xxx/ellauri356.html on line 77: Applied Psychology Positive Psychology Life Coaching Teamwork Team Leadership Customer Service Literature Research Commercial Aviation Mindfulness Microsoft Office English Microsoft Excel Social Media Public Speaking Microsoft Word PowerPoint Sales First Aid Secretarial Skills Change Management. Learning has been my lifelong passion. Live and learn. Focus of my interest is on human existence, communication and co-operation. I have studied psychology, social psychology, applied psychology and leadership as well as contemporary litterature and female studies. Real life experience on these themes I have gathered while working as a flight attendant and purser. In the future I want to to contribute to well being both in private as well as professional sectors of life.
        xxx/ellauri356.html on line 432: Vuonna 1919 maassa kehittyi vaikea taloudellinen tilanne, jota pahensi Tsvetajevan haluttomuus ryhtyä "tylsään" työhön tai myydä omaisuuttaan. Tämän seurauksena talossa ei usein ollut tarpeeksi ruokaa, ja runoilijan molemmat tyttäret lähetettiin orpokotiin, jossa Irinalla ei usein ollut tarpeeksi ruokaa. Ja kun äiti vieraili tyttäriensä luona, niin huomio ja herkut menivät vanhemmalle sisarelle. Tämän seurauksena Irina kuoli kolmen vuoden iässä orpokodissa Kuntsevossa. Valkoisen terrorin vuosina ilmestyi runosarja "Swan Camp", joka oli täynnä myötätuntoa valkoista liikettä kohtaan.
        xxx/ellauri356.html on line 488: 26. tammikuuta 1977, Sollers allekirjoitti Le Mondessa – hän plus noin viisikymmentä persoonaa – (erityisesti Jean-Paul Sartren, Roland Barthesin, Simone de Beauvoirin, Alain Robbe-Grillet'n, Françoise Doltin ja Jacques Derridan kanssa) "Avoimen kirjeen rikoslain tarkistuskomissiolle tiettyjen lakitekstien tarkistamiseksi, aikuiset ja alaikäiset", jossa vaaditaan, että "alaikäisten väärinkäyttöä" koskevat lain artiklat "kumotaan tai muutetaan perusteellisesti" siinä mielessä, että "lapsen ja nuoren oikeus tunnustetaan ylläpitää suhteita valitsemiinsa ihmisiin." Se oli vetoomus kolmen miehen puolesta, joita syytettiin 15-vuotiaiden alaikäisten sopimattomasta pahoinpitelystä ilman väkivaltaa. Tämän tekstin oli kirjoittanut Gabriel Matzneff, joka ei salaa makuaan pedofiliaa ja efebofiliaa kohtaan. Matzneff kerskui nussineensa useitakin alaikäisiä tyttöjä. Helmikuussa 2020 julkaistussa New York Timesin profiilissa valokuvassa Matzneff seisoo yksin veden äärellä Italiassa, näyttää masentuneelta, surullinen kalju mies Burberryn trenssitakissa. Ämmä Springora tuhosi muiston siitä, mitä hän muistaa olleen "kestävä ja upea rakkaustarina". Mutta voiko teini-ikäisellä tytöllä olla "upea rakkaustarina" yli kolme kertaa häntä ikäisemmän henkilön kanssa? Tämä on Consentin ytimessä oleva kysymys. Lukijat eivät epäile vastauksesta mitään. This manner willl be convenient for a man who wants to enjoy a woman, and can only get at her by force and against her will. (Perfumed Garden, p. 72.)
        xxx/ellauri366.html on line 96: LaRosen syytteessä syytettiin, että yhdessä viiden syyttelemättömän salaliittolaisen (Etelä-Aasiassa, Itä-Euroopassa, Länsi-Euroopassa ja Yhdysvalloissa) kanssa hän käytti Internetiä kommunikoidakseen mahdollisten jihadistien kanssa Yhdysvaltojen ulkopuolella, salaliitossa Lars Vilksin fatwan tekemisexi ja rahoittaen terrorismia munkkikahvin hinnalla.
        xxx/ellauri366.html on line 181: Fatwan ja tutkimuksen Eurooppa-neuvosto (ECFR) ja Euroopan islamilaisten järjestöjen liitto (FIOE) tuomitsivat Vilksin ja Johanssonin tappouhkaukset. ECFR ilmoitti myös suunnittelevansa "vastafatwan" antamista uhkia vastaan.
        xxx/ellauri379.html on line 117: But it’s overly reductive to boil Heart of Darkness down to the commonalities it shares with Conrad’s own experiences. It would be useful to examine its elements crucial to the emergence of modernism: for example, Conrad’s use of multiple narrators; his couching of one narrative within another; the story’s achronological unfolding; and as would become increasingly clear as the 20th century progressed, his almost post-structuralist distrust in the stability of language. At the same time, his story pays homage to the Victorian tales he grew up on, evident in the popular heroism so central to his story’s narrative. In that sense, Heart of Darkness straddles the boundary between a waning Victorian sensibility and a waxing Modernist one.
        xxx/ellauri379.html on line 347: Putin said, “Whoever does not miss the Soviet Union has no heart.” And then he said, “Whoever wants it back has no brain.” All nations are made up. We invent these concepts of national identity. They’re filled with all sorts of myths. You must realize that Russia has a G.N.P. smaller than Texas. Netanjahu has earned a place next to all-time crooks like Hitler, Mussolini, Pol Pot, and Ronald Reagan. We should be pivoting out of Europe to deal with China in a laser-like fashion, number one. And, number two, we should be working overtime to create friendly relations with the Russians. The Russians are part of our balancing coalition against China. what we have done with our foolish policies in Eastern Europe is drive the Russians into the arms of the Chinese. This is a violation of Balance of Power Politics 101.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 236: Dirlewanger-prikaatin ristikkäisten kranaattien tunnus on nähty useita kertoja meneillään olevan Ukrainan konfliktin aikana, ja sitä on käyttänyt oikeistolainen Azov-pataljoona.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 240:
        Did Oskar Dirlewanger have any redeeming qualities?

        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 242: Pahamaineista Dirlewanger-prikaatia johti surullisen sadistinen nekrofiili, alkoholisti ja raiskaaja tohtori Oskar Dirlewanger, joka oli täynnä vankiloista ja keskitysleireistä värvättyjä tuomittuja rikollisia ja muita ei-toivottuja persoonoja.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 244: Dirlewanger itse oli ollut vaikeuksissa useiden vastenmielisten rikosten vuoksi, mukaan lukien 14-vuotiaan tytön raiskaaminen ennen sotaa, mutta hänen häpeänsä oli lyhytaikainen, ja hänet kunnostettiin (ja valtiotieteen kunniatohtorin tutkinto palautettiin) pragmaattisista syistä, nimittäin hänen halukkuutensa tehdä asioita, joita useimmat normaalit ihmiset pitäisivät käsittämättöminä, hyödyllinen voimavara SS:n amoraalisessa ympäristössä.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 246: Hänen vastenmieliset seksuaaliset taipumuksensa ja voimakas julmuus ja sadismi tarkoittivat, että hänen johtamansa yksikkö sai enemmän tai vähemmän vapaat kädet murhata, kiduttaa, raiskata ja polttaa. He aloittivat elämänsä keskitysleirin vartioinnissa, ja Dirlewangerin ja hänen rikollisten seuraajiensa vangeille aiheuttamat julmuudet olivat niin pahoja, että ne melkein uhmasivat uskoa. Häntä on myös kuvattu "SS:n pahimmaksi mieheksi" ja "ehkä sadistisimmaksi toisen maailmansodan komentajista". Kumpi oli pahempi, Aatu vaiko Oskari? Aatun tappaminen ois ollut humaanimpaa, koska se olis säästänut enemmän ihmishenkiä.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 248: Sen jälkeen heidät siirrettiin Valko-Venäjälle, jossa he ryhtyivät toimiin "jengejä" vastaan, pohjimmiltaan eufemisminä väestön terrorisoimiseksi, raiskausten, kidutuksen ja kiristyksen kanssa. Puna-armeija ampui Dirlewangerin prikaatin (joka oli tällä hetkellä divisioona) tuhannen päreixi Bagration-operaation aikana, mutta se uudistettiin sitten Varsovan kansannousun tukahduttamiseksi. mistä Dirlewanger ylennettiin ja sai Rautaristin.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 250: Oskar Dirlewanger itse selvisi sodasta, mutta ei kauaa. Hän kuoli vankileirillä vuonna 1945; todennäköisimmin hänet hakattiin kuoliaaksi suunnattoman sadististen vartijoiden toimesta.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 252: Dirlewanger syntyi Würzburgissa 26. syyskuuta 1895. Hän oli kauppiaan poika ja vietti suuren osan lapsuudestaan ​​Esslingen am Neckarissa sen jälkeen, kun hänen perheensä muutti sinne vuonna 1906. Hän kävi Esslinger Gymnasiumia (tunnetaan nykyään nimellä Dirlewanger-Gymnasium) ja Schelztor-Oberrealschulea. Hän suoritti Abiturinsa vuonna 1913. Hänen amoraalisen persoonallisuutensa, ml alkoholismi ja sadistinen seksuaalinen suuntautuminen, mureutti ensimmäisen maailmansodan rintamakokemukset ja sen kiihkeä väkivalta ja barbaarisuus.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 254: Ensimmäisen maailmansodan loppuun mennessä Dirlewangeria kuvailtiin "psyykkisesti epävakaaksi, väkivaltaiseksi fanaatiksi ja alkoholistiksi, jolla oli tapana puhkeaa väkivaltaan huumeiden vaikutuksen alaisena".
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 255: Kun natsipuolue nousi valtaan, Dirlewangeria juhlittiin "punaisten terroristien vapauttajana" ja hän sai kunniatohtorin arvon vuonna 1935.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 259: Dirlewanger tuomittiin toistuvasti laittomasta aseiden hallussapidosta ja kavalluksesta. Vuonna 1934 hänet suomittiin ja tuomittiin kahdeksi vuodeksi vankeuteen "alaikäisen auttamisesta rikollisuuteen, jonka kanssa hän oli seksuaalisesti tekemisissä". Dirlewanger menetti myös työpaikkansa, lääkärin arvonsa ja kaikki sotilaalliset kunnianosoitukset, ja hänet erotettiin puolueesta.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 261: Dirlewanger vapautettiin ja palautettiin SS:n yleiseen reserviin hänen sodanaikaisen toverinsa ja paikallisen NSDAP-kaatotoverinsa Gottlob Bergerin henkilökohtaisen väliintulon jälkeen, joka oli myös Reichsführer-SS Heinrich Himmlerin pitkäaikainen henkilökohtainen ystävä ja josta oli tullut SS:n päällikkö. Päätoimisto (SS-Hauptamt, SS-HA). Frankfurtin yliopisto palautti myös hänen kunniatohtorin arvonsa.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 263: Dirlewangerin yksikkö määrättiin turvatehtäviin ensin yleishallituksessa (miehitetyssä Puolassa), missä Dirlewanger toimi CC-TV:n komentajana työleirillä Stary Dzikówissa. SS-tuomari Georg Konrad Morgen teki leirin hyväksikäyttötutkimuksen, jossa hän syytti Dirlewangeria mielettömästä murhasta, korruptiosta ja Rassenschandesta eli rodun saastuttamisesta.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 265: Morgenin mukaan "Dirlewanger oli häiriö ja kauhu koko väestölle. Hän ryösti toistuvasti Lublinin geton kiristäen lunnaita." Dirlewangerin tekemiin julmuuksiin sisältyi strykniinin ruiskuttaminen juutalaisiin tyttöihin ja heidän kuolemantuskiensa katsominen upseerien sotkussa. Morgenin mukaan Dirlewanger "leikkasi juutalaisnaisia ​​ja keitti heidät hevosenlihan kanssa saippuaksi". Morgen alennettiin sotamiehexi ja lähetettiin itärintamalle.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 267: Dirlewangerin Sonderkommandon johtajuutta leimasivat jatkuva alkoholin väärinkäyttö, ryöstely, sadistiset julmuudet, raiskaukset ja murhat – ja hänen mentori Berger sieti tätä käytöstä, samoin kuin Himmler, joka tarvitsi kipeästi Sonderkommando Dirlewangerin kaltaisia ​​miehiä taistelussaan "ali-inhimillisyyttä vastaan".
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 269: Sodan jälkeen Berger sanoi: "Nyt tohtori Dirlewanger oli tuskin hyvä poika. Sitä ei voi sanoa. Mutta hän oli hyvä sotilas, ja hänellä oli yksi suuri virhe, ettei hän tiennyt milloin lopettaa juomisen." Dirlewangeria kuvailtiin "askeettisen näköiseksi mieheksi, joka kohteli omia miehiään yhtä raa'asti kuin puolalaisia. Heidän lyöminen mailoilla kurin ylläpitämiseksi ei ollut harvinaista. Hän jopa ampui satunnaisesti miehiä, joista hän ei pitänyt."
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 271: Dirlewanger ja hänen joukkonsa raiskasivat ja kiduttivat nuoria naisia ​​ja teurastivat juutalaisia ​​Einsatzgruppen-tyyliin Valko-Venäjällä. Vuodesta 1942 alkaen Dirlewangerin suosima menetelmä oli paimentaa paikalliset asukkaat navetan sisälle, sytyttää navetta ja ampua sitten konekivääreillä kaikkia, jotka yrittivät paeta. Pyöristettyjä siviilejä käytettiin myös rutiininomaisesti ihmiskilpinä ja marssimaan miinakenttiin. Himmler tiesi hyvin Dirlewangerin maineen ja ennätyksen, joten hänelle myönnettiin kultainen Saksan risti 5. joulukuuta 1943.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 273: Varsovassa puna-armeijan ammuttua divisioonan säleixi Dirlewanger osallistui Wolan verilöylyyn yhdessä poliisiyksiköiden kanssa ja ampui noin 40 000 siviiliä, useimmat vain kahdessa päivässä. Samassa Wolan kaupunginosassa Dirlewanger poltti kolme sairaalaa, joissa oli potilaita, samalla kun sairaanhoitajat "ruoskittiin, joukkoraiskattiin ja lopulta hirtettiin alasti yhdessä lääkäreiden kanssa" suositun kappaleen "In München steht ein Hofbräuhaus" säestyksellä. Jotain samaa tässä on kuin Gazassa.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 277: Myös pienen lapsen tapaus on Dirlewangerin bravuureja. Hän otti sen naiselta, joka seisoi väkijoukossa kadulla. Hän nosti lapsen korkealle ja heitti sen sitten tuleen. Sitten hän ampui äidin. "Räjäytimme ovet. Lapset seisoivat aulassa ja portaissa. Paljon lapsia. Kaikki pienet kädet ylhäällä. Katsoimme heitä hetken, kunnes Dirlewanger juoksi sisään. Hän käski tappaa heidät kaikki. He ampuivat heitä ja sitten he kävelivät heidän ruumiinsa yli ja mursivat heidän pieniä päitään kiväärinperillä. Veri ja aivoaineet virtasivat alas portaita", kertoo eräs osanottaja. Vanhan testamentin tekniikka. Ciwiin wiscasimme lasten piscuiset päät.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 279: Tunnustuksena hänen työstään kapinallisten pienten päiden murskaamiseksi kiwiin, Dirlewanger sai viimeisen ylennyksensä SS-Oberführeriksi 15. elokuuta 1944. Hieman myöhemmin Neuvostoliitto ampui Dirlewangeria rintaan ja ja peräpäähän. Se oli hänen kahdestoista ja viimeinen vamma sodassa. Hän piiloutui 22. huhtikuuta.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 281: Dirlewangerin nekrofiliaa koskevia syytöksiä kohtaan on esitetty jonkin verran skeptisyyttä. Huolimatta siitä, että hänen uralleen on ominaista "lasten raiskaukset, murhat, perversio, sadismi ja alkoholismi", nekrofiliasta ei ole todistettu todisteita ja "voidaan vain olettaa, että tällaiset olettamukset ovat pelkkää kirjallista fiktiota".
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 283: Ranskan miehitysvyöhykkeen viranomaiset pidättivät Dirlewangerin 1. kesäkuuta 1945 lähellä Altshausenin kaupunkia Ylä-Swabenissa, kun hänellä oli yllään siviilivaatteet, hauska Loden-hattu, väärä nimi ja piiloutui syrjäiseen metsästysmajaan. Juutalainen entinen keskitysleirin vanki tunnisti hänet ja vietiin pidätyskeskukseen.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 285: Ranskalaiset kertoivat, että hän kuoli sydänkohtaukseen tai pakeni ja liittyi Ranskan muukalaislegioonaan. Historioitsijoiden Angelo de Bocan ja Mario Giovanan mukaan Dirlewanger selvisi sodasta ja asui myöhemmin Egyptissä opettaen vartijoita, jotka turvasivat presidentti Gamal Abdel Nasseria. Ilmeisesti Dirlewangerilla oli sittenkin redeeming qualities.
        xxx/ellauri380.html on line 492: Around 65,000 people have left their homes. Before October 2023, Hezbollah fighters would patrol in the open on the other side of the border fence, sometimes just metres from Israeli civilian homes. With the October 7th massacres foremost in everyone's minds, residents of Israel's north want guarantees that this situation will not return once the current round of fighting ceases. Some 100,000 Lebanese have left their own homes on the other side of the border. American diplomatic efforts to achieve some change in border arrangements are stymied. Hezbollah is the effective ruler of Lebanon, and apparently sees no reason for flexibility in this regard.
        xxx/ellauri385.html on line 427: There were rough teens roaming some of the towns with absolutely no attention paid by the local police. The super clean capital, Reykjavik, is only clean due to armies of street sweepers who clean it right before dawn. It is not due to residents respecting it too much to litter, despite what many people want to believe. The food is ridiculously expensive ($25 for a McChicken-like chicken patty sandwich is normal), and usually, repulsive—boiled goat heads sitting at room temperature, horrendous subs with some kind of curry mayonnaise, and smelly fish.
        xxx/ellauri385.html on line 598: They "wander loose about." They nothing see, Ne "vaeltaa irtolaisina", ei ne mitään nää,
        xxx/ellauri385.html on line 646: Pyhä Jean-Baptiste-Marie Vianney (1786-1859), myös Curé D’arse, oli roomalaiskatolinen ranskalainen pappi, pyhimys ja ihmeidentekijä. Hän on kaikkien pappien, seurakuntapappien, Iowan Dubuquen arkkihiippakunnan, ripittäjien ja Kansasin Kansas Cityn hiippakunnan suojeluspyhimys, ja Napsun armeijan sotilaskarkuri. Perseessä oli 230 asujainta. When Vianney's bishop first assigned him to Arse, Vianney got lost trying to find the town. Couldn't find his arse using both hands. With Catherine Lassagne and Benedicta Lardet, he established a home for girls. Vianney spent time with girls in the confessional and gave homilies against cursing and profane dancing. Vianney had a great devotion to Saint Philomena. He was regarded as her guardian because he erected so often in honour of the saint. He was a rare example of a pastor acutely aware of his responsibilities. In November 2018, Vianney's heart was transported to the United States for a 6-month nationwide tour.
        1677